summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/62304-0.txt10164
-rw-r--r--old/62304-0.zipbin155538 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62304-h.zipbin205132 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62304-h/62304-h.htm10294
-rw-r--r--old/62304-h/images/colophon.jpgbin3023 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62304-h/images/cover.jpgbin35713 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 20458 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a2f9ea6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #62304 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/62304)
diff --git a/old/62304-0.txt b/old/62304-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 77cc2b5..0000000
--- a/old/62304-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10164 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Black'erchief Dick, by Margery Allingham
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-
-Title: Black'erchief Dick
-
-Author: Margery Allingham
-
-Commentator: William McFee
-
-Release Date: June 2, 2020 [EBook #62304]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLACK'ERCHIEF DICK ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Chuck Greif, MWS and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK
-
-
-
-
- BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK
-
- BY
- MARGERY ALLINGHAM
-
- WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY
- WILLIAM McFEE
-
- [Illustration]
-
-
- GARDEN CITY NEW YORK
- DOUBLEDAY, PAGE & COMPANY
- 1923
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1923, BY
- MARGERY ALLINGHAM
- ALL RIGHTS RESERVED, INCLUDING THAT OF TRANSLATION
- INTO FOREIGN LANGUAGES, INCLUDING THE SCANDINAVIAN
-
- PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES
- AT
- THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS, GARDEN CITY, N. Y.
-
- _First Edition_
-
-
-
-
- DEDICATED
- TO
- HAL GRAME
-
- IN THE HOPE THAT HE WILL BE SATISFIED THAT I HAVE DONE MY BEST TO
- FULFIL THE PROMISE I MADE TO HIM TO TELL THE STORY OF ANNY AND TO
- “TELL TRUE”
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-In the sense of requiring elucidation or apology, this novel needs no
-introduction. The young lady who wrote it about two years ago, when she
-was eighteen, has already abandoned this work to publishers and other
-grown-ups, and with admirable professional good sense, is working upon
-fresh enterprises.
-
-In this, indeed, she is a genuine artist. Nothing is more clear from her
-correspondence with the writer of this introduction, than that she is,
-without ever becoming conscious of the fact, a genuine artist. Speaking
-of the intellectuals who occasionally impinge upon the family circle she
-says: “They have a horrid habit of---- oh, I can’t spell it, but it
-means pulling their minds to pieces and finding out how they are made,
-and they do that with their emotions, too.”
-
-Nothing of the sort is to be found in this tale of eastern England
-during the Restoration. And yet, while we may accept the unusual
-spectacle of a modern schoolgirl writing a red-blooded adventure story
-and privately poking fun at psychoanalysts and their dupes, we are
-justified in a certain curiosity as to the genesis of such a book. That
-curiosity the introduction is designed to assuage.
-
-Margery Allingham, whom the writer first met at the early age of two,
-comes of literary stock. Her grandparents were publishers in the days
-before the big combinations made an independent weekly paper a hopeless
-hazard. Her parents are journalists and writers of fiction. The business
-aspects of literature, the philosophy of art, and the technical problems
-of serial fiction have been commonplaces of the domestic atmosphere
-which the future novelist breathed during her childhood. It was as
-natural for Margery to sit down and “write a story” as for a
-shopkeeper’s child to play at keeping a shop. It was inevitable also
-that she should start a magazine. I remember it well. It was called _The
-Wag-tail_, and the founder was about eight years old. I was foreign
-correspondent, a rank imposed because of my being on a ship and so
-bringing news of distant shores. Margery herself, however, was mainly
-responsible for the publication. It was written in a penny exercise
-book, and editorial, short-story, serial, answers to correspondents and
-advertisements were entirely by the founder. Our collaboration on this
-long-defunct organ laid the foundation of an enduring friendship. When
-she was eleven, Margery was graciously pleased to accept the dedication
-of one of my novels, in the spirit in which it was offered. It was a
-gesture neither of condescension nor of derision, but rather a sincere
-and, let us hope, successful attempt on the part of a man a good way up
-the hill to give a friendly and affectionate signal to a child already
-breasting the lower reaches.
-
-And as the years followed one another in that peculiar progression which
-is neither arithmetical nor geometrical, but rather telescopic, whereby
-the young close up upon us and make us uneasily aware of our own
-slothful deficiencies, it became increasingly evident that in spite of
-the secret discouragement of wise parents, who did their best to hold
-themselves up as Awful Warnings, Margery Allingham would sooner or later
-express herself in one of the arts. Which art she would choose seemed
-equally certain until the family circle learned that she proposed to “go
-in” for elocution.
-
-The present writer, hearing of this in foreign parts, was at first
-nonplussed. With the lack of intelligence that seems to distinguish so
-many grown-up males, he feared there would be “dirty work at the
-cross-roads” when his lady friend discovered the real nature of a
-theatrical career. He might have saved himself the trouble. The lady
-friend, gleefully reporting progress, was evidently too preoccupied with
-the spectacle of grown-ups in action to bother about the future at all.
-She regarded elocution as a means rather than an end. It was perfectly
-natural for her, when she failed to find pieces suitable for recitation,
-to write them herself. It was a simple step, it appears, when the class
-at the Polytechnic sought for a play in which to reveal their virtuosity
-to friends and parents, for Margery Allingham to write that play, to
-stage-manage it, to design the costumes, and to assume the principal
-rôle herself. It was, in short, the little old _Wag-tail_ magazine upon
-a somewhat larger scale. One might be pardoned for supposing that the
-advice of a large and talented family circle would be invoked on behalf
-of a favourite daughter. On the contrary, they are pictured in many
-letters as standing around in helpless admiration while a
-seventeen-year-old maiden carries through her plans with the precision
-of an experienced and ruthless impresario. The play, a blank-verse
-tragedy entitled “Dido, Queen of Carthage”, is rehearsed and ultimately
-performed with such astonishing success that additional performances
-have to be scheduled and the public permitted to pay for admission.
-
-All this, even though it included illustrated interviews in the London
-press, was regarded by the chief protagonist as the inept reaction of
-grown-ups to a very ordinary achievement of modern youth. For it should
-be borne in mind that modern youth, while it is not particularly
-impressed with the performances or the philosophies of the preceding
-generation, is perfectly willing to abide by the rules of the economic
-game. The activities enumerated above were by no means the spectacular
-antics of a pampered parasite. Money was being earned in a highly
-diverting fashion. It appears that not only are films adapted from
-books, but books and stories are redistilled back from the films. Should
-money be necessary for scenery or costumes, it was Margery Allingham’s
-habit to witness a few pictures, transmute them into fiction and send
-them to the weekly journals that publish such stories. The picture
-evoked by a series of engaging letters written over the past three years
-is that of a shrewd and competent being from another world struggling
-with the stupidities and prejudices of a crowd of tottering half-wits
-upon the verge of dissolution. Youth seems to be having a tough time of
-it in England, as well as in America. There is nothing new about this,
-according to our novelist. “The modern girl is simply Miss 1840 without
-her petticoats,” is her definition, based on an attentive study of Jane
-Austen’s heroines. The trouble lies, not with youth, but with middle
-age, whose intellect tends to ossify more rapidly than of yore. It is an
-interesting theory, though evidently not designed to placate either
-publishers or the writers of introductions.
-
-To come to grips with the question of the origin of this particular
-novel, however, is a delicate matter. We find ourselves on enchanted
-ground. When a young lady of eighteen writes a novel in four months and
-calmly asserts that the story came to her out of the air, as it were,
-communicated by so-called automatic writing, the average grown-up
-hesitates. He has a foolish predilection for sober realities, and is
-reluctant to admit familiar spirits, as it were, to the family circle.
-Modern youth, dragging her family after her, calls up the ghosts of
-departed rapscallions, witches, and serving-wenches, and forthwith sits
-down to fashion a stirring tale.
-
-The novel, then, is a story within a story. The latter has for me a
-peculiar fascination. Knowing the characters who sat round that table in
-the house on Mersea Island, knowing the Island itself and the
-surrounding fenland, I wanted to write a story about them. I have
-repressed this desire, contenting myself with recounting to occasional
-groups of friends the amazing facts. Now that the novel has been
-written, and published in England and America by people who know little
-and care nothing about its origins, judging it merely as a piece of
-fiction commercially available, the opportunity arrives to reveal
-briefly the unusual circumstances out of which the tale was born.
-
-That part of England called East Anglia has preserved through many
-centuries the salient features of the landscape. As Charles Dickens said
-of the French-Flemish country, it is neither bold nor diversified, being
-in fact a sort of continuation of that country on the other side of the
-shallow and recent North Sea. And indeed what Dickens went on to say of
-his Flemish-French country, that it was three parts Flemish and one part
-French, might be paraphrased for East Anglia as three parts English and
-one part Low Country, or three parts land and one part water. The shores
-emerge imperceptibly from the gray waste of the North Sea, with
-stretches of low-tide mud that shine with a metallic lustre beyond the
-dunes. The sea is loth to retreat, winding in and out among the fields,
-so that one is startled, driving along the road from Colchester towards
-Mersea, to see a huge brown wherry aground behind the dikes, many miles
-from the sea-lanes outside. And from Canvey Island, which is fairly in
-the Thames Estuary below Tilbury, to Aldeburgh, on the Suffolk Coast,
-the sea interpenetrates the land so deeply and with so many loops and
-backwaters, that the whole coast, to high tide, is compacted of lonely
-islands, with here and there a house and the square tower of an ancient
-little Saxon church showing above some weather-worn trees on the
-landward side. Bleak and perishing cold in the winter, there is a quiet
-loveliness in the summers there appealing strongly to unfashionable folk
-who seek the elemental sanctuaries of remote harbours and salt winds
-driving the thick white clouds athwart a sky of palest azure.
-
-In such surroundings and with a practicable house for sleep, you come
-close to England. In such surroundings, on a fare of beef and cheese and
-beer, an English family might conceivably become so homogeneously
-identified with the spirit of the place that they could move at will up
-and down the centuries, assuming the thoughts and memories of any
-disembodied intelligences still anchored to their earthly haunts. So at
-least it emerges, reading the sober evidence before us, as those four
-set it down, signing it with their several names and styles, and
-asserting their right as truthful subjects to be believed.
-
-And what they say is this: In August, 1920, being in their cottage on
-Mersea Island, on an evening that had turned to rain, the time hung
-heavily and it was suggested they pass an hour with the glass. The
-ordinary materials were soon provided, being no more than the alphabet
-on paper slips, arranged in a circle on the table with a common tumbler,
-from which ale is drunk in those parts, inverted in the middle. Nothing
-remained save to select some feasible subject.
-
-One lay to their hand. While none of the company had practised the
-historical method in their fictions, since they lacked the special
-knowledge of bygone ways and speech such work demands, they had often
-discussed a legend persisting in the island, that a near-by tavern, long
-since destroyed, had been the scene of a tragedy. Old people in the
-village said they had seen the ghost, which haunted a house known as The
-Myth. “Let us,” said someone, “call up the landlord of the Ship Inn.
-Perhaps,” they added amidst some laughter, “he will reply.”
-
-He did! Amid great yet repressed excitement, the mysterious glass slid
-to and fro, spelling out a name. As far as can be ascertained, for once
-the exact requirements of time and place and method came together, and
-some sort of communication was established across the “gateless barrier”
-that separates us from the souls who linger near the scenes of their
-earthly existence, loth to wander far from their native air. Night after
-night, for long hours, these inexperienced folk sat round their table
-holding converse with the spirits that syllable men’s names, piecing
-together the fragments, evoking new witnesses to check up obscure
-allusions, puzzling over the illiterate and archaic words and phrases
-which none of them, by any possible chance, could have heard before.
-
-No provision, however, is made in modern publishing for works produced
-by authors after they are dead. It is absolutely necessary, when it
-comes to publishing, to have some representative this side of the grave,
-and Margery Allingham, whose mortal hand wrote the following novel, is
-compelled by the hidebound rules of a material and grown-up world to
-assume the authorship. Publishers, it seems, from an inspection of our
-correspondence, are grown-ups.
-
-It cannot be said that they have, in this particular case, failed in
-their obligations to the public. There is one notable feature about this
-novel, which the present writer did not read until it had been accepted
-for publication, and that is the clean and workmanlike characterization.
-Here is no fine writing, no groping for “style.” With crisp hammer-blows
-the tale is told. A realistic romance, if you please, in the sense that
-no one stands between us and the characters of _Black’erchief Dick_. It
-is the realism of Defoe’s _Captain Singleton_ and the _Plague Year_,
-where the author achieves a magical invisibility. So far from leading
-his characters forward and leaving them to speak, and so revealing
-themselves as the children of his brain, the realistic romanticist never
-appears at all. Unlike the romantic realist, who passes everything
-through the spectrum of his own personality, his story must stand by its
-own inherent quality. There are some who would deny him the rank of
-artist, claiming that title exclusively for the introspective
-specialists. The present writer cannot subscribe to that narrow creed.
-He can even imagine a votary of introspection casting envious eyes upon
-this stirring tale of love and piracy in seventeenth-century England,
-and wondering whether something may not be said for the objective method
-after all, where you begin at the beginning and end at the end, where
-something is allowed for the picturesque, and the artist works within
-the ancient and honourable conventions that are accepted, and loved, and
-comprehended by the crowd.
-
- WILLIAM MCFEE.
-
-
-
-
-BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-“Dangerous! Why, there’s no trade from here to the Indies more dangerous
-than ours. I’ve been about a bit, and mind you I know.”
-
-Mat Turnby shifted his large body to a position of greater ease, tilted
-slightly the rum cask on which he was sitting, and leaned back against
-the fully rigged mast, balancing himself carefully in accordance with
-the gentle roll of the ship.
-
-“Oh, I don’t know about that, Mat,” remarked a wiry, black-bearded man,
-who squatted on a coil of rope some six feet away. “I’ve been on this
-ship two years now, and how many fights have I had with the Preventative
-folk? Three! How many hands did we lose in the lot? Eleven! That’s not
-danger!”
-
-“Ah!” said the other, wisely nodding his head, “maybe, maybe, Blueneck,
-but it’s some nine months since we last went foul them coastguards and
-since then we’ve been coming and going as though the damned old Channel
-belonged to us. Such scatter-brained tricks don’t pay in the end.”
-
-“You be careful what you’re saying, Mat Turnby,” piped a shivering,
-miserable, little man, who was trying to protect himself from the
-cutting February wind with a ragged, parti-coloured blanket which he
-continually wrapped and unwrapped about his skeleton-like shoulders,
-“you be careful what you’re saying. All kinds o’ things on this ship
-have ears,” and he nodded once or twice significantly.
-
-The big man moved uneasily on his unstable seat, but he answered boldly
-enough:
-
-“I saying? Here, you mind what you’re saying, you snivelling rat!
-Saying? I’m not saying aught as I am ashamed of--I say these daring
-tricks don’t pay in the end--and--and--they don’t,” he finished
-abruptly.
-
-“Oh! it’s not for the likes o’ us to talk about what the Captain does,”
-said the little man whiningly. He snuffled noisily and unwrapped and
-wrapped his blanket again. “Not for the likes o’ us,” he repeated.
-
-“Who’s saying aught of the Cap’n?” roared Mat, bringing the cask to the
-deck with a thud. “Who’s saying aught of the Cap’n?”
-
-“Oh! no one, no one at all,” said the shiverer, considerably startled.
-Then he added, as the big man slid back against the mast once more: “But
-if no one did--that’s all right, ain’t it? If no one did, I say.”
-
-Mat swore a round of obscene oaths under his breath and there was
-silence for a minute or two.
-
-They were nearly at the end of the trip. Indeed, another two hours or so
-would see them safely at anchor in the safest of all smugglers’
-havens--the mouth of the River Blackwater, and their cargo easily and
-openly landed on Mersea Marsh Island.
-
-The shivering little man smiled to himself at the thought of it. The
-warm kitchen at the Victory Inn, the smoking rum-cup, and the pleasant
-sallies of the fair Eliza appealed to his present mood, and he sniffled
-again and rearranged his blanket.
-
-The green, white-splashed water lapped against the boat and a big
-saddle-backed gull flew over, screaming plaintively.
-
-Mat began to talk again.
-
-“I wonder why we do it,” he said slowly. “There ain’t anything in him--a
-weak, ugly little Spaniard, no----”
-
-Blueneck interrupted sharply.
-
-“Hush,” he said. “No good ever comes of talking about Black’erchief
-Dick, whatever is said.”
-
-“Who said I was talking of the Cap’n?” said Mat quickly.
-
-Blueneck looked uncomfortable, but he replied steadily: “Ah! Mat Turnby,
-you be careful!”
-
-Mat laughed.
-
-“I reckon you’ve got enough to do lookin’ after yerself--wi’out worrying
-about me, master Spaniard,” he said good-naturedly.
-
-Blueneck shifted his position slightly.
-
-“I reckon we git paid more than most sea-faring folk,” he said.
-
-Mat snorted.
-
-“Oh, yes!” he growled, “paid! We’re paid, all right, but how are we
-treated?”
-
-Blueneck grinned.
-
-“Like princes of the blood on the island,” he laughed.
-
-“Oh! yes, on the island,” Mat’s voice rose, “but I say--on the brig? How
-then? Like dogs, men--like dirty, heathen, black-skinned dogs! And what
-I ask is, why do we do it? Are we men to be afraid of a brown-skinned,
-drunken little pirate of a Spaniard? Just because he owns a brig or two
-and smuggles as much rum in a year as any other man in the trade? What
-has he got about him that we should turn wenches and follow him, like
-the scum he thinks us? Save that he has a mighty plaguey way of turning
-fine words and----”
-
-“The knife!”
-
-The little man who had spoken huddled his blanket closer and shuddered
-again. The wind dropped for a moment and a tremor ran through the full
-sails, as though they also had shivered.
-
-Mat Turnby laughed, albeit somewhat uneasily.
-
-“The knife?” he said. “Lord, what’s a knife to a man who holds one of
-these?” He pulled a heavy flintlock pistol out of a pocket in the
-voluminous skirts of the sleeveless and brightly coloured coat which he
-wore over a rough homespun guernsey and held it on the palm of his open
-hand.
-
-Blueneck smiled grimly.
-
-“A precious great deal when the hand that holds the knife is
-Black’erchief Dick’s,” he said.
-
-Mat Turnby laughed again contemptuously.
-
-“Are you flesh and good red blood, or mud and pond slime, that you fear
-the foolish word of a Spanish sot? I tell you no knife held in a mortal
-hand can stand against a bullet from this.”
-
-“Ay, in a mortal hand,” said he of the blanket, fearfully looking behind
-him.
-
-The big sailor swore.
-
-“Lord,” he said, “I knew not that I had come aboard a ship manned with a
-crew of beldames. I tell you this great captain of yours would be laid
-as flat as Mersea mud with one little lead ball from this.”
-
-He stroked the pistol lovingly.
-
-“Maybe,” said Blueneck stubbornly. “But whoever fired that shot would
-die by--the knife.”
-
-“Ah! that’s tremendous likely,” sneered the other; “him on his back with
-a good ounce of lead in that wicked head of his.”
-
-Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“You can laugh now, Mat Turnby,” he said, “but you won’t always laugh at
-what I tell you. No, not by a long way, that you won’t.”
-
-He hugged his knees to his chin, and let the heavy lids fall over his
-eyes.
-
-This apparent indifference seemed to irritate Mat more than words for,
-bringing his hand down on his knee with a mighty slap, he swore loudly
-for several seconds. Then suddenly breaking off short he burst into a
-short, sharp laugh.
-
-“Well!” he said. “It’s time the Spanish swine knew that there’s someone
-aboard who ain’t afraid of him, no, neither him nor his knife. S’truth!
-am I to cower down to a Spaniard?”
-
-He stretched his huge limbs and showed his large yellow teeth as he
-smiled rather sourly.
-
-“No, by the Lord, not I,” he went on. “Let him cross me if he dare, and
-he’ll see good _Suffolk_ blood is a match for thin Spanish sap any day.
-Ho! ho! ho! let him cross me if he dare. Ho! ho!”
-
-The laugh died away on his lips as from just behind his ear came
-another. It was soft, rich, musical, and wholly unpleasant.
-
-At the first sound of it the three men sat rigid, and when it had ceased
-there was no sound for several seconds save for the water lapping
-against the side and the scream of the gulls overhead.
-
-Blueneck was the first of the sailors to recover. He lifted his eyes
-cautiously to the direction from which the laugh had come.
-
-He saw what he feared and expected. Up against the other side of the
-mast, directly behind Mat Turnby, stood a slight figure dressed
-extravagantly in the French style of the day, a dandy from the Brussels
-frill at his throat to the great silver buckles of rich workmanship
-which adorned his tanned shoes. But it was not these things which
-stopped the three sailors so suddenly in their talk and caused them to
-sit aghast.
-
-The most remarkable thing about the newcomer was his face--long, lean,
-brown, and unhandsome, it yet had a character at once interesting and
-repulsive. The finely marked eyebrows met across the low, well-tanned
-brow in an almost straight line, and the hair--oiled and curled--showed
-as black as the silk kerchief which covered the greater part of head and
-neck. The eyes beneath the lids, fringed with heavy lashes, smiled and
-glittered disconcertingly. The whole face was smiling now, viciously,
-almost fiendishly, but yet smiling and with some enjoyment.
-
-Blueneck’s eyes dropped before that terrible smile and, as they
-travelled slowly downward, suddenly dilated, and he shivered as though a
-snake had touched him.
-
-The figure by the mast had moved a little more round and his hand was
-visible. It was at this that Blueneck stared.
-
-Among the small, white, much-beringed fingers, and round the slender
-wrist from which the lace ruffle had been pushed back a little, slid the
-thin blue blade of a Spanish stiletto. Through the thumb and first
-finger it slipped, over the blue vein of the white forearm, mingled its
-brightness with the flashing jewels on the third and fourth fingers--and
-so round again, all without any apparent effort or even movement of the
-hand. It was an exhibition to be admired and praised, yet Blueneck and
-the shivering little man at his side shuddered and looked away.
-
-Mat Turnby, on the other hand, had not seen anything. He sat quite
-still, the pistol lying idly in the palm of his great hand, staring
-fixedly in front of him.
-
-A hand, white and slender, slid over his left shoulder and away
-again--the pistol vanished. Still Mat did not move.
-
-“A very pretty toy, and a useful, my friend,” said the same soft voice,
-just behind Mat’s ear.
-
-The big sailor pulled himself together with an effort, stood up, then
-turned toward his captain.
-
-Blueneck and the little man in the blanket also rose.
-
-Black’erchief Dick had not changed his position. The big pistol and the
-slender knife lay side by side on his small white palm, and he still
-smiled as he spoke again:
-
-“Now my noble son of an ox,” he began pleasantly, his white teeth
-shining, “if it so happened that this day you had to die----” A hasty
-flush spread over the giant’s face, but otherwise he made no sign.
-Black’erchief Dick continued, “If, I say,” he repeated, “that this day
-you had to die, which of these beautiful toys would you choose as a
-means to death?”
-
-He held his open hand a little nearer to the sailor.
-
-Blueneck stared at him, fascinated, and the little man with the blanket
-sniffed audibly.
-
-Black’erchief Dick’s eyes left Mat Turnby for a moment and rested on the
-shivering little creature. “Sniff thy way aft, Habakkuk Coot,” he said
-quietly. The little man stared at him, shivered, sniffed again, and
-seemed unable to move.
-
-Slowly the Spaniard’s arm lifted the pistol in his hand.
-
-Habakkuk sniffed again and his eyes dilated with terror; a white finger
-raised crooked round the trigger, and pressed. There was an explosion.
-Habakkuk remained standing for a second, then fled down the hatchway, a
-jagged hole through his blanket.
-
-Black’erchief Dick smiled and, turning to Mat, continued: “As I said,
-Matthew Turnby, if this day thou hadst to die, which of these weapons
-wouldst thou choose? Thou seest I know the manner of either,” he added,
-and, suddenly darting out his hand, he plunged the knife between the big
-sailor’s arm and body, so that the sleeve of the man’s guernsey was
-skewered to the body of his coat. Still Mat Turnby neither moved nor
-spoke. Laughing slightly, the Spaniard drew out the knife and resumed
-the one-sided conversation.
-
-“Nay, Matthew Turnby, you do but jest in keeping the thin Spanish sap in
-my veins so long waiting for an answer,” he said with a sneer and a
-smile. The sailor swallowed noisily, but said nothing.
-
-“The drunken sot of a pirate must be taught not to cross thee, Matthew,”
-went on the Captain, and his smile had vanished, leaving only a weary
-expression on the lean features. “Lord! man, if thou wilt not choose,
-faith, I must for thee.”
-
-“Surely, Capt’n--you jest--surely.”
-
-The words came like a flood from the big man’s open mouth.
-
-An expression of surprise spread over the Spaniard’s face. “I jest?” he
-said. “Nay, faith, good Matthew, I jest?” he repeated. “Lord, man, when
-didst thou get that into thy ass’s pate--nay, nay, of a certainty I do
-not jest--which wilt thou have?”
-
-Mat Turnby’s face grew purple, but he did not speak; his tongue
-protruded slightly from his lips.
-
-Black’erchief Dick looked at the weapons critically as they lay side by
-side in his hand.
-
-“Ah,” he said at last, holding the pistol in his left hand. “This we
-see, Matthew, is discharged. I beg thy pardon, señor, for pressing a
-choice I could not give thee. As it is, you see, but the knife remains,”
-and he dropped the pistol into a capacious pocket.
-
-Mat Turnby’s hand clutched at his throat and he stepped back a pace or
-two.
-
-Black’erchief Dick followed him, the knife swinging lightly between his
-thumb and forefinger. Blueneck stood watching, his eyes fixed on the
-Spaniard in unholy fascination. Farther and farther back stepped the big
-sailor, Dick keeping always the same distance from him, until he reached
-the side of the boat. There he stayed, breathless with fear. Slowly the
-Spaniard came nearer and nearer to him, and the thin blue blade ceased
-to swing.
-
-“So thou wouldst teach that ‘drunken pirate’ that all men are not afraid
-of him? Eh? Is that so? The voice seemed to grow more caressing at
-every word and the big sailor’s eyes shut. Suddenly they opened again
-and looked down.
-
-“Look!” Dick was saying. “Look, Matthew, son of _Suffolk_ clay, see how
-fair my blade looks against thy fur-grown hide.” He tore at the guernsey
-and pulled it open, showing the great hairy chest beneath. The terrified
-sailor made one lunge forward, as though to grasp the lean brown throat,
-but he was too late. Swift as lightning the small white hand shot back
-and then forward, and the thin blue blade vanished in the wretched man’s
-body just over the collar-bone, cutting the jugular vein. The great body
-stiffened and then, gradually relaxing, dropped at the Spaniard’s feet.
-
-Blueneck stifled a cry and stepped forward.
-
-Slowly the Spaniard pulled out the steel, wiped it carefully on the
-brightly coloured sleeveless coat, then slipped it into his belt.
-
-“Over with the dog,” he said shortly to Blueneck, as he walked off
-quietly up the deck.
-
-Blueneck hailed one of the frightened crew who had watched the scene
-from the deck-house roof, and in silence the two lifted up all that was
-left of the great sailor and pushed it over the side. The body splashed
-in the green water and somewhere near a cormorant shrieked to his kind
-the news of fresh prey, and the ship, her sails bellying out to the
-wind, sped on toward the island.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-“Anny.”
-
-“Ay, Hal.”
-
-“Do you love me, lass?”
-
-“Oh! now why will you keep plaguing me, Hal? How many times have I told
-you so on this same wall? You know I do.”
-
-“Can I kiss you again, then?”
-
-“Ay, Hal.”
-
-There was silence for a minute or so, and the gulls fishing for eels in
-the soft black mud came in closer to the shingle-strewn strip of beach,
-taking no notice of the two figures on the sea wall, so still they
-stood.
-
-“When we get married, lass”--the young voice sounded clearly in the
-quietness and the gulls flew screaming--“we might keep the Ship
-ourselves.”
-
-The girl at his side cut him short with a bitter little laugh.
-
-“Ay, Hal,” she said sadly, “when we get married--that’s a tremendous
-long way off, I’m thinking.”
-
-The boy put his arm round her waist unchecked.
-
-“I don’t know,” he said, and his voice sounded hopeful, “I don’t know,
-lass. Gilbot’s leaving the place in my hands more than ever, and who
-knows but what some day he’ll be handing it over to me altogether.”
-
-Anny joined in his laugh and her hand slid up and caressed his broad,
-scarlet-shirted shoulder.
-
-“Ay, and then I’ll be serving our own rum, and you and Captain Fen de
-Witt will settle the price yourselves---- Oh, Hal! lad, that’ll be
-happiness.”
-
-“Why, Anny, girl, ain’t you happy now? Gilbot’s been more than good to
-both of us. It isn’t every landlord who’d bring up a couple of orphans
-in his inn and look after them the way he has us.”
-
-The girl pouted her full red lips.
-
-“It isn’t as if we didn’t work for him,” she said.
-
-“Oh, Anny!”--Hal’s honest blue eyes clouded for a moment--“you didn’t
-serve the liquor till you were fourteen, you know, and he even let me
-study a bit before I started to help.”
-
-“Ay, may be, but your folk left some money to him, didn’t they?”
-
-“Nay, lass. They died aboard Fen de Witt’s schooner, the _Dark Blood_,
-coming down from the North. You know that; I’ve told you so some twenty
-times.”
-
-“Ay, you have, but I like to hear you praise Gilbot, Hal, your eyes
-shine so, and you seem almost angry with me--I like you angry, Hal.”
-
-The boy laughed.
-
-“Saucy minion! When we are married you will not wish me angry. Faith,
-lass, you would not make another Ben Farran of me--surely?”
-
-The girl shuddered.
-
-“Peace, prithee,” she said. “I do not like to hear you jest so. Oh, that
-he had died with my father.”
-
-“Marry, sweetheart, fie upon thee speaking of thy grandsire so,” Hal
-laughed merrily.
-
-The girl looked about her uneasily.
-
-“Hush!” she said. “I would not have him hear us.”
-
-The boy’s laugh rang out again and he bent as he kissed her, although
-her height was unusual in the island, for he was very tall.
-
-“Look, Anny, lass,” he said laughingly. “See how far we are from the
-_Pet_,” and he pointed ahead of them to where an old mastless hull lay
-moored in a little bay about a quarter of a mile from where they stood.
-
-Anny glanced up at him and he stopped to look at her. Although they had
-lived in the same house since they could remember, he was never tired of
-gazing at that wonderful face of hers, and praising it till it reddened
-to the colour of the rough canvas shirt to which he pressed it.
-
-It was plump and oval in shape, white, but delicately touched with a
-colour in the cheeks, and her hair, of that intense blackness which
-seems to absorb the light, curled over her low forehead. But her eyes
-were wonderful. Of a deep sea-green, they caught light and shadow from
-her surroundings. The girl was certainly a beauty and of no common
-type.
-
-Hal caught his breath.
-
-“Anny,” he said, his young eyes regarding her solemnly, “you are as
-beautiful as the sea at five o’clock on a summer’s morning. Look,
-sweetheart, over there, see--your eyes are as green as that sea, and
-your hair black as yon breakwater that starts out of it.”
-
-The girl laughed, well pleased, but she looked over at the old hull
-again quickly.
-
-“Will we go back now?” she asked at last.
-
-The boy looked at her, astonished.
-
-“Go back!” he said. “Why, what for--art not tired, surely?”
-
-The girl shook her head.
-
-“Nay,” she said, “but----” She stopped and looked at the hull again.
-
-Hal followed the direction of her eyes before he spoke again. Then he
-laughed.
-
-“Why, Anny, you are afraid to pass your grandsire’s boat.”
-
-Then, as she did not speak, he took her little chin in his brown hand
-and raised her face to his.
-
-“What are you feared of when I am with you, sweetheart?” he asked.
-
-The girl shivered slightly.
-
-“They say,” she began hesitatingly, “that Pet Salt is a witch.”
-
-Hal’s face became grave.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “they do say so, but, Lord,” and he smiled, “they said
-the same of Nan Swayle.”
-
-“Ah! but that’s a lie,” said the girl hotly.
-
-Hal laughed.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “and maybe so is the tale of Pet Salt. Anyway, thy
-grandsire seems to thrive beneath her care, be she witch or no. Fie,
-Anny, for shame,” he added, “you would not haste back yet. Master French
-will not thank us if we get in so soon, stopping his love-talk with
-Mistress Sue.”
-
-Anny wrapped her shawl a little closer about her head and shoulders, and
-slipped her arm through the boy’s, and they walked on for a while
-without speaking.
-
-About three hundred yards from the old hull Anny stopped.
-
-“Look!” she said, “he’s on deck.”
-
-Hal looked in the direction in which she pointed and saw the stubby
-figure of old Ben Farran, a long telescope to his eye, leaning against
-the remnant of what had once been a neat deck-house. Lumber of different
-kinds--mostly empty rum kegs--lay strewn all round him, while from the
-shattered stump of the main-mast to the painted ear of the fearsome
-green-and-red dragon, which served as a figurehead, was stretched a
-clothes-line, on which a few rags leaped and fought in the cold breeze.
-
-Hal studied him critically for a few moments.
-
-“He’s not so deep in liquor as usual,” he said at last.
-
-“Oh! poor Pet Salt!” exclaimed the girl involuntarily. “I wonder where
-she is?”
-
-“Stowed away safely under hatches, I reckon,” said Hal, with a laugh.
-
-“You should not jest, Hal. I have not known him able to stand so these
-three months. I fear he may have kilt her. He would if she could beg him
-no more rum.”
-
-“Oh! what a soft heart it is,” said the boy gently. “How long ago was it
-that thou shivered when I spoke her name, and now you fear for her.
-Shall we go back?”
-
-The girl hesitated for a moment, then she said: “Nay, she may have need
-of help, poor soul. Come with me, Hal.”
-
-“Come with thee, lass! Think you I’d let you go alone--thy grandsire
-sobered?” His voice rose in indignation as he put his arm about her
-shoulders protectingly.
-
-They came within twenty yards of the boat before the swaying figure on
-the deck became aware of them. Then, however, to their extreme surprise
-he hailed them affably and called to Hal.
-
-“Hey, you boy there, be your eyes good?”
-
-“Ay, none so bad, sir.”
-
-“Ah, I doubt it. Come up here, will ’ee, and see if you can make out
-this craft.” Then, his eyes falling on the girl, “Is it that slut Anny
-you have with you?”
-
-“‘Tis Anny Farren, sir,” she said, speaking for herself.
-
-“Ah! you run down to Pet Salt, girl, she may need thee.”
-
-Anny climbed up the rope ladder which dangled over the side, and Hal
-after her.
-
-“Is Pet Salt sick, Grandsire?” she ventured timidly.
-
-Anny had been a serving-maid at the Ship Tavern some three years and her
-acquaintance with profane language was not limited, but she quailed
-visibly and the red blood mounted from her throat to the ebony curls on
-her forehead before the stream of abuse levelled at the head of the
-unfortunate woman in the hold. She fled down the hatchway, and Hal stood
-looking after her, undecided whether to follow his love and protect her
-from the aged witch below deck, or to remain and attempt to pacify the
-wrathful man by the deck-house.
-
-Ben decided for him.
-
-“Here you are,” he said fiercely, “take this telescope. Now”--as Hal
-took it from the old man’s unsteady fingers--“what do you see?”
-
-The young Norseman, his yellow hair curling over his ears and one dark
-blue eye screwed to the rim, swept the glass to and fro once or twice,
-then he held it still.
-
-“She’s a brig,” he said at last.
-
-“Ah!” assented the old man.
-
-Hal looked again. “Light’s very bad,” he remarked.
-
-“I could ha’ told you that--here, give me the thing.” Ben regained
-possession of the glass and, unable to hold it steady, broke into
-another flood of profane language, cursing the woman, Pet Salt, again
-and again.
-
-“She has vexed thee, sir?”
-
-The young man put the question timidly.
-
-“The ronyon burnt my rum-cup,” Ben Farran gulped with rage. “Oh, lad!
-the defiling of good, Heaven-sent rum with burnt eggs and honey!”
-
-He spat on the deck at the thought of it.
-
-The boy grinned, but he said nothing.
-
-Once again the old man handed him the telescope.
-
-“Now look! Be she Captain Fen de Witt’s _Dark Blood_?”
-
-Hal began to understand the old drunkard’s interest in the brig. If this
-was the _Dark Blood_, the whole of the east end of the Island would run
-rum for a night or so, and, as he guessed, Ben’s stock was getting low.
-
-“Nay,” he said at last, “‘tis not she. Why, Master Farran, Captain Fen
-de Witt, isn’t expected for a week or more.”
-
-The old man mumbled curses for a while before he spoke.
-
-“Ah! but who be she?” he said, pointing out to the horizon.
-
-“Why,” said the boy in some surprise, “‘tis someone making for the
-West.”
-
-The old man seized the glass.
-
-“‘Tis impossible, with the tide out like this,” he said.
-
-Hal strained his eyes.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “but she’s trying it.”
-
-“But I tell thee, lad,” Ben’s voice rose shrilly, “‘tis impossible. Why,
-down there in the fleet there ain’t no more ’an four feet o’ water when
-the tide’s like this.”
-
-“Ay,” said Hal. “I know there ain’t, but she’s trying it,” he added
-stubbornly.
-
-“Why, so she be.” Ben Farran put the glass at last safely to his eye and
-spoke in amazement. “But she won’t do it,” he added with a certain
-enjoyment. “She can’t do it. There’s only one man as I’ve heard of who’d
-try it,” he continued, “and it ain’t likely to be him at this time o’
-day.”
-
-“Ah!” said Hal, “and who’s that?”
-
-“Dick Delfazio--him as they call Black’erchief Dick--but it ain’t likely
-to be him, as I said.”
-
-Hal nodded.
-
-“I’ve heard of him,” he said. “Lands his stuff at the Victory, don’t
-he?”
-
-The old man grunted.
-
-“I don’t know that,” he said. “All I know is I don’t see any of it.
-Lord,” he added, as he had another look through the glass, “‘tis the
-_Coldlight_, though--sithering fool. He’ll lead the Preventative men on
-the Island after him one o’ these days.”
-
-“He’ll never get down to the fleet with the tide like this, whoever he
-is,” said the boy, staring out curiously at the white-sailed craft.
-
-“Ah! you’re right there,” said Ben. “Curse the fool, he’ll get her stuck
-fast in the mud and have to stay all night. Lord!” he added, “when
-these wars be over there’ll be a deal more care taken in the trade, take
-my word for it. Why, this ain’t smuggling, it’s free trading.”
-
-But the boy was not listening to him; his eyes were fixed on the
-_Coldlight_, now well in view.
-
-“Look!” he said suddenly, “look, she’s turning.”
-
-“Eh? What? Eh? So she is!” ejaculated the old man in a frenzy of
-excitement. “Do ’ee think she be coming here--eh?”
-
-Hal spoke slowly, his eyes on the brig.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “you’re right, she’s making for East--who did you say she
-was?”
-
-“The _Coldlight_--the _Coldlight_, lad, commanded by the finest man in
-the trade--oh, my boy, the Island will swim in good Jamaica this night,”
-and he dropped the telescope, which fell clattering to the boards.
-
-Hal picked it up and turned to give it to the old man, but he was off,
-tottering to the hatchway. There, kneeling on the deck and poking his
-head down, he called whiningly, “Pet! Pet! my own, will you come up and
-hear what I have to tell you? Great--great news, Pet.” Receiving no
-answer he tried again while the boy stood looking at him.
-
-“Pretty old Pet, queen of my heart, Pet, my Pet, come up.”
-
-Still no answer, save for the patter of raindrops on the boat.
-
-“I’m sorry I beat you, Pet--although I’m damned if I am, the ronyon!”
-he added to himself. Still all beneath the hatches was silent as the
-grave.
-
-Swearing softly, the old man crawled over to the ladder and began to
-descend.
-
-Hal heard him reach the bottom and stumble off.
-
-The boy looked out to sea, where the brig was making slowly for the
-Eastern Creek. He stood looking at her for a second or two and then
-sprang round suddenly as though someone had called him.
-
-Where was Anny? In the excitement of watching the brig he had forgotten
-her. His face flushing with remorse he raced to the hatchway and was
-just in time to help his sweetheart, pale and frightened, up on to the
-deck.
-
-“Oh, Hal, how he has beaten her!” she said, as she moved quickly over to
-the rope ladder and climbed hastily down without once looking behind.
-
-“Could she speak to thee?” he asked as he slid to the ground after her.
-
-“Ay,” she nodded her head fearfully.
-
-“Did she curse thee much?”
-
-“Ay,” she nodded again.
-
-Hal smiled.
-
-“Art afraid?” he enquired tenderly.
-
-Anny looked up at him before she pulled his arm about her waist.
-
-“Nay,” she said, “not while I have thee, Hal.”
-
-He kissed her before he spoke again.
-
-“I suppose Ben was plaguing her to meet the _Coldlight_ and beg a keg?”
-he said.
-
-Anny nodded again. Then she said quickly: “Come, lad, we must back to
-the Ship if company be expected.”
-
-“Wouldst rather serve rum to the company than walk to the shore with me,
-lass?”
-
-The grip round her waist tightened and she laughed.
-
-“If thou wert a wench, Hal, thou wouldst be a jade,” she said. “Come,
-Master Gilbot will be scuttering this way and that, and Mistress Sue,
-loath to leave Big French, will have the skin flayed off everyone in the
-place if we’re not there to help her.”
-
-“Thou’rt a great lass, Anny,” said the boy, smiling. “When we are
-married there’ll not be an inn in the country to equal ours.”
-
-The girl laughed happily.
-
-“Ay, when we are married, Hal,” she said.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
- “Oh, I called her Mary Loo,
- And she shwore that she’d be true,
- Until I took to rum and went to shea;
- Then she goed along wi’ he,
- And forgot all love for me,
- Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea,
- Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea.”
-
-
-Gilbot, landlord of the Ship, sat before a roaring fire in his
-comfortable kitchen, singing in a quavering, tipsy voice, and beating
-out the accompaniment with an empty pot on one podgy knee.
-
-It was six o’clock in the evening, and already the tallow dips had been
-lighted. They cast a flickering, friendly glow over the scene, the long,
-low room, stone-flagged and small-windowed, the ale barrels and rum kegs
-neatly arranged side by side on a form which ran nearly all the way
-round the wall, and the two long, trestled tables, flanked with
-high-backed seats which were now unoccupied, but were presently to be
-filled with the best company that the east of the Island could provide.
-
-Besides Gilbot, who appeared happily oblivious of all around him, four
-other persons sat in the Ship kitchen: two old men threw dice for pence
-in one corner, while in another, between two rum kegs, sat a girl. She
-was about twenty-three years of age, and, although her appearance was
-not of that uncommon type so marked in Anny Farran, yet she had a
-certain quiet comeliness and gentle expression which made her almost
-beautiful. At least the handsome young giant who lounged near her in an
-ecstasy of shyness appeared to think so, for he eyed her so intently,
-his mouth partly open, that she was forced to pay more attention to the
-garment she was patching than was strictly necessary. They sat in
-perfect silence for some ten minutes before the young man plucked up
-courage to speak. When he did, his voice came uncomfortably from his
-throat, and he reddened to the roots of his hair.
-
-“I reckon I’ll be going up west now, Mistress Sue,” he said, as he half
-rose to his feet and looked toward the door.
-
-“Oh!”--there was a note of real regret in the girl’s voice--“must you go
-so early, Master French?”
-
-Big French sat down again quickly.
-
-“Nay,” he said shortly, and there was silence again for another minute
-or so.
-
-She stitched busily the while.
-
-“Is it great business you have in the west, Master French?” she said at
-last, her eyes still on her work.
-
-French discovered suddenly that it was easier to talk to her if she was
-not looking at him.
-
-“Ay,” he said. “Black’erchief Dick will get in to-morrow.”
-
-Sue sighed.
-
-“Ah!” she said, “you have a fine life, Master French, travelling to and
-fro the way you do.”
-
-Big French beamed delightedly.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “a fine life, but dangerous,” he added quickly, “very
-dangerous.”
-
-The girl looked at him appraisingly.
-
-“But you are so strong, Master French, what have you to fear from
-footpads--you’re in more danger from pretty wenches, I warrant,” she
-said, as she shot a sidelong glance at him.
-
-French reddened and smiled sheepishly; then he suddenly grew grave and
-his gray eyes regarded her earnestly.
-
-“Wenches? Mistress Sue,” he said, “nay! One wench--that’s all.”
-
-It was Sue’s turn to redden now and she did so very charmingly, and
-French, noting her confusion, immediately bethought him of his own, and
-he sat fidgeting, his eyes on the tips of his untanned leather boots.
-
-“I’ll be forth to Tiptree market this week if Black’erchief Dick’s
-brought aught but rum from Brest,” he said at last, “and if there be
-aught you may be wanting from thence, Mistress----?” His voice trailed
-off on the question as he studied his boot-toe attentively.
-
-She smiled as she laid a brown hand on his arm, thereby causing him much
-nervous disquietude.
-
-“Come back before you go--er--Ezekiel”--Big French started pleasurably
-at the sound of his Christian name--“and if I have bethought me of aught
-we need from Tiptree, I will be glad if you will get it for me,” she
-said.
-
-Big French took the hand that was resting on his sleeve in one big fist
-and his other arm slid round the girl’s waist unhindered.
-
-“Sue,” he said softly, “will ye----”
-
- “_Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea_,”
-
-sang Gilbot, suddenly waking up from the doze he had fallen into.
-“Shue,” he called, “more rum, lass.”
-
-The girl jumped up to obey him, and Big French swore softly under his
-breath.
-
-Two or three seamen entered the kitchen at this moment, and, after
-saluting Gilbot, called for drinks and settled themselves in the
-high-backed seats on either side of the fire. They began to talk noisily
-of their own affairs.
-
-Sue opened an inner door and called for more lights. Gilbot, happy with
-his rum, continued to sing.
-
-Big French rose slowly to his feet. He was an enormous figure, some six
-feet five inches tall and proportionately broad; his face as the light
-from the dripping candles fell on it showed clearly cut and very
-handsome. He wore his hair long and his chin had never been shaved, so
-that his beard was as silky as his hair, curly and of the colour of
-clear honey. He walked over to the door after exchanging greetings with
-the rowdy crew at the fireside, and lifted the latch. On the threshold
-he was met by Hal and Anny.
-
-They had walked briskly, and the cool air had brought the colour to the
-girl’s face and, as she stood there, the men at the fireside, instead of
-clamouring for the door to be shut and the draught stayed, sat looking
-at her in silent admiration.
-
-Hal Grame, standing just behind her, was the first to speak. He stepped
-forward, shutting the door behind him.
-
-“Black’erchief Dick, aboard the _Coldlight_, will be putting into the
-Creek inside of an hour,” he said.
-
-Big French looked at him for a moment.
-
-“Black’erchief Dick coming here?” he said at last.
-
-Sue came forward to listen, and several men left the fireplace and
-joined the little group near the door.
-
-“Ay,” said Hal, “he couldn’t get down the fleet with the tide like
-this.”
-
-“Ah!” said French.
-
-“He couldn’t rest in the Channel for twelve hours or so, now could he?”
-continued Hal.
-
-“Ah, you’re right there, lad,” said one of the men, pressing forward.
-“Black’erchief Dick would risk most things, but he’s no fool.”
-
-Big French scratched his head thoughtfully.
-
-“Ah,” he said slowly, “he’s no fool, that’s right enough.” Then he
-looked at Sue furtively out of the corner of his eye. “He’ll be coming
-up here I reckon,” he said.
-
-Sue shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“Well,” she said, “we’ve rum enough for any foreigner, and, if we ain’t
-as fine as the Victory, our liquor’s as good.”
-
-“Eh, what’s that?” Old Gilbot pricked up his ears, the pewter-pot
-halfway to his lips. “Not as fine as the Victory, lass? Who says we
-ain’t as fine as the Victory, any day? Eh? Anywaysh,” he added, his face
-hidden in the nearly empty tankard, “anywaysh, we’ve prettier wenches.”
-
-“You’re right, host--here, rum all round and drink to the wenches.” Big
-French, his hand in his breeches pocket, spoke loudly and the coins
-jingled as he planked them down on the table, and the two girls hastened
-to draw the rum.
-
-“The wenches!” shouted French, one big foot on the form and his tankard
-held high above his head.
-
-“The wenches!” roared the company.
-
-“The wenches!” piped Gilbot happily from his corner.
-
-This pleasant ceremony took some minutes, and Sue and Anny stood
-together smiling at each other, neither giving a thought to the little
-dark-skinned, white-handed Spaniard who was sailing under full canvas
-toward their home.
-
-“I’ll go down to the hard to meet Black’erchief,” said French at last,
-wiping his beard with a green handkerchief.
-
-“I’ll with you.” “And I.” “And I.” Most of the company rose and followed
-the young Goliath to the door.
-
-“Goo’-bye,” said Gilbot, waving his pot. “Come back soon.”
-
-The men laughed and promised.
-
-“The owd devil,” said one man to another as he shut the door behind
-them. “The owd devil hasn’t been sober these four years.” And they went
-off laughing.
-
-“What manner of fellow is that they call Black’erchief Dick’?” said
-Anny, as she collected the empty tankards from the tables.
-
-“A devil,” said one of the men at the fireside.
-
-“Oh!” Anny was not impressed. She had met many strangers who had been
-described to her as devils, and not one to her mind had lived up to the
-description.
-
-“Oh!” said Hal, as he piled fresh logs in the open grate. “‘Tis only a
-foreigner, some Spanish dog or other.”
-
-The man who had spoken before shook his head.
-
-“Ah, you be careful, lad. Dick ain’t the chap to make a foe of in a
-hurry,” he said.
-
-Anny paused for a moment.
-
-“Is he a big man, sir?” she asked.
-
-Sue interposed quickly.
-
-“Not as big as Master French, I reckon,” she said defiantly.
-
-The man laughed.
-
-“Big as French?” he said. “Lord! he ain’t no bigger than you, Anny.”
-
-“Oh!” the two girls looked at one another and laughed.
-
-“Marry, I reckon he’s a devil without horns then, Master Granger,” said
-Sue.
-
-Granger spat before he spoke again.
-
-“I don’t know about horns, Mistress,” he said, “but I reckon his knife
-is good enough for him--ah, and for me, too, for that matter,” he added.
-
-Anny laughed again.
-
-“‘Twould not be enough for me anyway,” she said, fixing a stray curl
-over her ear as she spoke.
-
-Sue looked at her strangely. It was impossible not to like this
-beautiful wild little creature, in whom her uncle, Gilbot, had taken
-such an interest. Yet she could not help wishing that the younger girl
-had been more careful. She was so young, so very beautiful, and the
-company which came to the Ship was not the best in the world.
-
-Sue shrugged her shoulders. It was not her business, she told herself,
-but her eyes followed Anny almost pityingly as the little maid moved
-across the room to speak to Gilbot.
-
-“Master Gilbot,” Anny said, “should we prepare a bedchamber for the
-gentleman?”
-
-Old Gilbot looked at her over the rim of the tankard; then he took one
-of her hands.
-
-“Thou art a pretty wench, Anny,” he observed solemnly. “Will ’ee fetch
-me another stoup of liquor, lass?” he added, brightening up in
-anticipation.
-
-Anny did as she was told and then repeated her question.
-
-“Eh? Bedchamber? Eh? What?” said the old man, his brows screwed into
-knotted lines, and he seemed troubled; after a few minutes, however,
-“Oh! ashk Hal,” he said, his face clearing. “Ashk Hal everything.”
-
-He looked across at the boy affectionately.
-
-“Shly dog,” he murmured, “keepsh me in liquor all day long sho he can
-get the Ship. Ho-ho-ho!” he laughed, shaking all over. “Shly dog--shly
-dog.”
-
-Hal laughed with him and then discussed with Anny and Sue the various
-arrangements for the reception of the visitors. Having settled
-everything to their satisfaction they joined the group about the fire,
-where the talk was still running on the Spaniard.
-
-“Wonderful fighter,” one man was saying. “Oh, a wonderful fighter, take
-my word for it.”
-
-“Ah, you’re right,” said another. “I saw him kill a man with a knife
-throw one time. From right the other side of the room it was. That was
-in a house in Brest, in ’59,” he added reminiscently.
-
-“How old do you reckon him?” said the first man curiously. “I’ve not
-known him more’n a year or so.”
-
-“Well,” the other man’s tone was dubious. “He says he’s thirty and I
-shouldn’t say more. No, I shouldn’t say so much--though it’s wonderful
-the way he manages them foreign dogs he mans his brig with.”
-
-Hal joined in the conversation.
-
-“They’re a rough lot, I expect,” he said.
-
-The men round the fire laughed.
-
-“You’re right there, lad,” said one. “Keep your eye on the rum and
-lasses to-night. Wonderful rough lot they are,” he added. “Oh, wonderful
-rough!”
-
-Hal flushed.
-
-“I reckon the lasses can look after theirselves,” he said gruffly.
-
-Anny put her hand on his shoulder.
-
-“Ay,” she said, “maybe we can, but where’s the need of us troubling when
-you’re by?”
-
-“Bravo, Anny, lass. The girl has wit as well as beauty,” said the man
-addressed as Granger from his seat in the chimney corner, whence he had
-moved to make room for Sue.
-
-“Ay, a fine wench,” said Gilbot, waking for a moment; the others laughed
-and the talk continued cheerily.
-
-“Evening to you all.” The speaker was a man dressed in the usual
-fisherman’s guernsey and breeches. He stood in the doorway, looking in
-on the company round the fire and smiling affably.
-
-Hal looked up quickly and seeing who it was rose at once to meet him.
-
-“Evening, Joe,” he said cheerily. “Come, sit down; what’ll you drink?”
-
-Joseph Pullen smiled and took the seat offered him, and named his
-choice.
-
-Anny was up in a moment to serve him, and his eyes followed her as she
-flitted hither and thither, with a smile for one and a jest for another,
-laughing happily the while. He looked across at Hal.
-
-“Ah, you’re a lucky one, mate,” he observed in a hoarse whisper.
-
-The boy smiled.
-
-“Amy been at you again?” he enquired.
-
-It was well known that Joe and his wife, Amy, were not a happy couple.
-
-The other looked round him.
-
-“She’s a shrew and no mistake, Hal,” he said softly.
-
-Hal laughed.
-
-“You’re right,” he said. “But cheer thyself,” he added, as Anny brought
-a tankard. “Look’ee, Joe, did ever you set eyes on a man called
-Black’erchief Dick?”
-
-“I did that”--Joe’s face appeared red above the pot--“and I set eyes on
-one of his mange-struck crew as well,” he said fiercely.
-
-“Ah, and who might that be?” Granger inquired.
-
-“A black-bearded old Spanish villain called Blueneck. Yes, and what’s
-more, I set eyes on him kissing my wife.”
-
-A roar of laughter greeted this outburst, and Joe looked discomforted.
-
-“I stopped it, of course,” he remarked.
-
-Another roar shook the building. Joe reddened again.
-
-“I don’t see why you’re a-laughing,” he said gruffly.
-
-The men round the fire laughed again.
-
-“I can manage my wife better nor any man here and I’m willing to prove
-it with these,” he said, putting up two bony fists.
-
-The laughter died away and no one spoke for a moment or so. Then Joe,
-all his anger vanished as suddenly as it had come, remarked,
-“Black’erchief Dick, eh? Where did you hear of him? I didn’t know he
-ever came up east.”
-
-“Nor don’t he as a rule,” said Hal, “but he has had to put in here owing
-to the tide. I reckon he’ll be up here soon.”
-
-“Ah, will he now?” Joe’s eyebrows rose expressively, then he put down
-his mug. “Did you say he was putting in here--crew and all?” he asked,
-wiping his mouth.
-
-“Ay,” said Hal, “I reckon so.”
-
-“Ah,” said Joe again, “I’ll be going back to home,” he announced
-suddenly.
-
-Then, as some knowing smiles appeared on the faces in the firelight, he
-added, “Ah, you can laugh, but take my word for it, you keep your
-wenches clear of Spaniards. They have wonderful ways with women.” He
-walked to the door. “See you afore the night’s over, Hal,” he called
-cheerily as he went out.
-
-Under cover of the laughter which burst out as he shut the door behind
-him, Anny whispered to Hal, who was making up the fire, “I would not
-change thee for the King o’ the Spaniards, lad,” and he, turning
-suddenly to look at her, knew that she spoke truth.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-“Marry! Fortune favours her lovers! Greetings, Master French. Damn my
-knife! there is not another on the Island I would rather see than thee
-at this moment.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick stepped out of the open rowboat which had conveyed
-him from the _Coldlight_ and gave a small white hand to Big French, who
-assisted him on to the board pathway which was laid over the soft mud.
-
-“Greetings to you, Captain,” said the young man, and then added slowly,
-“you’re somewhat before your time, ain’t you?”
-
-Black’erchief Dick broke into a storm of curses.
-
-“Ay,” he said at last, “ay, too early for the tide and so forsooth
-compelled--I, Dick Delfazio, compelled, mark you--to put in at this
-God-forsaken corner”--he took in the marshland with a comprehensive wave
-of a graceful arm, and continued sneering--“which is as flat and empty
-as a new-washed platter.”
-
-The big man at his side smiled.
-
-“Nay, prithee, Captain,” he said, “‘tis none so bad.”
-
-The Spaniard turned to him fiercely, but Big French went on quietly: “If
-you be a wanting to stay the brig here for the next tide,” he said,
-“best to take her up the Pyfleet round to the back o’ the Ship--plenty
-o’ water up there,” he added.
-
-Black’erchief Dick shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“The Pyfleet?” he said. “Surely that is Captain Fen de Witt’s haven? I
-would not take advantage of his hiding-place.”
-
-The smile on the big man’s face vanished.
-
-“Lord, Captain!” he said quickly, “you cannot leave the brig in open
-channel all the night. The Preventative folk may not be very spry
-hereabouts, but they ain’t all dead yet--no, not by a long way they
-ain’t.”
-
-The Spaniard replied with another shrug.
-
-“As you wish,” he said, and then with a smile, his teeth flashing in the
-dusk, he added: “But that I need thee to-night, Master Hercules, I would
-not so easily have yielded.”
-
-Big French flushed but he spoke quietly.
-
-“Ah, and what will you be wanting to-night, Captain?” he said.
-
-“Passage in thy cart to the Victory, friend,” replied the Spaniard.
-
-“Oh!” Big French spoke dubiously. “Why do you not rest at the Ship?” he
-enquired.
-
-“The Ship?” the thin lips curled in contempt. “Dick Delfazio stay at a
-wayside tavern? This moon hath made thee mad, friend French.”
-
-Big French sighed involuntarily and the Spaniard laughed.
-
-“A wench?” he asked.
-
-“Nay,” the blood suffused the young man’s handsome face and he spoke
-shortly.
-
-“Well, take me to the Victory,” repeated the Spaniard.
-
-An anxious snuff sounded at his elbow as he spoke. He turned quickly
-just in time to seize Habakkuk Coot by the neck of his guernsey.
-
-“You evil-smelling son of a rat,” he began slowly, giving the little man
-a shake at every word, “get thee back to the brig and tell Blueneck I
-would speak to him.”
-
-With the final word he jerked the wretch off the board pathway and
-watched him flounder in the deep oozing mud.
-
-“Haste thee, dog,” he said, touching him lightly with the blade of his
-knife.
-
-Habakkuk screamed and floundered on for the rowboat, where he was hauled
-in by several of his comrades. The boat then pushed off for the brig.
-
-“You have a wonderful way with your crew, Captain,” said French, looking
-after the boat.
-
-“Ay, of a truth,” the Spaniard laughed. “Cannot Dick Delfazio rule a
-pack of mangy dogs?”
-
-French looked at him narrowly, and then took up the conversation where
-he had left it.
-
-“The Ship is no wayside tavern,” he said. “The folk be simple but the
-liquor good and the wenches pretty, and they are waiting for you to
-come--the maids in their best caps, and the canary warming on the
-hearth.”
-
-Dick looked at him for a moment.
-
-“Master French,” he said, keeping his glittering eyes on the other’s
-face. “Master French, ’tis strange that thou should’st be in this part
-of the Island so ready for my coming, Master French,” he added, his
-voice assuming the soft caressing quality for which it was so
-remarkable. “Dare I suppose that it was not to meet me that thou camest
-to the East? That it was to the Ship thou camest, eh, Master French?”
-
-Once again the big man blushed to his ears but he laughed.
-
-“Ay, Captain,” he said, “you are right there. ’Twas not to meet you I
-came to the East. Prithee tell your men to take the brig down the
-Pyfleet and come with me to the Ship.”
-
-The Spaniard laughed strangely.
-
-“Friend French,” he said, “are thy horses lame?”
-
-The young man looked at him for a moment before he spoke.
-
-“Ay,” he said at last. “Wonderful lame.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick threw back his head and laughed heartily.
-
-“Thou art a brave man, French,” he said, but continued quickly: “There
-is such a lameness as can be cured to-morrow for a trip to Tiptree, eh,
-friend?”
-
-“Ah!” said the big man, nodding his head sagely, “‘tis a wonderful
-strange lameness that they have.”
-
-Dick nodded.
-
-By this time the rowboat had once more come to the plank across the mud.
-Blueneck, a shadowy figure in the darkness, stepped out and came toward
-them.
-
-Dick gave his orders briefly.
-
-“Take the brig up the Pyfleet,” he said. “Any of these fellows will
-pilot thee,” he added, pointing to the group of Mersea men on the wall.
-Then as an afterthought, “and bring five kegs from the hold to me at the
-Ship Tavern.”
-
-A certain amount of enthusiasm among the volunteer pilots was noticeable
-after this last remark, and Blueneck smiled as he replied, “Ay, ay,
-Cap’n.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick and his friend Big French, the smuggler’s carter,
-turned, climbed the wall, and walked together down the lonely road to
-the Ship Tavern without speaking.
-
-“Marry!” said Dick, stopping after they had walked for some five
-minutes, his hand feeling for his knife. “What’s that?”
-
-Big French stopped also and, standing side by side in the middle of the
-road, they listened intently. Apparently just behind the hedge on their
-right a human voice, deep and throaty, said clearly,
-“Rum--rum--rum--rum,” the sound trailing off weirdly on the last word.
-
-The Spaniard crossed himself, but his hand was steady.
-
-“Is’t a spirit?” he said.
-
-“Nay,” Big French’s voice came stifled from his mouth.
-
-The Spaniard drew his knife. “Then I’ll have at it,” he said.
-
-Once again the stifled monosyllable broke from the younger man’s lips.
-
-Black’erchief Dick looked at his guide quickly. By the faint light of
-the winter moon he saw the man’s face was distorted strangely--once
-again the ghostly voice behind the hedge said distinctly,
-“Rum--rum--ru----.”
-
-“Ho! ho! ho!” roared French, his laughter suddenly breaking forth.
-“Peace, Mother Swayle,” he shouted, “by our lakin! you had us well-nigh
-feared with your greeting.”
-
-The Spaniard sheathed his knife.
-
-“If ’tis a friend of thine, Master French,” he said, shrugging his
-shoulders, “‘tis of no offence to me. Though by my faith,” he added, as
-a dark figure in flowing garments bounded over the hedge and stood by
-the roadside, “‘tis strange company you keep.”
-
-The tall gaunt woman addressed as Mother Swayle shrank back into the
-hedge.
-
-“Who is it with thee, Big French?” she said in her deep, tired voice.
-
-“Black’erchief Dick, new landed by the wall,” said French.
-
-“Ah! I know naught of him--Peace, good swine--farewell, Rum!”
-
-There was a note of finality in the last word and Big French started to
-walk on. “Rum,” he said over his shoulder, and added to Dick in an
-undertone, “‘Tis only a poor crone--peace to her--her wit’s diseased.”
-
-“Oh!” the Spaniard felt the pocket of his coat and pulled out a silver
-dollar. “Here, mother of sin,” he said as he tossed it to her, “buy
-thyself rum withal. Almsgiving is a noble virtue,” he added piously to
-French as they prepared to walk on. Hardly had the words left his lips
-when his silver dollar hit him on the back of the head with considerable
-force.
-
-“May you burn, you mange-struck ronyon,” the deep voice grew shrill in
-its intensity. “All men are villains and you are a king among them.”
-
-With a foreign oath the Spaniard turned about.
-
-“Rum--rum--r-u-m,” the voice faded away and they heard the patter of
-feet down the road.
-
-Black’erchief Dick laughed sharply.
-
-“It is well for Mother Swayle that she lives in the East,” he said, his
-eyes glittering. “Were she in the West she would take my bounty, if
-not----” He laughed unpleasantly.
-
-Big French looked at him anxiously, uncertain how the fiery Spaniard had
-taken the old woman’s vagaries.
-
-“The old one was ducked as a witch in the merrymaking at the Restoring
-of the King,” he said at last. “She was not quite drowned,” he
-continued, “so the folk--wenches mostly--look up to her and as I said,
-Captain, her wit’s diseased.”
-
-Dick shrugged his silken-coated shoulders.
-
-“‘Tis no matter,” he said with a wave of his hand.
-
-Big French sighed in relief and they walked on in silence for a minute
-or so. They were now some four hundred yards from the Ship. The high
-building with its great thatch showed a dark outline against the cold
-starlight, but all the uncurtained lower windows showed the warm glow
-within and from the partly open door the sound of singing came out to
-them on the cold breeze.
-
-The two unconsciously hastened their steps. When they reached the gate
-of the courtyard the words of the song could be heard clearly above the
-noise of laughter and banging of pewter.
-
- “_Pretty Poll she loved a sailor_”
-
-Gilbot’s voice was piping a little in advance of the rest.
-
- “_And well she loved he,_
- _But he sailed to the mouth_
- _Of a stream in the South_
- _And was losht in the rolling sea._
- _And was losht in the rolling sea._”
-
-Dick straightened his lace ruffles at his throat.
-
-“The dogs seem merry,” he observed as he kicked open the door and
-stepped into the candle-lit kitchen of the Ship.
-
-All eyes were immediately turned on him, and he stood perfectly still
-for some seconds enjoying to the full the impression he was making.
-
-The Ship’s company was used to the simple finery of Captain Fen de Witt
-and his men, and most of them had been to the western end of the Island
-and had seen strangers who had come, it was whispered, from London
-itself, but Dick’s magnificence was wholly new to most of them, while
-even those who had seen him before were surprised at the contrast which
-his glistening figure made with the sombre background of the Ship
-kitchen’s smoke-blackened walls.
-
-Hal stood staring at him as long as any of the others, and Mistress Sue
-let the rum she was drawing fill up one of the great pewter tankards and
-spill over on to the stones before she noticed it, so intently did she
-look at the stranger in the doorway.
-
-Gilbot alone took no notice of the visitor. He sat happily in his place
-by the fireside, his head thrown back a little and his eyes closed,
-beating time to imaginary singing with his empty pot.
-
-Joe Pullen was the first to speak. He had just entered by a side door
-and apparently was entirely unimpressed by the Spaniard or any one else.
-
-“Evening,” he remarked, as he walked over to the most comfortable seat
-in the chimney-corner and sat down. “Evening to you too, sir,” he said,
-noticing Dick for the first time--and then he added, peering out of the
-fireplace, “Mistress Sue, a rum if you please.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick, noting that the spell was broken, swaggered forward
-into the firelight.
-
-“Greeting, friends,” he said courteously, and then after looking round
-curiously his eyes rested on Gilbot. “Is this mine host?” he asked.
-
-Gilbot’s eyes opened slowly and his jaw dropped as he saw for the first
-time the splendidly garbed figure.
-
-“Eh?” he said at last. “Washt?” He tried to rise but gave it up as an
-impossibility, his brow clouded, and he turned his tankard upside down
-on his knee.
-
-Dick stood looking at him, a slight smile hovering round his mouth and
-twitching the sides of his big Jewish nose.
-
-Gilbot’s face cleared as suddenly as it had clouded.
-
-“Ashk Hal,” he said triumphantly, and leaning back once more he closed
-his eyes.
-
-The Spaniard shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“You mistress?” he said, turning to Sue who dropped a curtsey. “Can I
-have a bedchamber here this night?”
-
-Sue replied that all was ready for him, and Dick, having assured himself
-that everything was to his liking, put his hand into his pocket and
-drawing out a handful of gold and silver coins tossed them lightly on
-the table.
-
-“Drinks all round, I pray you, mistress,” he said.
-
-There was a slight stir among the company, and the Spaniard was regarded
-with still more respect.
-
-Sue stood looking at the coins, her hands on her hips. “‘Tis much too
-much,” she murmured.
-
-Black’erchief Dick laughed.
-
-“Marry! Then, mistress, ’twill do for the next lot. I pray thee haste,
-my throat is parched,” he said.
-
-Sue, her eyes round with admiration, curtseyed again and ran to the
-inner door.
-
-“Anny, lass, come hither I prithee,” she called, and then hastened to
-obey the Spaniard.
-
-Anny stepped in unnoticed a moment or two later, and busied herself with
-the tankards.
-
-Dick was sitting with his back toward her and she did not see him.
-
-“Here, lass,” said Sue, seeing her, “the foreigner would drink
-sack--wilt get it for him?”
-
-There was not much call for Canary sack at the Ship, so Anny was some
-minutes finding and tapping a cask. When she returned from the cellar, a
-flagon in her hand, the talk had become more animated and one or two
-lively spirits had started a song, but above the noise a voice
-penetrating although musical was saying loudly, “Marry, Master French,
-do you never drink aught but rum in the East that a gentleman is kept
-waiting ten minutes for a cup of sack?”
-
-French’s deep tones replied slowly:
-
-“Nay, Captain, very little else but rum; sack be only for gentlefolk.”
-
-Anny hastened forward.
-
-“Here’s for you, sir,” she said briskly, and then stopped, awe-struck
-before the Spaniard, dazzled by his appearance.
-
-Black’erchief Dick stretched out a white jewelled hand for the tankard
-without looking at the girl.
-
-“Thank thee, mistress,” he said carelessly, lifting it to his lips.
-
-Still Anny did not move and Hal Grame, looking up from the rum keg which
-he was tapping, cursed the Spaniard’s clothes with that honest venom
-which is only known to youth.
-
-“Ah, a good draught!” The Spaniard put down the pot and touched his lips
-with a lace-edged handkerchief.
-
-“Mistress, another by your leave,” he said suddenly. Then his gaze, too,
-became fixed, his dark eyes taking in every detail of her face.
-
-“God’s Fool!” he exclaimed. “Mistress, you are wondrous fair.”
-
-Anny blushed and, her senses returning to her, she curtseyed and taking
-up the empty tankard tripped off with a gentle--“As you wish,” as she
-went.
-
-Black’erchief Dick stared after her for a second or two before he turned
-to French.
-
-“By my faith, Master French, you have no poor skill in choosing a
-wench,” he said.
-
-Big French laughed and reddened.
-
-“Oh!” he said carelessly. “‘Tis not she but the other I would have
-favour from.”
-
-The Spaniard darted a look of misbelief at his big companion, but he
-said nothing, for Anny had returned and was standing before him, a
-brimming tankard in her hand.
-
-Black’erchief Dick took the wine and set it by untasted, but retained
-the brown hand which was even smaller than his own and held it firmly.
-
-“Mistress,” he said, and Anny thought she had never seen such bright
-merry eyes, “would you deem it an offence if I asked you your name?”
-
-Anny smiled and curtseyed as she pulled away her hand.
-
-“There be no more offence in asking my name than in holding my hand,
-sir,” she said. “‘Tis Anny Farren, an you please so.”
-
-“Anny, a good name and a simple,” said the Spaniard, choosing to ignore
-the first remark. “Now tell me, fair Anny,” he continued, “hast ever
-been told how beautiful thou art?”
-
-The girl looked round. No one in the noisy company round the fire was
-listening to them and a gleam of mischief twinkled in her eyes before
-she dropped them as she turned again to the Spaniard.
-
-“Nay, sir,” she said. “Neither has my mirror.”
-
-“Then ’tis a right vile and lying thing, mistress,” said Dick, “for by
-my knife”--here he drew the slender thing from his chased silver belt
-and held it up to the light--“I never saw a comelier lass than thee.”
-
-Anny looked at the knife curiously.
-
-“‘Tis a pretty weapon you have, sir,” she said innocently.
-
-Dick laughed.
-
-“Pretty!” he said. “Ah, fair Anny, I would not send the blood from those
-bright cheeks of thine by telling thee what this same dagger and this
-right hand have together accomplished.”
-
-“Oh, never mind the wenches, Captain, let’s have the story,” said one of
-the group at the fire, the company’s attention having been drawn to the
-Spaniard on the appearance of the knife. Black’erchief Dick stood up.
-
-“Sack for everyone,” he said grandiloquently as he threw another handful
-of coins on the tressled table. And then as the tankards were passed
-round, “To the fairest wench on the Island, Fair Anny of the Ship,” he
-said, lifting his tankard above his head.
-
-The toast was given with a will. The Spaniard was in a fair way to win
-popularity.
-
-“‘Tis a fine gentleman, Hal,” whispered Anny to her sweetheart under
-cover of the general hub-bub.
-
-“Ay, a deal too fine,” replied the boy, putting a pot down with such
-violence that all the others rattled and clinked against one another
-with the shock.
-
-Anny laughed.
-
-“Thou art very foolish, O Hal o’ mine,” she said softly.
-
-“There be more tales to tell o’ this dagger than will suffice for one
-evening.”
-
-The Spaniard’s voice was once more raised in a flaunting tone. “Let it
-be enough,” he continued, “to say that it hath some ninety lives to
-answer for.”
-
-There was a general gasp at this information and a slow smile spread
-over Black’erchief Dick’s face as he noted their amazement.
-
-“It will be wonderful old I reckon?” Joe Pullen put the question
-quietly, but as though he expected an answer in the affirmative.
-
-“Nay,” the Spaniard smiled again, “‘twas of my own killings I was
-talking,” he said.
-
-“Oh!” Joe Pullen leant back and closed his eyes as though bored with the
-conversation.
-
-This procedure seemed to irritate the Spaniard, for he said suddenly,
-“Look, friend, ’tis a fair weapon,” and he threw the glittering thing at
-the man in the high-backed seat with a seemingly careless jerk of the
-wrist. The dagger shot through the air, a streak of glistening steel,
-and fastened itself in the wood half an inch above Joe’s head.
-
-Sue shrieked, but there was a murmur of admiration at the feat from the
-men looking on.
-
-Lazily Joe Pullen sat up and wrenched the blade out of the soft wood; he
-studied the dagger carefully.
-
-“Ah!” he said at last, an expression of polite interest on his face, “a
-wonderful fine throw that, sir,” and then added, the knife poised
-delicately between a clumsy thumb and forefinger, “I wonder now could I
-do that?” He raised his hand and appeared to be taking aim directly at
-the Spaniard’s head.
-
- “_And was losht in the rolling sea_,”
-
-murmured Gilbot, his head fell forward on his chest and his pot,
-slipping off his knee, fell clattering on the stones. The noise woke
-him, and he looked up just in time to see Pullen, knife in hand,
-standing in the middle of the room.
-
-“Eh? eh?” the old man’s voice had the remnant of a note of authority in
-it. “Put down t’ knife, lad. Ain’t no good in knives.” His head fell
-forward on his chest again. “Why not shing happy shong?” he mumbled.
-
-Joe grinned. “Ah,” he said slowly, “maybe the old’n’s right.” He handed
-the knife to the Spaniard who took it without a word. “I might have hit
-you--I ain’t a very good hand wi’ knives,” he said pleasantly.
-
-The Spaniard smiled graciously. “Doubtless you will learn,” he said, his
-jauntiness returning, and then continuing, “Fair Mistress Anny, will you
-see these tapped?” and he pointed to five rum kegs which Blueneck,
-Habakkuk Coot, and one or two others of the _Coldlight’s_ crew had just
-brought in. “Rum all round,” he said, “and the charge to me.”
-
-By the time his last command had been obeyed, the company in the Ship
-was more noisy than before, and, answering to the call for a song, old
-Gilbot, having been assisted to his feet, leaned his back against the
-nearest ale barrel and quavered forth in a voice which evidently had
-once been very tuneful:
-
- “_Oh, no one remembers poor Will_
- _Who shtayed by hish mate at the mill;_
- _He ground up more bonesh_
- _Than barley or stonesh,_
- _And more than old Rowley could kill._”
-
-“More bones, more bones,” roared the company as the rum flowed more
-freely.
-
- “_More bones! more bones!_
- _And more than old Rowley could kill._”
-
-“Ah, ha, may the Lord bless ye, fine gentlemen, and could ye spare a
-drop o’ rum for a poor woman to take to her man who’s dying o’ the
-cold?”
-
-This request, uttered in a high-pitched whining voice coming from just
-behind the half-opened door, startled the revellers and they paused to
-listen, all eyes being fastened on the door. They watched it open a
-little farther, and round it just below the latch appeared the head of
-an old woman. The face, red and coarse, smiled leeringly, and the gray
-elf locks above it were matted and ill-kempt.
-
-Anny, who was standing near Black’erchief Dick, caught her breath.
-
-“Lord! ’Tis Pet Salt,” she whispered as she shrank against the table.
-
-The Spaniard dropped a hand over hers unnoticed by any one save
-Hal--“Why shudderest thou, wench?” he said softly. Anny slipped her hand
-away.
-
-“‘Tis naught,” she said.
-
-“Will ’ee spare a little rum, fair gentlemen?”
-
-The old woman came a little farther into the room, disclosing a body so
-bent and twisted as to be hardly human. She came nearer, the firelight
-flickered on her, and a murmur rose from the company, she was so ragged
-and scarred. The Spaniard looked at her critically, then he turned to
-French.
-
-“You have strange crones up this part of the Island, friend,” he
-observed.
-
-French laughed.
-
-“Oh, this one won’t treat your almsgiving the way Nan Swayle did,” he
-said.
-
-At the sound of the name, Nan Swayle, an extraordinary change came over
-the terrible old figure in the firelight. She straightened herself with
-a fearful effort and, her small eyes blazing with fury, broke forth into
-such a stream of horrible epithets that the rough company of the Ship
-looked at one another shamefacedly.
-
-“Peace, hag,” the Spaniard strode out from the crowd and touched the old
-woman with the tip of his forefinger.
-
-Pet Salt stopped, and, seeing the gaudy figure in front of her, fell on
-her knees and holding up a fat, begrimed hand recommenced her whining.
-
-Dick stood there for a second or two, and then turned his head.
-“Blueneck,” he said, “bring out a small rum keg.”
-
-The old woman fell snivelling at his feet.
-
-The Spaniard kicked her gently.
-
-“O mother of many evils,” he said, “get thee out of this room with thy
-keg, methinks the air stinks with thee.”
-
-Blueneck stepped forward, jerked the woman to her feet, and put the rum
-on the floor beside her. Mumbling blessings, thanks, and curses, she
-stumbled out of the open door, the keg clasped in her arms.
-
-Dick watched her go and then turning to Sue: “Mistress, I would wash my
-hands,” he said, looking at the tip of his forefinger.
-
-Sue ran to get water and the company began to break up for the night.
-
-“Good-night to ’ee,” shouted Hal, as Joe Pullen went out, “may thy wife
-be sleeping sound.”
-
-“Would she were sleeping with a heavenly soundness, mate,” replied the
-other as he shut the door behind him.
-
-The crew of the _Coldlight_ went off in a body to their ship, rolling
-and singing happily.
-
-Sue and Hal assisted the old landlord to his room, a nightly duty of
-theirs, and Anny flitted about getting candles for the visitors.
-
-Dick looked at Big French as they stood for a moment alone together
-before the dying fire.
-
-“Methinks thy horses will not have recovered from their lameness by
-to-morrow, friend French,” he said, as Anny, two lighted candles in her
-hand, appeared at an inner doorway.
-
-French followed the direction of the other’s eyes, then he shrugged his
-broad shoulders.
-
-“As you wish, Captain,” he said carelessly, and wondered why the
-Spaniard should laugh so triumphantly at his answer.
-
-Some minutes later all was still in the Ship Tavern. Hal Grame alone
-stood before the fast-graying embers in the kitchen, thinking miserably.
-For the first time since he could remember, his childhood’s sweetheart
-had forgotten to kiss him as she bade him good-night.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-“An excellent repast, fair mistress, and one I warrant you well
-appreciated.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick pushed the empty platter from before him, leaned back
-in his seat, and looked round the room with approval.
-
-It was six o’clock in the morning; and although only a faint grayish
-light was beginning to steal in the windows and the air was cool and
-slightly rum-tainted, the kitchen in the old Ship Inn presented a
-cheerful and lively scene of domestic bustle. The fire, though newly
-lighted, blazed brightly and the logs, some with the hoar-frost still
-glittering on them, crackled and spat merrily.
-
-Hal, his boyish face glowing after a hasty splash at the well-nigh
-frozen pump, hastened to and fro from the scullery to the kitchen,
-bearing great trays of newly washed tankards, while Sue, a little paler
-than on the preceding night, but all the same retaining most of her
-usual good humour, her sleeves rolled high above her elbows and a
-sail-cloth apron tied about her waist, appeared from time to time in the
-open doorway between the kitchen and the back scullery, whence the
-pleasant smell of cooking emerged.
-
-Gilbot was yet abed but his seat with its old hay-stuffed cushions was
-put in readiness for his coming, in his favourite corner by the
-fireplace.
-
-One of the long tressle-tables had been pulled out into the wider part
-of the room clear of the high-backed seats and it was here, one at
-either end of the table, that Black’erchief Dick and Big French sat in
-tall, wooden, box-like chairs, finishing the first meal of the day.
-
-Anny waited on them.
-
-This morning she was more beautiful than on the evening before. At least
-so thought the Spaniard as he watched her trip to and fro with a wooden
-platter or an earthen pitcher of home-brewed ale in her hands. Her
-cheeks seemed to him to have more colour in them, her little bare feet,
-as they pattered over the stones, more elasticity and lightness of
-touch, and her wonderful, shadowed green eyes, more mirth and gaiety
-than he had noticed before. As she moved about she sang little snatches
-of old songs in a lulling, childish voice, tuneful and sweet.
-
- “_My father’s gone a-roving--a-roving--a-roving,_
- _My father’s gone a-roving across the raging sea,_
- _With a feather in his stocking cap,_
- _A new son on his rocking lap,_
- _My father’s gone a-roving and never thinks o’ me._”
-
-The Spaniard’s white fingers kept time to the simple refrain almost
-without his knowing it; he caught himself silently repeating the words
-after her, and he laughed abruptly and then looked round him so fiercely
-that none dared ask the jest.
-
-It was absurd, he told himself, he, Black’erchief Dick, smuggler, chief
-of all the Eastern coast, Captain of the _Coldlight_, and owner of six
-other good sailing-vessels in the trade, to waste his time humming tunes
-after a serving-wench, a pretty lass of some seventeen years, who served
-rum to a pack of greasy fishermen in a wayside tavern on the almost
-uninhabited end of a mud island, when there were women in France, in
-Spain--he shrugged his shoulders, and to take his thoughts off the girl
-he ran his mind over the events of the preceding night.
-
-“Friend,” he said suddenly, wiping his lips with a dainty handkerchief,
-“that same woman who so vilely returned my alms yesternight, what say’st
-thou is her name?”
-
-Big French sat up and yawned.
-
-“Oh!” he said, “that was Nan Swayle.”
-
-At the sound of his voice Anny, who had been attending to the fire on
-the other side of the room, came forward and stood at the end of the
-table, looking at the pair with wide-open, serious eyes.
-
-“Nan Swayle,” the Spaniard rolled the name round his tongue
-thoughtfully. “Ah, didst say she had been ducked as a witch?”
-
-Big French laughed.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “at the Restoration of the King, and a mirthful figure
-she made, Captain, her thumbs and great toes tied crossways--so,” and he
-chuckled at the thought of it.
-
-Anny leant forward, her face flushed and her eyes bright. “A cruel jest,
-Master French, to so ill-treat a poor woman as far from being a witch as
-you an angel.”
-
-Black’erchief Dick regarded her excited little form and earnest eyes
-with open admiration.
-
-“Marry, Mistress,” he said, “what a friend thou art to Mother Swayle!
-May I ask what she has done for thee?”
-
-Anny dropped her eyes before the Spaniard’s smile.
-
-“She was ever good to me, sir,” she said.
-
-Big French grinned.
-
-“Ay, Anny,” he said, “Nan Swayle’s good will is about all which thy
-grandsire has ever given you, isn’t it?”
-
-The girl flushed and Sue and Hal stepped forward to listen.
-
-Dick looked puzzled.
-
-“Thy grandsire, Mistress?” he enquired.
-
-Anny reddened again.
-
-“‘Tis an old story, sir,” she murmured.
-
-“Prithee, Master French,” the Spaniard turned lazily and looked at the
-young man. “Prithee tell it.”
-
-French shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“‘Tis naught,” he said carelessly, “save that in their youth old Ben
-Farran--the lass’s grandsire--and Nan Swayle, a sweet wench they say she
-was then--’tis strange what the rum will do to a woman’s face--well,
-Captain, they were--as you might say, sweethearts.”
-
-He raised his eyes to Sue at the last word, but she was engrossed in the
-Spaniard, and looking away again he went on: “Well, Captain--Ben was a
-sailor--on the _Eliza_ he was--and there he got the taste for rum pretty
-bad, and Nan, she couldn’t get the stuff for him so when Pet Salt came
-along--Pet o’ the Saltings she was then--with her begging tricks, the
-old devil left the one for the other. That’s all,” he concluded.
-
-“Ah!” the Spaniard smiled, “a pretty story,” and then turning to Anny,
-“And so, Mistress, Nan Swayle hath a soft heart for thee, eh?”
-
-“Ay, sir, she is very good to Red and me,” Anny said demurely.
-
-“Red? And who might Red be?” The Spaniard looked up quickly. “A lover?”
-
-Anny blushed again.
-
-“Nay, sir, my little brother,” she said softly. “He lives with Mother
-Swayle.”
-
-“So!” The thin, straight eyebrows on the olive brow rose in two arches.
-“I thought thy mother died when thou wast born?”
-
-Big French broke in quickly.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “she did. The lad, Red, a fine child and one I love, was
-brought home from the South by young Ruddy, the wench’s father, the trip
-before his last--drowned he was, peace to him.”
-
-“Oh!” the eyebrows straightened themselves. Black’erchief Dick turned
-once more to Anny. “And so my little beauty hath only Nan Swayle to take
-care of her,” he said, smiling at her kindly as though she had been a
-child.
-
-“Nay!” The word escaped from Hal Grame’s lips before he had time to stop
-it. Immediately the Spaniard’s glittering black eyes were turned on the
-young Norseman. They took in every detail of his appearance, the coarse
-scarlet homespun shirt, the white throat, and girlish pink and white
-face crowned with golden-yellow elf locks, and the deep blue eyes which
-faltered and fell before the Spaniard’s as they bent on the boy in an
-amused stare.
-
-“Indeed, sir, and who else?” Black’erchief Dick spoke negligently, the
-smile still on his lips.
-
-The boy blushed and would not meet the other’s eyes.
-
-“We look after our wenches at the Ship,” he said gruffly.
-
-Dick laughed.
-
-“Of course you do, O knight of the Spigot,” he said genially. “Believe
-me, sir, I had no meaning to cast a slur upon the fame of your house.”
-
-“Ah, ’tis well, then,” and without looking up Hal began to clear away
-the delf from the now dismantled table.
-
-Dick watched him march off with a tray of dirty crockery in his hands,
-then he shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Marry, what a joskin!” he said at last.
-
-Anny opened her mouth to speak but checked herself and laughed instead.
-
-Dick looked up at her.
-
-“Mistress,” he said, “might I beg thee to hie to the gate and tell me if
-thou see’st aught of my rapscallion mate, Master Blueneck?”
-
-“Ay, sir.”
-
-Anny was halfway to the door when Sue ran after her.
-
-“I’ll with thee,” she said.
-
-Dick looked after them.
-
-“A marvellous pretty wench but wondrous evilly clothed,” he said.
-
-“What, Sue?” Big French spoke in great surprise. The Spaniard smiled.
-
-“Cunning dog!” he said under his breath. “Nay, ’twas the other I meant,”
-he said quietly.
-
-“Oh!” Big French laughed. “The lass has to wear her mistress’s
-cast-off,” he said.
-
-“Indeed. Her mistress? Is Sue then mistress of the Ship?”
-
-“Mistress Sue,” said French, laying stress on the first word, “is niece
-to Master Gilbot.”
-
-“Eh? eh? What’s that?” said Gilbot, who had just come in, looking up at
-the sound of his name. “Plague on you all disturbing me,” And then
-looking round, “Where’s Hal?”
-
-“You are out of humour this morning, host,” observed the Spaniard
-good-humouredly.
-
-“No,” Gilbot’s voice quavered more than ever. “Ain’t had time to get
-happy yet, that’s all.”
-
-“Oh!” Dick looked up, his eyes twinkling merrily. “Will you drink a
-stoup of sack with me, mine host?”
-
-Gilbot brightened visibly.
-
-“Be happy to,” he said quickly and then called loudly for Hal, who
-presently came in flushed and still a little sulky.
-
-Dick gave the order, and the boy obeyed sullenly, slopping a good gill
-of the wine over the side of the tankard as he handed it to the
-Spaniard. Then suddenly, as though realizing the absurdity of his
-childishness, he drew it back, and, mumbling something about not quite
-the full measure, filled it up again, wiped the pewter with the skirt of
-his sacking apron before he once more offered it to the Spaniard, who
-stood looking through the open door without apparently having noticed
-the boy at all. Now, however, he took the tankard, drained it at a
-draught and threw down a silver coin by way of payment.
-
-“Marry, master tapster,” he said approvingly, “I do not look to find a
-sweeter cup of sack any place from here to the New World--another, I
-prithee,” and added, as Hal set it before him, “An I grow this
-partiality for sweet sack, Hal, methinks I shall needs have to borrow
-the belt of that merry knight, John Falstaff, whom I saw in a foolish
-piece at the playhouse when last I visited London, that city of evil
-stenches.”
-
-Hal did not follow the jest, but in spite of this and his present
-ill-humour, he was forced to laugh with the spry little Spaniard who
-chuckled so mirthfully, and whose bright sparkling eyes were dancing as
-they glanced at him over the tankard’s rim.
-
-At this moment Anny entered the kitchen and Dick, seeing her, raised his
-rumkin.
-
-“To the health of Mother Swayle’s charge,” he said, smiling.
-
-Gilbot looked up suddenly.
-
-“Mother Swayle?” he said in surprise, and then added confidentially to
-Dick, “Terrible old woman--in liquor nearly all the day--oh,
-disgusting.” He finished his draught, smacked his lips, and wiped them
-with the back of his hand. “Ah, you’re right, sir, wonderful sack we
-sells,” he remarked.
-
-The Spaniard suggested that he should take another and Gilbot cheerfully
-accepted.
-
-“Master Blueneck is coming up the road, an it please you, sir,” said
-Sue, coming in from the courtyard.
-
-“Ah, I thank thee, Mistress,” said the Spaniard courteously as he turned
-to help Anny lift an unusually heavy log on to the cracking fire, but
-Sue curtseyed and blushed as though he had looked at her with the same
-fire in his glance as lurked in the one which he bestowed on the younger
-girl, and her lip trembled as he turned away. All this which he saw and
-a great deal more which he thought he saw made Master Ezekiel French
-bite his honey-coloured beard and swear many oaths and curses against
-the slim white-handed little foreigner who chatted so gallantly with the
-wenches of the Ship.
-
-Blueneck, entering at this moment, was surprised to see his master
-talking so earnestly with a chit of a child who as he rightly guessed
-had not more than seventeen years to her credit.
-
-“The brig is due to start in five minutes if we mean to catch the tide,
-Captain,” he said.
-
-“Ah, Master Blueneck,” the Spaniard turned affably, “and if we missed
-the tide what terrible mishap would that be?”
-
-The sailor shuffled uneasily.
-
-“You’re merry, Captain,” he said.
-
-“Ay, Blueneck, I am, indeed, so merry that I cannot abear to have a man
-with a face as long as the yard-arm about me. Here, my young host,” he
-hailed Hal from the fireplace. “Give this dog some of thy famous sack,
-make him light-hearted as I,” and he turned once more to the two girls
-and Big French.
-
-“Master French,” he said, “I trust to meet thee at the Victory this
-even, with thy three horses in the courtyard, and a trip to Tiptree in
-thy mind.”
-
-French looked pleased and would have entered into business details with
-the Captain, but the other cut him short.
-
-“Marry, Master French,” the Spaniard’s tone was reproachful, “you would
-not pester me with tales of rum kegs and silk bales when I have but
-three minutes to bid farewell to two fair beauties even though it be but
-for three days?”
-
-“Three days?” Sue spoke in pleasure, French in surprise, and Blueneck in
-genuine alarm.
-
-The Spaniard looked up.
-
-“Yes,” he said carelessly, “methinks this eastern end of the Island more
-suited to my needs than the west. In three days’ time I shall return,
-and rest me at the sign of the Ship for a while.”
-
-Big French looked at him in amazement and Blueneck swore under his
-breath at his master’s eccentricities.
-
-Sue smiled.
-
-“All will be ready for you, sir,” she said. “I thank you.”
-
-The Spaniard bowed, sweeping the floor with his big hat. “Farewell,
-Mistresses,” he said gallantly as they curtseyed, rather abashed at his
-Spanish courtesy.
-
-“And now Master French,” he continued, “if thou wilt accompany me to the
-wall we will discuss that little matter of a trip to Tiptree.”
-
-French looked at the debonair little figure half-irritated by the
-underlying note of command in his voice, but on the other hand half
-charmed by an indescribable air of perfect freedom which seemed to be
-exhaled from him.
-
-“I’m coming, Captain,” he said, and nodded to the girls before he turned
-to follow Black’erchief Dick, who with another bow marched out of the
-open door, Blueneck after him.
-
-Sue went to the door and watched them going down the road; Big French, a
-handsome figure in his blue coat, strode beside the slight, gaudily clad
-little Spaniard whose head hardly reached a foot above the carter’s
-belt, while Blueneck trudged alone behind. “Ah,” said she, her eyes
-fixed on the small, almost insignificant figure in the distance, “what a
-gallant gentleman!”
-
-Anny laughed.
-
-“Maybe,” she said, “but I don’t hold with gentlefolk,” and she walked
-across the room to where Hal was adding up the yesterday’s reckonings.
-
-“Hal,” she said as she sat down beside him, “I did not kiss thee last
-night when you bade me good-night.”
-
-Hal kept his eyes fixed on the slate in front of him, but he ceased to
-take any account of the figures thereon.
-
-“Hal,” said Anny again coaxingly. “Thou didst not kiss me when I said
-good-night to thee.”
-
-The boy did not raise his eyes and the girl moved a little closer to
-him.
-
-“Hal,” she said plaintively. Still he did not move. “Hal,” said Anny
-again. “O, very well,” she added, a catch in her voice, “if thou wilt
-not----” And she rose to her feet.
-
-“What do you want, maid?” said Hal gruffly, albeit somewhat hastily.
-
-Anny sat down again.
-
-“I owe you a kiss, Hal,” she said softly, twisting her fingers together
-as they lay on her lap.
-
-“Well?” Hal’s tone was still gruff.
-
-“You owe me a kiss, Hal,” she said without looking at him.
-
-“Well?” the boy drew crosses and rings round the side of the slate.
-
-Anny sighed.
-
-“You were adding the reckonings, Hal, and I want to pay mine,” she said.
-
-“I’m sorry I doubted thee, Anny, but the Spaniard is so fine,” said Hal,
-a moment or two later, all debts having been squared.
-
-Anny laughed happily.
-
-“‘Tis not you but Big French who should be afeared of the Spaniard,” she
-said, looking over toward Sue, who was still staring through the open
-door. As though aware that she was being spoken of the girl turned
-round.
-
-“Anny, lass,” she called. “Come, I would talk to thee.”
-
-Anny rose.
-
-“Foolish one,” she whispered to Hal as her lips brushed his ear.
-
-Hal watched her go lightly across the room and then returned to his
-reckoning much comforted, but he reflected as he worked that whether she
-had paid him back or not Anny Farren had certainly forgotten to kiss him
-on the night that Dick Delfazio, the Spaniard, first came to the Ship
-Inn.
-
-Meanwhile, Sue and Anny stood together in the doorway deep in talk.
-
-“But, Anny,” Sue was saying, as she held out the skirt of her gown for
-the other’s inspection, “think you ’twill serve another winter?”
-
-Anny looked at it for a moment; then she displayed her own. “‘Tis much
-better than mine, Mistress Sue,” she said.
-
-“Oh! but you need not look so neat as I,” Sue spoke quickly and without
-thinking. But, seeing the other girl’s lip tremble, she put an arm round
-her slim shoulders.
-
-“Nay, I did not mean to speak so,” she said kindly. “I was thinking but
-of myself; see, lass, when Master French next goes to Tiptree he shall
-bring me a new length of flannel from the market, and I will give thee
-this gown, for, truly, thine is very old.”
-
-Anny looked up and smiled; the gift of one of Sue’s old gowns was an
-event for her.
-
-“Thank thee kindly, mistress,” she said, as Sue shook out the folds of
-the faded purple homespun frock and tightened the lacing of the corsage.
-“‘Tis not so bad,” she said.
-
-Anny looked at it with pleasure and she laughed happily. “Nay,” she
-said, “it will suit me well, I thank you, mistress.”
-
-Sue bent and kissed her.
-
-“You’re a good wench, Anny,” she said, “in spite of yourself.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-
-“Sit where you are, Joseph Pullen, and hold your peace, and be thankful
-you have a wife who knows your mind without you for ever speaking of
-it.”
-
-Mistress Amy Pullen, her kirtle hitched up at one side to give her
-greater freedom in the discharge of her household duties, strode across
-her small kitchen, an earthenware bowl of cold fatty broth in her hands
-and two small children hanging at her petticoats.
-
-The kitchen, which was very small, served also as a general living room
-for the Pullen family, and this evening, four or five days after Captain
-Dick had first left the Ship Inn, it was crowded. Joe, debarred from his
-favourite seat by his wife, who liked the whole of the fire to cook at,
-sat in a corner on a heap of miscellaneous lumber, a net which he was
-mending spread around him. In addition to the two little mites who hung
-on to their mother as though life itself depended on it, three other
-children were in the room, one baby of a year or so was nursed by
-another, a pretty fair-haired little girl of eight or nine, who sat on a
-roughly made-up bed built into the wall opposite the fireplace. She
-amused the child by making quaint shadows on the wall with her hand in
-the flickering firelight, and save for the clatter of the cooking, the
-baby’s happy gurgles and half-spoken words of delight were the only
-sounds in the warm little room. The third child, a boy of ten, even now
-remarkably like his father, sat on the lowest rung of a wide wooden
-ladder which led to two little rooms above the kitchen, with a skep of
-small onions at his side and a knife in his hand. As he peeled the
-onions the tears ran down his cheeks and he sniffed at intervals.
-
-Joe looked up over his net at the boy.
-
-“Tant, hold thy peace,” he said.
-
-The child sniffed again.
-
-“I can’t hold it, ’tis these,” he said, wiping his eyes on his jersey
-sleeve, and indicating the skep with one dirty little foot. Joe grunted,
-and the child went on peeling, his tears falling faster and his sniffs
-becoming more and more frequent. At last Joe looked up again.
-
-“Put down the knife, lad, and leave the onions if you can’t peel them
-without setting up a snort like a hog every other second.”
-
-The boy, only too glad to be relieved of his task, obeyed with alacrity,
-and got up looking lovingly at the unlatched door that led out on to the
-road. He had not made a step in that direction, however, before his
-mother, who had been listening, turned from the fire. “Tant, sit down
-and finish them onions,” she said sharply, and then turning to her
-husband who was assiduously attending to his net, she said, “Isn’t it
-enough, Joe Pullen, for me to wear myself to skin and bone feeding you,
-looking after your children, cleaning your home? Isn’t it enough, I say,
-for me to do everything for you, to work like a common drudge, to keep
-you idle, without you forbidding my son to help me?”
-
-Her voice grew more and more shrill and her words came faster and faster
-until her speech became almost unintelligible.
-
-Joe looked up cautiously from his work.
-
-“O peace with ye, Amy,” he said impatiently, the easily called colour
-mounting up to his fair hair and his blue eyes growing darker.
-
-“Ay, that’s it.”
-
-Mistress Pullen was a tall, well-made woman, and her eyes screwed
-themselves into slits of fury as she swung round, platter in hand,
-upsetting both children at her skirts, who began at once to whimper with
-fear.
-
-“Ay, that’s it, I must hold my peace! I, who slave day and night to make
-you happy, must hold my peace! Hold my peace forsooth!” she continued,
-breaking into a sharp laugh. “Look you, Joe Pullen, where would you and
-your children be without me? Tell me that. Oh! you sithering rat, you
-ungrateful mass of rum-sodden food, where would you be without me?”
-
-Joe vouchsafed no answer and the good lady, her wrath abating as
-suddenly as it had arisen, contented herself with a few muttered
-questions as to the possibility of Joe and his family remaining for an
-instant on the earth without her, turned again to the fire, shaking off
-the yelping little ones who tried to clasp her knees.
-
-Tant continued to sniff over his onion peeling unmolested.
-
-Called by her mother, the little fair-haired girl, who played so happily
-with the baby, left her game and, placing her charge carefully on the
-bed, set out six earthen bowls on the plain boarded table, which took up
-most of the space in the middle of the little room, and summoned the
-family to supper. Not until everyone was seated did Mistress Pullen lift
-the great iron pot off the hook on the chimney beam and, resting it on
-the edge of the table, dole out to each person an allowance, which
-varied in quantity according to age. In the same way she distributed
-chunks of coarse home-made bread, and then seeing everyone served,
-finally she sat down to her own meal.
-
-The Pullens ate without speaking, quickly, noisily, and with evident
-relish, dipping the bread in the broth and eating the sodden lumps with
-their fingers. Mistress Amy held the baby on her lap, feeding the little
-creature with sops from her own bowl.
-
-When all the broth had been disposed of, more bread and an earthen jar
-of honey were brought out and the meal continued.
-
-Inside the little kitchen all was warm, one might almost say stuffy,
-for, in spite of the big fire and the number of people inside, the door
-was shut fast and the one little window which the room possessed was not
-made to open. However, the noise that the rain, swiftly driven over the
-marshlands by a fierce wind, made on the glass, and the hissing drops
-that descended the wide chimney, all helped to make the kitchen as
-desirable as it could be.
-
-“Joan Bellamie was a-saying that the Captain of the _Coldlight_ hath
-come back to the Ship, Joseph. Have ye heard aught of it?” Mistress
-Pullen looked across the table at her husband as she spoke.
-
-Joe dropped his eyes before her gaze.
-
-“Oh, yes,” he said casually.
-
-“Oh, yes, indeed!” Amy’s voice rose again, “and ye did not think to tell
-me, did ye? Here I work the live-long day, and you so surly that you
-will not tell me the common gossip of the Island! I’d like to meet
-another woman who’d rest with ye.” Then she added more quietly. “Did any
-of his crew return with him, perchance?”
-
-Joe shifted uneasily in his chair, and reached out for another piece of
-bread before he spoke.
-
-“They did not,” he said shortly.
-
-Mistress Pullen took a deep breath.
-
-“And to think I have lived with a liar fit for the burning all these
-years!” she exclaimed. “For it was only this very day that I saw Master
-Coot (and if ever there was a snivelling sucking-pig ’tis he)--with my
-very own eyes and he told me that the brig was that minute moored in the
-Pyfleet, and every man of her crew aboard. A’m ashamed of ye, Joseph,
-to lie before the children the way you do.”
-
-Joe shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Ah, well, my girl,” he said significantly, “as far as we’re concerned
-they ain’t on the Island, see?” And he rose to his feet and stepped
-across to the fireplace.
-
-Mistress Pullen opened her mouth to reply, but at this moment a violent
-knocking at the door interrupted her.
-
-Joe looked across at his wife.
-
-“Whoever will it be?” he said.
-
-“If you had any sense at all you’d go and see instead of standing like a
-sheep thunderstruck,” said the lady, getting up from her seat, her baby
-on her arm. Striding over to the door, she opened it wide and then
-stepped back in astonishment, letting a blast of cold wind and rain into
-the over-heated room.
-
-“Well, come in, whatever you are,” she said at last to someone outside
-as she held the door wide open to let them pass. “If you’re not welcome
-ye can always go again.”
-
-A strange bedraggled little figure stepped into the candle-lit room. He
-was about nine years old, scantily clothed in a pair of sail-cloth
-breeches so large for him that the waist was fastened about his neck
-with a coarse string, and the knee-latchets flapped loosely over his
-little bare muddy feet, which were torn and scratched with thorns, and
-blue with cold. Round his shoulders he hugged what appeared to be the
-remains of a woman’s kirtle, the ragged hem hanging down to his knees
-and little rivulets of water dripping off the frayed ends on to the
-bricks. His face was like his feet, blue and muddy, but two sparkling
-blue eyes and a shock of red hair gave a certain charm to an otherwise
-insignificant countenance.
-
-Mistress Pullen shut the door behind him before she turned to look at
-her visitor. As soon as she had done so, however, she whisked her baby
-over to the other side of the room, exclaiming as she did so: “Mother of
-Heaven! ’Tis Red Farren, the Witch’s brat. Out of the house with him. He
-can’t stay here bewitching the whole of us.”
-
-The little creature looked up at her, his face puckering. “Not a witch’s
-brat,” he said, and then putting his grimy little fists to his eyes
-began to cry bitterly.
-
-Joe Pullen’s fair-haired daughter made a step toward the pitiful little
-figure, but her father’s hand on her arm restrained her.
-
-“You stay still, Alice, unless you want to wake up one day and find
-yourself a gray girl or a coney,” he said.
-
-Alice, rather frightened, obeyed, and Tant stood by her, his arm round
-her, while the two smaller children hung as usual to their mother’s
-skirts. The whole Pullen family entrenched behind the table stood
-looking at the weeping little stranger for some seconds before any one
-spoke again. At last Joe, his natural kindliness overcoming his
-superstitious fears, stepped round the table and took the child by the
-hand.
-
-“Why did ye leave Nan’s cabin this time o’ night, lad?” he asked him.
-
-The boy looked fearfully behind him, and Joe, noting the movement,
-himself turned round in some apprehension. However, nothing untoward
-being there, Red began to speak through his sobs.
-
-“Pet Salt and Nan is fightin’ horrid,” he said.
-
-Mistress Pullen, her curiosity getting the better of her discretion,
-came a little nearer.
-
-“Pet Salt?” she said. “How did Pet Salt come to be up there?”
-
-“She comed to beg some meal cake,” the child began. “She said she wanted
-it for Ben.”
-
-“Oh!” Mistress Pullen sniffed and looked at her husband significantly.
-“And wasn’t it for Ben, manikin?” she said.
-
-The child looked up.
-
-“No,” he said eagerly. “No, that’s why they is fighting, mistress,
-because ’twas not for my grandsire. No, Nan saw the old ronyon eating it
-herself.”
-
-Joe threw back his head and began to laugh.
-
-“Oh! ho! and did you run away because the two crones were fighting,
-lad?” he said.
-
-The child nodded, and his tears began to flow again. “And they’s hurt
-Win!” he blurted out.
-
-“Win? Who’s Win?” said Joe curiously.
-
-“Oh, peace with you worrying the brat,” said Amy. “Prithee, child, did
-Nan Swayle lay hands on Pet Salt because she had eaten the meal-cake Nan
-had made for thy grandsire?” she questioned eagerly.
-
-The child shook his head.
-
-“No mistress, ’twas was not made for Grandsire, ’twas all we had left,
-but Nan said that if Ben wanted it he must have it and we go hungry. So
-she was vexed at the ronyon’s eating of it herself.”
-
-“Oh! art hungry now?” The question escaped Joe’s lips before he had time
-to stop it.
-
-The child looked up eagerly.
-
-“Ay,” he said, his eyes straying to the remains of the food on the
-table. “Ay, will ye give me some?”
-
-Joe immediately stretched his hand for the remnant of the loaf of bread
-and the child’s face brightened with expectation, but Mistress Pullen
-stepped forward.
-
-“Mother of Saints! have I wedded a loon? Would ye have the household
-entirely bewitched, Joseph Pullen, that you’d feed a witch-child under
-our very roof?” she said, as she snatched the bread from his hand and
-replaced it on the table.
-
-Joe looked sheepish and little Red began to cry again. Mistress Pullen
-reddened and sniffed fiercely.
-
-“If he hungers he better go to his sister at the Ship,” she said tartly.
-“Heaven knows what with her Captain and her other men she ought to glean
-enough to look after her brother.”
-
-Joe turned on his wife in honest indignation.
-
-“Amy! how dare ye speak so of Hal Grame’s lass?” he said. “I’m not going
-to have my mate’s sweetheart spoke of so.”
-
-Mistress Pullen shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“Maybe you like the lass yourself,” she sneered, and then added
-fiercely, “anyway, you ought to be ashamed of yourself letting a witch’s
-brat stay in the room with your own children. Out of the house with him,
-you loony.”
-
-Joe looked at the forlorn little boy and then at his wife.
-
-“Maybe I better go with the child,” he suggested casually.
-
-Mistress Pullen turned on him, withering contempt in her glance.
-
-“Ay,” she said, “maybe you had. Lord, what an unnatural beast you are,
-preferring to go to a rum-shop in the company of a bastard brat than to
-rest in peace at your own fireside. Oh, go by all means, and the devil
-with you. You fool, do you think Nan Swayle has forgiven the ducking you
-gave her at the Restoring of the King?”
-
-And with this parting shaft, Mistress Pullen, baby on arm, strode across
-the kitchen and climbed up the wide ladder to the rooms above.
-
-Joe looked about him undecidedly. Then his glance fell on the boy.
-
-“Who’s Win?” he asked, suddenly remembering his question of a minute or
-two before.
-
-The little boy began to cry again and opening his kirtle-cloak
-disclosed to the fisherman’s astounded eyes a little black kitten nearly
-dead with fright and drenched with rain.
-
-“This is Win,” said Red. “Him’s hurt!”
-
-Joe stepped back in horror.
-
-“The witch’s cat,” he ejaculated.
-
-Red looked up.
-
-“No!” he said, “only a little one, look, only a very little one.” He
-held it up for Joe’s inspection. It certainly looked a very small, and
-young, harmless animal. It was much too frightened to move, and the wet
-fur clung closely to its emaciated body.
-
-Joe came a little nearer and then reached for his coat and cap which
-hung behind the door.
-
-“Come, lad,” he said gruffly, “we must get on to the Ship.”
-
-The child looked round the warm, bright room longingly, but he followed
-Joe out into the rain without a word.
-
-The man carefully latched the door behind him, and they walked on in
-silence for a minute or so, fighting their way against the storm.
-
-It was bitterly cold and Joe looked down at his little companion
-anxiously; the child was stumbling along, the kitten tightly clasped in
-his arms; once or twice he nearly fell.
-
-Joe looked round him cautiously, although had there been any one by they
-could not have been seen, then he bent down.
-
-“You’ll not tell Nan if I carry ye a bit, lad?” he asked. The child
-promised eagerly, and Joe swung him up in his arms.
-
-“Here,” he said, pressing a soft lump into the child’s hands. “Even if
-you’re a witch’s brat ye mustn’t be hungered.”
-
-Red bit into the bread that Joe had slipped into his pocket in his
-wife’s absence, and hugged the well-nigh suffocated kitten a little
-closer to his breast, while Joe, his head bent before the wind and rain,
-pushed on to the Ship.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-
-A little more than an hour after Joe Pullen and little Red Farren left
-the cottage, Mistress Amy sat by the fireside, sewing. The five children
-were asleep upstairs and everything was quiet. Opposite her in the
-chimney corner, his heavy rain-sodden boots smoking in the heat, sat
-Blueneck, his unshaven chin resting in his hands. On the table lay the
-woollen cap and heavy coat which he had thrown off on entering. The
-water which dripped off the skirts of the coat made a little puddle on
-the clean red and yellow bricks of the floor.
-
-“You’re a kind man, Master Blueneck, to come trudging all this way in
-the soaking rain to cheer a poor woman whose husband is too surly to
-tell her of the doings of the Island,” said the lady, looking up from
-her mending, after a silence of a few minutes.
-
-“Ah, señora.”
-
-Mistress Pullen blushed with pleasure at the sound of the foreign
-address.
-
-“Where on the Island is better company than yourself?” said the sailor
-gallantly, leaning a little forward so that the firelight played on the
-brass earrings that shone amongst the short oily curls hanging down the
-sides of his face.
-
-Mistress Pullen giggled and applied herself industriously to her
-needlework.
-
-“I warrant me you’re not so well served at the Ship as you were at the
-Victory, Master Blueneck?” she said without looking up.
-
-Blueneck laughed bitterly.
-
-“You’re right, mistress,” he said, forgetting the “señora” to Amy’s
-disappointment. “The Ship is none so bad a tavern, as taverns are
-nowadays, but ’tis of a truth much inferior to the Victory.”
-
-“I wonder that the Captain rests him there then?” said Mistress Amy,
-glancing under her lashes at her visitor.
-
-“Marry, so do I.” Blueneck’s tone was almost querulous. “Why look you,
-mistress,” he added, “is it not bad for our trade for us to tarry so
-long at one place, ay, more especially when ’tis here in the East where
-the creeks are as unknown to us as to the excise men themselves?”
-
-“Of a truth ’tis bad indeed,” Mistress Pullen spoke with conviction. “I
-wonder the Captain has it so,” she remarked again glancing sideways at
-him.
-
-Blueneck looked into the fire for a moment before he spoke. “Methinks
-the Captain is bewitched,” he said at last.
-
-“Bewitched!” Mistress Amy, her thoughts flying at once to her other
-visitor of the evening, spoke in some alarm.
-
-Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Anyway, I never saw him so before,” he said, “and I’ve sailed aboard
-his ship these ten years.”
-
-“But whoever would bewitch him?” asked Mistress Pullen, looking up
-innocently, as though no hint of the affairs of the Ship had reached
-her.
-
-“A marvellous pretty wench,” said Blueneck, and then he added hastily,
-“but of no comparison with thee, señora.”
-
-Mistress Amy laughed.
-
-“‘Tis a flatterer you are,” she said, “but I never heard of a pretty
-wench of the Ship, Master Blueneck; will she be one of the Island
-girls?”
-
-Blueneck looked up.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “‘tis a lass called Anny Farran.”
-
-“Oh!” Mistress Pullen’s eyebrows rose, and she pursed up her lips. “That
-child!”
-
-Blueneck looked at her curiously.
-
-“Hast heard aught against the lass?” he asked.
-
-Amy looked about her carefully, then leaning a little forward opened her
-mouth as though to speak, but as though another thought had crossed her
-mind she drew back and, shaking her head, said piously, “But who am I to
-take away a poor slut’s character? ’Tis not my nature, and I pray you,
-Master Blueneck, that you will not urge me, for my very conscience
-revolts against it.” She paused. “Though, mind you, I could an I would,”
-she went on, “but then, as I said, the story will do the lass no good.”
-
-“You make me curious, señora,” said the sailor in his best manner.
-
-But Mistress Pullen for a very good reason, namely, that she could not
-think of a convincing story on the spot, was not to be prevailed on, and
-the conversation flagged for a time. At last she broke the silence.
-
-“Then the Captain of the _Coldlight_ is much attracted by this--this,
-this wench?” she asked.
-
-“Attracted!” Blueneck looked up excitedly. “I tell you, mistress, I
-never saw him so before--of course, you will understand, señora, there
-have been other women--how could there not be? But never has it been so
-that he has lost his delight in the trade. No,” he added, “it has not
-been like this these last ten years, and before then he was but a lad.
-Without doubt the maid has bewitched him.”
-
-Mistress Pullen began to be interested.
-
-“Have there been very many other women who loved the gallant Captain?”
-she said, her respect for the Spaniard growing at every word.
-
-Blueneck threw up his hands.
-
-“So many, mistress, I could not name them all.”
-
-Mistress Amy thrilled with interest, but her face fell at her next
-thought.
-
-“And now he is enamoured with an Island wench?” she said, feeling that
-the Captain had somehow lowered his standard of romance.
-
-“Ay,” said Blueneck, “but ’tis a new affair this time; before, it was
-the wenches who sighed for the Captain and the Captain who laughed and
-was merry, but this time it is the wench who is merry and the
-Captain”--he laughed--“oh, the Captain is bewitched,” he said.
-
-“Indeed!” Mistress Pullen looked surprised. “I wonder that Mistress Sue
-would brook the affair in her uncle’s house.”
-
-“Ho! ho! ho!” Blueneck laughed, his earrings glittering in the
-firelight. “Mistress Sue? Why, Mistress Amy, that lass would give her
-ears to get a fair look from Black’erchief Dick. I warrant you Master
-French is well-nigh mad at her neglect.”
-
-Mistress Pullen sighed at the waywardness of youth and went on with her
-sewing.
-
-“Ah, and that’s another thing,” said Blueneck. “Did you know that Master
-French was prevented from going to Tiptree last Tuesday?”
-
-“Prevented! Were there excise men on the Stroud?” Mistress Amy spoke
-quickly, voicing the fear of all the Island smugglers.
-
-The Stroud, a narrow, bridge-like road across the mud, was the one
-connection the Island had with the mainland, and once the officers of
-the law held it, there was no telling what dangers would be involved.
-
-Blueneck smiled.
-
-“Nay,” he said, “they will be as foolish as ever they were. Nay, there
-was some talk about the goods, and the Captain swore that he would not
-rest another night at the Victory, and that if Master French wanted
-aught from him he must come to the Ship and fetch it. So he had to
-return.”
-
-“Indeed, and when will he be going again, Master Blueneck, for I was
-wishing to get me a piece of ribbon for my new kirtle-top?” said
-Mistress Pullen, her interest reviving.
-
-The Spaniard looked at her, smiling. “Would you allow me to get it for
-you, señora?” he said in as exact imitation as he could manage of the
-Captain’s manner.
-
-Mistress Amy looked at him in surprise.
-
-“Why, surely you’re not going to Tiptree, Master Blueneck, are you?” she
-said.
-
-“I would go to London, if you wished aught from thence, mistress,” said
-the sailor loftily.
-
-Amy looked at him in admiration. “If only Joe would speak so,” she
-reflected.
-
-The sailor, seeing the impression he had made, rose to his feet,
-narrowly escaping the chimney beam.
-
-“To-morrow,” he said, “I shall ride to Tiptree and bring the fairest
-dame in the Island a ribbon.” He reached for his cap and coat, and
-buttoning them on, made for the door.
-
-Amy followed him, thanking him. They exchanged farewells, Mistress
-Pullen blushingly consenting to a kiss, and parted.
-
-As soon as his footsteps had died away, Mistress Pullen slipped a cloak
-over her head and moved to the window, through which she could see a
-faint patch of light about two hundred yards away.
-
-“Ah!” she said to herself, “Joan Bellamie will be yet awake, what a deal
-I have to tell the ronyon.” And she slipped out, shutting the door
-behind her.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-“Anny, lass, I would speak with thee; wilt harken?”
-
-Hal put the question timidly as he looked across at his sweetheart.
-
-They were alone in the Ship’s kitchen; Hal re-sanded the floor while
-Anny sat on the window-ledge cleaning a pair of old brass candlesticks.
-It was four o’clock in the afternoon, and the cold, watery sun shot a
-few last rays of yellow light over the Island before it sank down behind
-the mainland. Inside the kitchen it was warm and beginning to get dark,
-for the fire had been allowed to die down to a few smouldering red and
-white embers, and it was yet too early to light the dips. Outside in the
-yard Anny could see her little brother talking to old Gilbot, who had
-wrapped himself up in a seaman’s jacket, and had stepped out to taste
-the air.
-
-The old man was fond of children, and Anny sighed with relief as she saw
-the strange pair--Red still wore his costume of the night before--take
-hands and after some animated talk walk off together down the road in
-the direction of the sea, laughing as they went.
-
-Hal made up the fire with logs which he had been drying on the hearth,
-and crossed the room and stood beside the window-ledge just in front of
-the girl, before he spoke again.
-
-“Will you harken to me?” he repeated.
-
-Anny looked up, smiling. “Harken to thee, Hal?” she said. “Why, certes,
-thou needst not look so solemnly; why should I not harken to thee?”
-
-The boy did not speak for a moment but stood fidgeting before her.
-
-Anny put down the candlestick which she was cleaning, and slipping off
-the window-ledge led him over to the fireplace, where she sat down on
-one of the long, high-backed seats and pulled him down beside her.
-
-“Do you want to tell me you don’t want to marry me?” she asked half
-jestingly, half anxiously, as she leaned her little round head with its
-long black plaits on his shoulder.
-
-Hal turned to her in great astonishment.
-
-“Marry, lass! How can ye be so cruel as to judge me so?” he said. “Of
-course not!”
-
-“Oh, the saints be praised for that,” said the girl quaintly. “Lord, how
-you fear’d me, Hal,” she added, kneeling up on the seat to kiss him.
-
-The boy put his arm round her.
-
-“Anny,” he said quietly, his face grave and old for one of his years,
-“you’re terrible young yet, seventeen ain’t you?” The girl nodded,
-uncertain as to what was coming yet. “Ah, well, you ain’t had time to
-grow wise, have you?” he continued, still holding her on the seat beside
-him.
-
-“I reckon you ain’t had much more, Hal,” she said, laughing. “You’re but
-eighteen, ain’t you?”
-
-Hal blushed.
-
-“Ay, maybe,” he said. “But I know what I’m telling you.”
-
-Anny kissed him lightly on the forehead.
-
-“I’m harkening,” she said.
-
-Hal opened his mouth to speak and then shut it again; then he withdrew
-his arm from about her waist and stood up.
-
-Anny looked at him in astonishment not unmixed with fear.
-
-“Why, what in the world is the matter with ye, lad?” she said. “You
-don’t want to go for a sailor, do you?”
-
-The boy shook his head violently, and Anny began to feel alarmed.
-
-“Whatever will you be worrying about next?” she said.
-
-Hal stepped toward her, and putting a hand on her forehead pushed her
-head back until she looked into his eyes.
-
-“You--you--you’re not loving the Spaniard, lass?” he blurted out,
-ashamed of the words as soon as he had spoken them.
-
-Anny looked at him for a moment, uncertain whether to be offended or to
-laugh.
-
-“Hal, I’m ashamed that you should be such a child,” she said, a little
-smile hovering round her mouth. “Why should I love any one but you?”
-
-The boy appeared to be satisfied, for he laughed and kissed her, but
-then he added, “I don’t like the Spaniard, lass. I wish you wouldn’t
-hark to his swaggerings.”
-
-Anny turned round.
-
-“Hal, you wouldn’t have me ill-tempered to the customers?” she said as
-she picked up the half-cleaned candlestick and set to work on it again.
-
-Hal thrust his hands into his pockets and shifted his weight from one
-foot to the other.
-
-“Nay, lass, of course not. I would not bid you be uncivil, but, truth, I
-thought you liked the foreigner’s big talk and notice of you. I----”
-
-“He is a pleasant gentleman,” said the girl, “but, Lord! I mark not half
-he says.”
-
-“You’d not let him kiss you, Anny?”
-
-Hal spoke sharply and Anny looked up in amazement.
-
-“Mother of Grace,” she ejaculated, “for what do you take me?”
-
-The boy was beside her in a moment.
-
-“Forgive me, lass,” he said, “I did but want ye to promise to have no
-dealings with the foreigner--I--love you so, see?”
-
-“Oh!” said Anny, laughing as she straightened her hair after his
-embrace. “No one would suspect you of kissing a lass before, Hal. You
-can’t be knowing how strong you are.”
-
-“That’s as may be, but will you promise to have no truck with the
-Spaniard?” the boy persisted.
-
-“Ay, of course I promise,” Anny sighed at his distrust as she spoke. Hal
-kissed her again, then walked over to the fireplace and stood for some
-moments, resting his head on the wooden ledge below the chimney-piece
-and staring down into the smoky crackling fire.
-
-He felt that he had appeared ridiculous in Anny’s eyes, and his young
-blood revolted at the thought. In vain he tried to comfort himself with
-the thought that it was only his love for her which made him so anxious,
-but the idea that she must think him merely jealous would force itself
-on his mind, making him uncomfortable. However, he knew that the Captain
-might be a formidable rival so he said nothing else at the time.
-
-Anny sat on the window-ledge, rubbing the candlestick with more energy
-than was necessary.
-
-She was hurt that Hal should think her such a light-o’-love, but all the
-same she thrilled with pleasure to think that he was jealous of anybody
-because of her. It gave her such a pleasant feeling of ownership and, as
-she reflected happily, she was very fond of him.
-
-Suddenly she paused to listen. Coming down the road she could hear the
-scrunching of heavy wagon wheels. She looked up at the old horologe on
-the chimney-piece.
-
-“That won’t be Master French yet awhile, will it?” she said.
-
-“Eh?” Hal pushed his hand over his forehead and turned to her. “I don’t
-hear any one,” he said, “and it wouldn’t be him yet; the roads ain’t
-safe before dark nowadays.”
-
-Anny sat still for a moment.
-
-“There is someone,” she cried, as a tumbril drawn by a piebald gelding
-turned into the yard.
-
-Hal stepped across to the window and looked out over the girl’s head.
-
-“Oh! ’tis Cip de Musset,” he said, as the man in the tumbril climbed out
-and pushed back the oiled flaps of his head-covering from his face. “I
-warrant he brings the rum from the brig.” He opened the door and went
-out bare-headed into the yard.
-
-Anny watched him through the window, saw him greet the man heartily, and
-then look into the cart at the other’s invitation.
-
-“Right!” she heard him say, “six of rum and three of Canary. Here, John
-Pattern.”
-
-A man came out of one of the stables. Hal said something to him which
-she could not catch. The man nodded and led the horse into a corner of
-the yard, where he proceeded to unload the cart.
-
-The man of whom Hal had spoken as Cip de Musset was tall, long-legged,
-and loosely built, with a black beard which curled down onto his chest.
-He stepped up to the inner door with Hal, and then stopped and went back
-to the cart as though he had forgotten something. After groping under
-the sacking coverings for a while he pulled out a fair-sized bundle tied
-up in a piece of sail-cloth, and with this under his arm, came back to
-the door where Hal was waiting for him. As he crossed the yard he caught
-sight of Anny peering through the window and smiled at her, showing a
-set of enormous yellow teeth.
-
-Anny tossed her head and turned away from the window, and picking up the
-two candlesticks carried them off to the first guest-chamber where they
-belonged.
-
-When she returned, the sail-cloth bundle was lying on the table, and Hal
-and Cip de Musset were sitting together by the fire, the latter drinking
-hot rum.
-
-“Good-morrow, fair one,” grinned the visitor as he looked up, “there’s
-somewhat on the table for thee.”
-
-His clothes proclaimed him a sailor, and his manners were free and easy.
-
-“For me?” Anny looked first at the bundle and then over at Hal who was
-watching her covertly.
-
-“And--er--and who will it be sent from, Master de Musset?” she said at
-last.
-
-Cip de Musset laughed.
-
-“Open it, lassie,” he said, “open it and see.”
-
-Anny, nothing loath, pulled at the knots, and pushed back the
-sail-cloth; underneath was a white linen covering.
-
-Hal rose to his feet and in spite of himself craned his neck to see.
-
-The other man got up and stood beside the girl, looking down at the
-bundle. The arrival of a parcel was an unusual occurrence at the Ship.
-
-Anny fingered the linen for a moment, and then with a deft movement of
-her little brown hand switched it off. She gave a gasp of surprise, and
-putting out her hands held up a piece of Lyons silk. It was of a pale
-honey colour and of a texture not unlike taffeta. She shook out the
-glistening sheet and held the piece high up to her chin. The effect made
-even Hal gasp. Cip de Musset put his tankard down on the table and
-stepped back a few paces to look at her.
-
-“That’s right, lassie, just a bit nearer the window,” he said.
-
-Anny obeyed, as proud as a snake of its new skin, and stood so that the
-little remaining light might fall upon her.
-
-Cip rested his huge hairy hands on his hips and leant back a little, his
-head on one side, and one eye shut.
-
-“By the Lord, but you’re as fair as a new figurehead, lass,” he said
-approvingly.
-
-Anny looked down and laughed with delight. She had never seen such stuff
-before, and the blood rushed to her face as she saw Hal’s expression of
-amazed admiration as he stared at her. With a little sigh she folded up
-the silk and returned to the bundle. It contained a letter, a piece of
-green frieze, and a little carved box. Anny laid aside the letter and
-the box, and looked at the frieze; there seemed to be a great deal of
-it.
-
-Cip stepped forward to help her, and taking one end walked over to the
-door, while she, holding her side, went to the fireplace, yet the strip
-sagged in the middle to the floor.
-
-“Two new kirtles and a pair of galligaskins for Red,” thought the girl,
-as she wound up the cloth, and turned her attention to the box.
-
-Cip de Musset nudged Hal, and jerked his thumb in her direction.
-
-“Look how the lassie plays with new toys,” he whispered.
-
-Hal turned away sharply, frowning angrily.
-
-Cip stared at him in amazement and then, shrugging his shoulders, looked
-across at the girl.
-
-Anny had not noticed Hal’s expression, and Cip’s face broke into smiles
-again as he watched her. She was trying to open the little wooden box,
-her face was flushed, and she was breathing quickly with childish
-excitement. At last she gave it up, and, turning to Cip, offered it for
-him to open. The sailor wiped his hands carefully on his
-green-and-yellow neckerchief before he took the box gingerly between his
-thumb and forefinger. After turning it over once or twice he tried his
-strength on the tightly fitting lid and jerked it off, and held it out
-to the girl.
-
-Anny took it eagerly and gave a little cry of delight as she examined
-the contents.
-
-“Marry! Hal, I prithee, see!” she laughed as she pulled out a long
-string of polished amber beads and put them over her head. “And, oh,
-look you! look you!” she exclaimed, holding out a brooch about the size
-of a large oyster, which was of painted porcelain with a silver border
-studded with brilliants. “Oh, and see! Look, look, Hal! why don’t you
-look?” she went on as she pulled first one trinket after another out of
-the little wooden box and held it up for their inspection. Suddenly she
-paused, and putting in her hand very carefully brought out a little
-carved-wood elephant, brought no doubt from the East by some traveller.
-
-“Oh, what a mannikin,” she exclaimed, fingering the exquisite
-workmanship in wonderment. “Look ’ee, Hal, whatever will it be?”
-
-Hal looked down at the little figure as she stood before him, the carved
-bauble lying in the palm of her small brown hand, and sighed.
-
-“Oh!” he said, as he picked up the elephant and looked at it
-quizzically. “I reckon ’tis some heathen image.”
-
-Anny snatched it away from him and held it tightly.
-
-“Oh! nay,” she said almost pleadingly, “‘tis not, indeed, or anyway ’tis
-marvellous dainty.”
-
-Cip stepped forward heavily and looked over her shoulder.
-
-“Oh! nay,” he said at last, “‘tis not a heathen image; ’tis a moulding
-of a beast.”
-
-Anny looked pleased.
-
-“What fine little beasts they must be,” she observed.
-
-“Ah, yes,” said Cip, nodding his head sagely, “wonderful fine little
-beasts.”
-
-Anny laughed happily, and turned to the silk-and trinket-strewn table.
-
-“Oh, won’t I be fine!” she exclaimed, flinging out her arms as though to
-embrace the table’s load.
-
-Hal grunted.
-
-“Hadn’t you better look at the sealed paper?” he said sulkily.
-
-But Anny was too overjoyed to notice his tone.
-
-“O marry! I forgot,” she exclaimed with a little excited giggle, as she
-picked up the square envelope and broke open the red seal.
-
-“Ah!” said she, as she studied the large flourishing script within.
-
-Cip shot a covert glance at Hal and then hid his smile in his tankard.
-
-“Ah!” said Anny again, turning the paper over.
-
-Hal became impatient.
-
-“Well, lass?” he said, rising.
-
-Anny blushed, and then thrust the paper in his hand.
-
-“Thou knowest I cannot read, Hal?” she said. “Wilt decipher it for me?”
-
-Hal took it willingly, although with some show of indifference, and
-holding the paper at arms’ length, read it carefully through to himself.
-
-“Plague upon it all!” he exclaimed.
-
-Anny looked at him anxiously.
-
-“What does it say?” she said, looking over his shoulder.
-
-Hal flushed.
-
-“I’ll not tell thee,” he said angrily.
-
-“Oh!” Anny’s tone expressed disappointment, and old Cip de Musset, who
-had been preparing himself to hear another man’s letter, looked up.
-
-“Oh! nay, lad, nay,” he said solemnly, “tell the lass her own letter.
-Ay, marry, now you must, to be honest.”
-
-Hal frowned.
-
-“To be honest?” he said, puzzled.
-
-“Ay, to be honest.” Cip was emphatic. “For if you don’t, lad, you alone
-will know the matter in the letter, which, look you, is not yours but
-the lass’s. Taking is taking whether it be goods or fine phrases,” he
-concluded, wagging his head sagely.
-
-Hal shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Well, then, harken,” he said, and began to read sulkily and at a great
-pace:
-
- “Into the lap of the fair lady who holdeth the whole heart of a
- great sailor in her sweet keeping, these fineries and divers other
- useful objects are munificently poured.
-
- “Prithee deck thyself, wench, for the delight of thy noble and
- honourable admirer--Dick Delfazio, Captain of the _Coldlight_.”
-
-“Did ever you hear such sithering foolishness?” he concluded.
-
-But neither Anny nor Cip was looking at him; at the last words of the
-letter they had turned to each other in mutual surprise and admiration.
-
-“Ah!” said old Cip, leaning back on his bench. “Wonderful way he has wi’
-words and wenches. Damn me if they two don’t go pretty well together,”
-he added thoughtfully.
-
-Anny sighed with delight and turned to Hal.
-
-“Oh! isn’t it a fine letter,” she exclaimed happily. “Will I have to
-write one back?”
-
-Hal looked up, and the expression on his boyish face made her pause in
-her happiness, and turn to him anxiously.
-
-“Anny Farran, what are you making of yourself?” he began slowly, his
-young imagination magnifying the occasion until he felt himself the
-injured lover leading his frail betrothed away from the pretty walks of
-folly.
-
-Anny looked at him in wonderment and he went on:
-
-“Anny, are you tending to accept these--these fripperies, like a common
-serving-wench, and worse?”
-
-Anny blushed and started; then she looked from her lover to the table
-and back again.
-
-“Not take them?” she said, her mouth drooping a little at the corners
-and her eyes growing larger and very bright.
-
-“Of course not!”
-
-Wrapped in the blanket of his youthful virtue the boy felt no sympathy
-for the despairing glance which the pathetic little girl in front of him
-cast at her shabby, much-stained kirtle and well-mended bodice.
-
-Anny swallowed something in her throat and blinked her eyes once or
-twice, her long dark lashes becoming spiky and blacker than before. Then
-she laughed a little unnaturally and rubbed her hand awkwardly down the
-sides of her skirt.
-
-“Oh, of course not,” she said, laughing still on a strange high pitch,
-as she gathered up the finery and put it carefully back into the
-sail-cloth covering. “Of course not,” she repeated mechanically, never
-allowing her fingers to stray over the smooth soft surface of the silk
-or to play amongst the amber beads or ivory ornaments. “There,” she said
-at last as the last trinket was slipped into the little box, and she
-looked round, the bright colour still in her cheeks and the forced smile
-on her lips. “Oh! and the little beast?” she said half questioningly,
-half agreeing, as she picked up the little carved elephant and looked at
-it wistfully.
-
-“And the little beast,” said Hal firmly.
-
-Anny sighed and slipped it in with the others, then tied up the
-sail-cloth with a firm hand.
-
-“Master de Musset,” she said a little unsteadily, “would you be kind
-enough to--to take this back to the Captain and say I can’t accept it?
-Say--say of course not,” she added.
-
-Cip de Musset rose to his feet, bewilderment on his face as he looked
-from one to the other of the two young people.
-
-“Say you sent it back?” he said at last, turning to the girl. “Nay, say
-he sent it back,” he added, jerking his thumb in Hal’s direction.
-
-Anny stepped forward quickly and laid her hand on his arm, anxiety
-written in her very posture.
-
-“Oh, nay! I pray you, Master de Musset, say I sent it back,” she said
-eagerly. “I beg of you to tell my message rightly.”
-
-Cip looked into her earnest little face and smiled.
-
-“All right, lassie,” he said. “But,” he added, his voice and face
-becoming suddenly grave, “you have a care how you anger Black’erchief
-Dick. You young ones--you’re sweethearts, too, ain’t you?”
-
-“Yes, but you won’t say,” Anny spoke quickly and Cip shook his head.
-
-“Oh, no!” he said, grinning. “I won’t say. I be going.”
-
-He moved over to the window and looked out.
-
-“Here be Ezekiel French just drove up,” he remarked.
-
-Anny looked up at the clock.
-
-“Mother o’ Grace!” she ejaculated, “I have forgot to call Mistress Sue,”
-and she ran out of the door and up the stairs to the little room which
-she and Sue shared.
-
-Hal picked up the sail-cloth bundle and handed it to Cip, who took it
-without a word and went out into the yard. He stood talking to French
-some minutes and then walked over to his cart.
-
-“Poor little lassie,” he muttered as he climbed into the tumbril and
-turned the piebald gelding out of the gate. “Poor little lassie,” he
-repeated. “Lord, ain’t we particular when we’re young.” He looked at the
-bundle on the floor behind him and shrugged his shoulders. “This here
-Black’erchief Dick and all,” he concluded, sighing and whipping up his
-horse.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Big French stood in the Ship yard talking to Hal and old John Pattern,
-the ostler. He leaned lazily against the shaft of his wagon, an arm
-stretched out over the back of one of the horses. The wagon was half
-full of mysterious sacking-covered bales and little round casks, the
-first containing silk and the other tobacco.
-
-“Have ye got them ten trusses’ straw I bespoke, Hal?” French was saying,
-the barley stalk he was chewing moving up and down in his mouth.
-
-“Ay, in the barn; that on the right is yourn,” Hal replied readily.
-
-Big French looked at John Pattern enquiringly. The old man grinned.
-“That’ll be all right, sir,” he said, pocketing the coin which the big
-man had given him.
-
-“You’ll cover the stuff well up?” French enquired. “Undo the first five
-truss and spread it over the stuff and then put the rest, bound up,
-atop, you know how.”
-
-The man nodded.
-
-“Ain’t been on the Island for sixty-seven years for nothing,” he said,
-winking one bright blue eye.
-
-French laughed.
-
-“Maybe,” he said, “but you never can tell when the roads will get
-dangerous again. What with footpads whom I fear not and excise folk
-whom I do--you never know,” and he shrugged his shoulders, and soon
-added, a smile breaking over his handsome face, “but, Lord, it’s all in
-the trade, so what’s the use of talking?”
-
-He turned away with Hal, and John touching his cap went off to the
-barn--a long low building on the left of the Ship.
-
-“I’m taking that dog Blueneck and his mate Coot along wi’ me,” French
-remarked, as he and Hal neared the kitchen door. “You ain’t seen them up
-here yet, I suppose?”
-
-Hal shook his head as he lifted the latch.
-
-“No,” he said, “but they’ll come, don’t you fear, the sniffling Spanish
-rats.”
-
-French laughed and was about to reply, but as his eyes fell upon
-Mistress Sue who had stepped to the door to meet them, the words died on
-his lips, and he grinned sheepishly.
-
-In the kitchen the dips had been lighted, the fire had got up, and all
-round the hearth was bright and cheerful.
-
-Sue followed and stood in front of him.
-
-Anny sat in her usual place at the window. She was sewing the buttons on
-an old coat of Gilbot’s, and several times she pricked her fingers, and
-then hastily dashed the back of her hand across her eyes, but otherwise
-she was very still and no one else in the room noticed her.
-
-Hal went to draw a noggin of rum for French, and while he was away, the
-door opened, and Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot came in.
-
-French, who had just formed a complete sentence to open conversation
-with Sue, scowled at the intruders, turned his back on the astonished
-girl, and stared into the fire. Perhaps it was the wisest thing he could
-have done, for Sue, as she bustled off to attend to the two sailors,
-began to think about him, a thing she had not done seriously since that
-evening when Black’erchief Dick first came to the Ship.
-
-It was strange, she thought. Usually Big French seemed so pleased to see
-her, so ready to laugh with her, so childishly shy when she spoke
-directly to him, and she found herself thinking with pleasure of that
-evening when Gilbot had interrupted him in a most important question.
-She laughed to herself. Ah! that was before the advent of the Spaniard.
-Ah! the Spaniard! she sighed, and then flushed hotly at her own
-thoughts. What was the Spaniard to her? A man who was not even
-interested in her. She tossed her head, but all the same she sighed
-again before she put the tankards down before the two shipmates of the
-_Coldlight_, and returned once more to the young giant at the fireside.
-
-“Master French,” she said, planting herself before him, “would you get
-me a thing or two at the market?”
-
-French beamed at her.
-
-“Anything,” he said jerkily, as though the word had been released from
-captivity, “or everything,” he added suddenly and earnestly.
-
-Sue did not understand him and she looked down in surprise.
-
-“Everything?” she repeated.
-
-French blushed, opened his mouth, shut it again, then he cleared his
-throat noisily. “Everything you wish, mistress,” he said finally,
-inwardly cursing his shyness.
-
-Sue perched herself on the table in front of him and enumerated the odds
-and ends that the Ship required.
-
-Anny looked at the pair shyly from out her corner.
-
-“Ah! but how much of the flannel, mistress?” French was saying.
-
-“Six ells an it pleases you,” Sue replied.
-
-Anny gulped and applied herself industriously to her sewing.
-
-Just then the door opened and John Pattern put in his smiling head.
-
-“Master French,” he called.
-
-French, who had just begun to enjoy himself, looked up with another
-scowl.
-
-“All’s ready,” said John, “and, if you’s going to get to Tiptree afore
-eleven, ye better start.”
-
-“Right!” French rose to his feet with a sigh and walked to the door.
-“Come on,” he said to the two sailors who were looking round anxiously.
-
-Habakkuk sniffed noisily and happily, his pale, bilious little face
-positively shining with excitement as he got up hastily and trotted to
-the door, Blueneck following.
-
-The rest of the company followed out into the yard to see the
-adventurers safely off the premises.
-
-It was a sharply cold, clear frosty night, with a mist hanging low over
-the marshes. There was no wind and the place was very silent. The sky
-was clear and thickly sprinkled with stars and the moon, nearly full,
-shed a white ghostly glow over the countryside.
-
-Old John Pattern, a large box lantern in his hand, hovered hither and
-thither like some old and bluff will-o’-the-wisp.
-
-French walked round the wagon to make sure that everything was in order.
-Then he climbed up on to the shaft and perched himself on the
-driving-seat, which consisted of a board nailed flat on the front of the
-wagon.
-
-“Come on, if you are coming at all,” he called to Blueneck, who
-scrambled into the one remaining seat beside him.
-
-“Hi, where shall I go?” said Habakkuk, sniffing and hopping about in his
-anxiety.
-
-French shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Best get up on to the straw atop,” he said.
-
-Habakkuk climbed on to the hub of the wheel and with Hal’s help got
-safely on to the straw where he lay quite still.
-
-“Ready?” said French, and then turned the horses about without waiting
-for an answer, and drove out of the gate amidst the jests and farewells
-of the onlookers.
-
-“You won’t forget the flannel?” Sue called after him.
-
-French’s deep, pleasant voice rang back through the thin, cold air:
-“Rather would I forget the wagon, mistress.”
-
-Sue laughed.
-
-“There’s a new gown on the way,” she said with a sigh of satisfaction as
-she went back to the kitchen.
-
-Anny gulped and Hal, turning at that moment, saw her disappointed little
-face in the moonlight. She looked at him so sorrowfully without
-speaking, and then went into the Inn.
-
-He was about to follow her but checked himself; he began to realize a
-little how much she cared for pretty things and what she had given up
-with the sail-cloth bundle. Pushing his hands into his pockets he walked
-out of the gate and down the road to the sea, his chin on his breast. He
-had not gone very far before he met old Gilbot stumping along alone.
-
-The old man hailed him cheerily and bade him go down to fetch little Red
-who, he averred, was scooning stones on the clear sea. “No one obeys
-me,” he concluded with a chuckle. “I can’t make the young one come. Go
-fetch him, Hal.”
-
-He waddled off, smiling and talking to himself.
-
-Hal walked on in deep thought, kicking the stones in the road with his
-clogs.
-
-Anny was fond of pretty fripperies and ornaments; she liked to be
-admired and looked at, and would have kept the sail-cloth bundle for its
-own worth, without a thought for the giver.
-
-Hal kicked at a stone savagely, and swore loudly. He was eighteen and as
-bitter against the world as it is possible to be at that age. He
-remembered Anny’s little white face in the moonlight as Big French drove
-off, Sue’s request in his ears, and her disappointed, sorrowful glance
-at him before she returned to the kitchen. He had reached the sea by
-this time and he stood for a moment peering out over the mist-ridden
-water. “If only I had money,” he thought. “Lord!”
-
-Staring out into the white moonlit vapour he saw Anny in her
-honey-coloured silk, her eyes bright and her lips a little parted, just
-as he had seen her that afternoon. Then he saw himself beside her, no
-longer a deputy landlord and everybody’s errand boy, but a man of
-importance in a new blue cloth coat with silver buttons and a ruffle in
-the sleeves. He was holding her hand and they were married.
-
-“Oh! if only I had money!” the words escaped from his mouth like a
-groan, and he shivered involuntarily, almost afraid of his own voice;
-everything around him was so shadowy and unreal.
-
-“Hal Grame, is that you? Oh! how you frightened me.” The voice seemed to
-start from the pebbles at his feet and he sprang back in alarm, crossing
-himself.
-
-“Who’s there?” he said sharply.
-
-“Only me and Win.” Red Farran got up from the bank of seaweed where he
-had been sitting and put a little wet hand into Hal’s.
-
-“Why do you want money?” he said. “Win an’ me want money, too.”
-
-Hal looked down at the fantastical little figure before he answered:
-
-“Why do I want money----?” he began, his voice rising with silly, sweet,
-half-theatrical boyish passion; then he checked himself and shrugged his
-shoulders. “Oh, nothing,” he said.
-
-Red looked at the sea.
-
-“It’s too dark to scoon stones,” he remarked. “How many times can you
-make one hop? I made one go nine times once in smooth water,” he added
-modestly.
-
-Hal vouchsafed no answer, and Red sat down again on a bank of seaweed.
-
-“Here’s Win,” he said softly as he fumbled in his ragged clothes and
-brought out the kitten, now quite dry but very sleepy, and hugged it up
-to his neck.
-
-“If we had money wouldn’t we eat a lot and be happy?” He squeezed the
-kitten a little harder and the unhappy animal squealed sleepily. Red
-laughed. “Yes,” he said, “I think so, too.”
-
-There was silence for a few minutes save for the gentle lapping of the
-water and the scrape of moving pebbles as the waves rolled them up and
-down on the shore.
-
-“Money’s very useful, isn’t it?” said Red at last.
-
-“Ay,” Hal replied fervently.
-
-“Master Gilbot said that, too,” went on the child as he pitched a stone
-and waited to hear the gentle “plop” which it made as it reached the
-water.
-
-Hal looked up.
-
-“What did he say?” he asked.
-
-Red screwed up his face in thought.
-
-“I forget,” he said, “it was something about leaving the Ship to a man
-who had money.” He tossed another stone, then turned his attention to
-the kitten.
-
-“A man with money,” said Hal. “What man?”
-
-“Oh! any man, I suppose,” said Red vaguely, stroking the cat’s fur up
-the wrong way.
-
-“Any man with money,” repeated Hal to himself; then he began to laugh
-loudly, unnaturally, and very high.
-
-Red clapped his hands over his ears and the kitten snuggled into his
-chest.
-
-“Don’t do that, Hal,” he said imploringly, “it’s just like Nan when she
-sees Pet Salt.”
-
-Hal stopped and pulled himself together.
-
-“Best be getting back,” he said, and started off along the lane.
-
-The child got up without a word and trotted after him, the kitten
-wrapped safely in the folds of his kirtle-cloak.
-
-Hal did not think about the boy; he strode along, his eyes on the
-ground.
-
-“I will get money,” he whispered to himself. “I’ve never had any. I’ve
-never had aught to give her, and women be capricious and whimsical. They
-care for that foolery. Before God I swear some day I’ll own the Ship,
-and, oh, you holy Saints, let me keep her till then.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-
-About nine o’clock on the following morning, when the hoar-frost was
-still on the ragged grass and leafless trees, Anny hurried down the road
-which led to the Ship. She had been to see Nan Swayle, and was returning
-from her cabin with a large skep of onions which the old woman had
-insisted on sending to Gilbot in return for the half keg of rum which he
-had given her.
-
-It was bitterly cold, and Anny hugged the threadbare shawl very tightly
-about her shoulders as she hastened on, her head bent before the driving
-wind.
-
-“Well met, mistress,” said a musical voice behind her. “Prithee, may I
-carry thy basket?”
-
-Anny’s heart sank as she turned her head.
-
-Black’erchief Dick came forward, a smile on his face, and stretched out
-a pair of dainty white hands for the skep.
-
-Anny blushed and withheld it from him.
-
-“Nay, I would not dream of letting you trouble, sir,” she said. “I--I
-would rather carry it myself.”
-
-Dick laughed.
-
-“And I would rather carry it myself,” he said. “Faith, mistress, I
-warrant me we’ll have to bear it together.”
-
-So saying he gaily caught hold of the handle nearest him and they walked
-on, he chatting merrily and she alternately laughing at his sallies,
-blushing, and smirking at his well-seasoned stories. They made strange
-contrast as they went, the skep swinging between them, the girl, her
-shabby green kirtle and torn black bodice, her heavy clogs sinking in
-the deep slushy mud of the road, and the Spaniard newly clothed in
-shining brocaded satin, with point-lace collar and ruffled cuffs, his
-fashionable short surcoat displaying a tucked embroidered shirt
-marvellously laundered; his cloak of the finest Amsterdam cloth a little
-open in the front showing the hilt of his famous knife as it hung in his
-gem-studded belt.
-
-“Mistress, prithee why didst thou return my gifts yestere’en?” said Dick
-at last as they neared the Ship.
-
-Anny, who had been waiting for this, took a deep breath.
-
-“For what do you take me, sir?” she said, turning her big innocent eyes
-upon him.
-
-Dick looked at her curiously. Was it possible that this little country
-drudge was different from all the other women he had met? He nearly
-dropped his side of the skep in his surprise.
-
-“I crave thy pardon, mistress,” he said dazedly, and they walked on in
-silence till they reached the Ship.
-
-Then Dick spoke again:
-
-“I will come in for a stoup of mine host’s sweet sack,” he said, and
-then added softly, for the door was open, “and I would speak seriously
-with thee.”
-
-Anny went into the kitchen rather self-consciously and looked round. No
-one was there and she went out to the scullery with the onions.
-
-When she returned the Spaniard was sitting by the fireside, his daintily
-shod feet resting on the hearthstone. He did not look up as she came in,
-so she tripped across to the shelves to get him a tankard, and then
-unearthed a flagon of sack from under the cask form.
-
-“Prithee set it here to warm, child,” said Dick, pointing to the hob.
-
-Anny did as she was told. He touched her hand lightly as she passed him.
-
-“And now, mistress, will it please you to sit before me?” he said.
-
-Anny sat down, and the Spaniard looked at her in admiration for a moment
-before he spoke.
-
-“Hast heard much said of Dick Delfazio?” he continued, smiling at her,
-and leaning forward a little, his elbow on his knee and one hand
-supporting his chin and shielding his face from the fire.
-
-Anny dropped her eyes, not quite certain what to say.
-
-But as he waited for an answer, she stammered, “Ay, a great deal an it
-please you.”
-
-“Aught to my discredit?” The Spaniard spoke sharply and frowned.
-
-“Oh, nay, sir, nay.” Anny spoke hastily as she noted his displeasure.
-“Rather the other way.”
-
-A smile spread over the man’s face for a moment, and he looked at her.
-
-“Yet, mistress, you refused my gifts,” he said softly.
-
-An expression of pain passed over the girl’s face but she said steadily:
-“Ay, sir. And I would not have any one think I would take them. Methinks
-you mistake me, sir,” she added proudly.
-
-The Spaniard did not speak; he sat looking at her steadfastly without
-moving his position, his glittering deep black eyes fixed on her face,
-and an inscrutable expression on his lips.
-
-Anny did not look up, and at last the Spaniard leaned back in his seat,
-new interest in his face and a twinkle of pleasure in his eyes.
-
-“Mistress, you mistake me,” he said gently. “Believe me I never thought
-you aught but a maiden as fair in reputation as in face. What villain
-can have read anything else but pure admiration in my small offerings to
-you?”
-
-Anny looked up quickly, her face glowing with confusion. She thought
-angrily of Hal’s outburst and opened her mouth to speak, but at that
-moment her eye caught the Spaniard’s white hand playing with the hilt of
-his knife, and she looked at him again, as he sat smiling at her, his
-full red lips curled back a little, showing the white teeth within.
-
-“I thought it myself,” she said almost defiantly, as she rose to go
-about her work.
-
-Dick put out a hand to restrain her.
-
-“Prithee sit down, fair one, I would speak with thee,” he said firmly,
-his eyes commanding her with their momentary fierceness, and continued
-as she reseated herself: “Hast ever been off this Island, mistress?”
-
-“Nay, sir,” Anny shook her head. “Not even to the West,” she added.
-
-Dick threw up his hands in mock surprise, and the girl could not help
-thinking how beautiful they looked, rising so waxen-like from out the
-delicate lace ruffles which surrounded his wrists.
-
-“The pity of it, mistress, O, the pity of it, that you should be wasted
-here on this desolate mud flat,” Dick was saying, “which is only visited
-by a gentleman once in two or three months, and then only for a
-sennight. No, the jewel of your beauty is little suited to so drab a
-setting as the mud-beslimed shores of Mersea Marsh Island.”
-
-Anny looked at him, uncertain whether he was laughing at her or not, but
-she could get no hint of his mood from his face, which was nearly
-expressionless save for the eyes which regarded her almost mournfully.
-
-“What would I find fairer than the marshes in another country?” she said
-at last.
-
-The Spaniard laughed.
-
-“The marshes?” he said. “Oh! Mistress, what have you known of beauty
-that you look on gray and purple marshes and call them fair?”
-
-Anny frowned.
-
-“Marry!” she said, tossing her head. “They’re good enough for me.”
-
-“Nay, fair one, there you mistake, it’s because they are not good enough
-for thee that I would quarrel with thee loving them.”
-
-The Spaniard leaned a little forward as he spoke.
-
-Anny laughed uneasily and rose to her feet.
-
-“Ah, well!” she said, “‘tis of no account what I think fair or ugly, see
-how late it is; I must be about my business.”
-
-Dick got up also.
-
-“Look ye, mistress,” he said, “I had almost forgot what I came to see
-thee for. I sail again for France on Wednesday even.” He paused and
-looked at the girl for any hint of surprise or disappointment which she
-might show, but Anny did not look up and betrayed no other interest
-beyond polite attention.
-
-The Spaniard smiled and his eyes began to sparkle again.
-
-“And, little one,” he went on, “when I sail it will not be on the
-_Coldlight_, but the _Anny_ if you will permit me to rename the ship
-after thee.”
-
-Anny gasped. She knew a little about the importance which sailors in
-general, and smugglers in particular, attached to the names of their
-vessels, and was fully sensible of the honour which the Spaniard was
-conferring upon her. She began to feel flattered.
-
-“You honour me too much, sir,” she said, bobbing and smiling.
-
-The Spaniard made a stately bow.
-
-“Mistress, I thank you for deigning to accept so small a tribute,” he
-said in his grand manner. “And may I beg of you two more favours,
-namely, that you will honour my ship with your presence, and will
-yourself bless the brig and proclaim thyself its guardian and patron?”
-
-Anny blushed and laughed happily.
-
-“Ay,” she said, “and gladly if you can trust my blessings.”
-
-The Spaniard bowed again.
-
-“What blessings might I trust in if not in yours?” he said gallantly. “I
-will come myself to bring thee there. Au revoir, fair one.” He picked up
-his big-brimmed hat and, taking the little brown hand in his soft white
-one, respectfully raised it to his lips.
-
-Anny smiled shyly as she drew it slowly away and put it behind her back.
-
-Dick looked into her little face, so very little lower than his own.
-
-“Might I dare to salute your lips, Anny of the Island?” he said softly.
-
-Anny’s smile vanished and she drew back stiffly.
-
-“Methinks you mistake me for some other wench, sir,” she said.
-
-“Pardon, I prithee, fairest of prudes.” Dick’s tone was really penitent.
-“For but one moment I dreamed--shall I tell thee my dream?”
-
-Anny looked at him in astonishment and in spite of her vexation drew a
-little nearer.
-
-“Whatever----” she began.
-
-Dick interrupted her.
-
-“All in one moment I dreamt I was dead and in hell, and, as I trod on
-the burning stones, a sudden ease fell upon me and I looked up and
-beheld the fairest face in all the world before me, the lips put up to
-meet mine--and I--well, mistress, then you woke me.”
-
-Anny looked at him in amazement, wondering if the Spanish gentleman had
-suddenly become bewitched. Then she conjured up in her childish mind a
-picture which his words suggested to her of the fastidious little man
-hopping and dancing over hot paving bricks, and she began to laugh so
-heartily that she had to support herself by leaning against the
-door-post. Although this was hardly the way in which he wished his
-excuse to be taken, the Spaniard was pleased to have the girl so
-completely mollified and began to laugh himself with her.
-
-“Oh, go along with ye,” said Anny at last, as she wiped away the tears
-of laughter with the back of her hand and held open the door for him.
-
-Dick bowed again and Anny smiled as she watched him out of the yard.
-
-“Oh!” she said to herself, “he’s a mighty pleasing gentleman, very fine
-to look upon, very bravely spoken, and I’ll bless his ship for him
-gladly, but you can’t love two lads at once.”
-
-Dick went off down the road toward the sea, deep in thought. He had not
-gone very far before he was overtaken by Blueneck, who was just back
-from Tiptree. They fell into that easy kind of conversation which often
-takes place between master and his confidential inferior.
-
-“We’re renaming the brig to _Anny_ on the evening of Wednesday,”
-remarked Dick, as they went along.
-
-Blueneck looked at his captain and opened his mouth to protest, but
-thought better of it and held his peace.
-
-“What think you, Blueneck, the wench will have naught to do with me!”
-went on Delfazio.
-
-The other man looked at him disbelievingly and laughed.
-
-“Marry, ’tis so,” Dick said, laughing. “Faith, she sends back my presents
-and scorns my kisses.”
-
-Blueneck looked down at his master in surprise, then he shrugged his
-shoulders.
-
-“You will not trouble with the lass further, sir, surely?” he said.
-
-Dick smiled again.
-
-“Hast ever known me denied aught I desired?” he said, his voice pleasant
-and smooth.
-
-Blueneck shook his head.
-
-“Nay,” he said, “but, Lord, what’s a silly wench, sir? She can have no
-interest for thee.”
-
-“Ah, thou hast hit it, dog, ’tis that exactly which the lass has for
-me--interest--interest greater than I ever felt for any other woman.”
-
-Blueneck laughed and turned the laugh into a cough.
-
-Dick looked at him, smiling shyly.
-
-“Ah! you may laugh, friend of the unshaven neck,” he said, “but as I
-told you this is so. Never have I been denied so much by any woman, and
-at last I find a game that makes the prize worth having. The end of a
-certainty will be the same but the wooing is half the pleasure, eh,
-dog?”
-
-Blueneck grinned as he fingered the ribbon, which he had brought from
-Tiptree, and they went on together down to the brig where Dick gave
-orders for the ceremony for renaming the _Coldlight_.
-
-Meanwhile, up at the Ship everything was bustle. French had returned and
-was entertaining the company with the story of the night’s adventures,
-and Anny and Sue were kept busy serving rums and preparing the midday
-meal.
-
-It was then that Big French remembered the flannel he had bought and
-handed it to Sue with another little bundle which he had bought from a
-gypsy.
-
-Sue hastened away to open it, and it being dinnertime the company slowly
-dwindled off until there was only the usual household and the young
-giant left to partake of the meal together. This was speedily served by
-Anny and Hal, who were now on the best of terms.
-
-Sue came downstairs a few seconds later, blushing and smiling, with a
-string of blue beads round her neck, and French shuffled, reddened, and
-choked over his broth when he saw her so that everyone looked at him and
-then at her and smiled at one another knowingly.
-
-Old Gilbot began to sing “Mary Loo,” but soon gave it up and took to his
-rumkin.
-
-After dinner, the delf being cleared away, Anny went up to her room,
-which was also Sue’s, and sat down on her bed. She thought of
-Black’erchief Dick and his brig and began to picture to herself the
-scene on board the _Coldlight_ when she would change its name to her
-own. Then she sighed. She looked down at her shabby kirtle and passed
-her hand over its holes and stains. Downstairs she could hear Big
-French’s deep voice raised as though pleadingly and could catch Sue’s
-high, sweet, giggling replies. She turned over on the bed and lay face
-downward for a few seconds, then she sat up and began hastily to
-re-arrange her hair. On Sue’s bed she saw the flannel spread out, and
-she went over softly to have a look at it. It seemed very coarse and
-ugly when she mentally compared it to the honey-coloured silk or the
-wide green frieze which she had sent back to Dick in the sail-cloth
-bundle. And she found herself wishing that Hal had money like French and
-Dick, but she checked herself and blushed at her own greediness, as she
-termed it. She sat down on her bed again, sighing as she did so, and
-Sue, coming up some while later, finding her still there, took pity on
-her shabbiness and gave her the purple gown that Anny had wished for so
-long, and was then amazed to see the usually so grateful, peaceable
-little girl cast the old garment from her and, throwing herself on the
-bare boards, sob till the elder girl feared for her health.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-
-After his conversation with Black’erchief Dick, Blueneck found leisure
-to attend to his own amours. He first retired to the brig where, with
-the help of Habakkuk Coot, he arrayed himself in his best clothes, tied
-the knee-latchets of his breeches with bright-coloured tapes, and
-borrowed a brilliant red-and-green kerchief from out poor Mat Turnby’s
-bundle, and then, after carefully tying the length of cherry ribbon,
-which had cost him much time and trouble to procure, in a piece of
-muslin, he stowed the packet in one of his big side pockets and started
-out for Joe Pullen’s house.
-
-He had some little way to go, as the Pullens’ cottage was situated
-slightly to the north of the church, and that was about a mile and a
-half from the point where the brig was moored. He walked along
-cheerfully, whistling a chanty, and mentally rehearsing the speech which
-he intended to make to Mistress Amy when presenting the ribbon.
-
-In spite of the time of year, the late afternoon sun shone brightly on
-the wet grass and there was a touch of spring in the air.
-
-On nearing the cottage he stopped to see if he still had the little
-muslin packet, and, feeling it still there, strolled nonchalantly up to
-the door and knocked loudly.
-
-Mistress Pullen opened it herself, and seeing him, put her finger to her
-lips.
-
-Blueneck stood still looking at her, very disappointed and a little
-foolish. Inside the cottage he could hear deep rafter-shaking snores and
-soon understood that the lady’s husband was within. He opened his mouth
-to speak but Amy shook her head violently and he shut it again with a
-snap; however, he did not move, and Mistress Pullen had to push him off
-the door-step and whisper, “This evening,” before he fully realized that
-he was not wanted. Fumbling in his pocket, he hastily found the ribbon,
-and snatching it out crammed it into her hand, then tiptoed off down the
-path feeling that he had been cheated.
-
-Amy took the parcel without looking up and quickly slipped back,
-shutting the door carefully behind her.
-
-Blueneck returned along the way he had come, in a much less cheerful
-frame of mind than when he started out. He no longer whistled but
-lurched along, his head bent and his hands thrust deep in his pockets.
-
-On passing the Ship sounds of cheerfulness came out to him through the
-open door and, yielding to the impulse of the moment, he went in.
-
-As usual the scene in the Ship kitchen was cheering even to look at. The
-roaring fire in the open grate, the glinting lights on the pewter, and
-the shadowy, dusky corners in which faint outlines of casks and strings
-of drying onions could just be distinguished, all gave it a cosy,
-comforting appearance. At least Blueneck thought so as he joined the
-circle round the fire and called for hot rum to be served to him.
-
-Old Gilbot was in a lively mood; he sat in his corner, his blue eyes
-twinkling from out huge creases of fat, singing, laughing, and drinking
-with the best will in the world, and keeping the company in a continual
-roar of laughter.
-
-Big French sat on the other side of the fireplace, playing with little
-Red Farran and his kitten. The little boy was a favourite of the big man
-and they chatted together with an equal share of enjoyment.
-
-Sue leaned over the back of the seat, and from time to time joined in
-their conversation. At these times French smiled contentedly and almost
-as easily as he did on the days before the little dark-eyed white-handed
-Spaniard landed east instead of west of Mersea Marsh Island.
-
-Anny and Hal were talking together in the background as they polished up
-the tankards. She was telling him about the Spaniard’s desire to rename
-the brig, and clearing away with her gentle cajolery all his little
-jealous fears and doubts.
-
-Several other men were sitting round the fire. They were Habakkuk Coot,
-sniffing as usual and drinking spiced ale; Old Master Granger,
-guffawing at Gilbot, and sipping his neat rum with obvious relish; Cip
-de Musset, chewing a chunk of coarse black tobacco, a habit much
-disapproved of by the Islanders who thought the weed a dangerous,
-new-fangled drug, and of no use save to sell to other people; and one or
-two others. All very merry and cheerful and good company to each other.
-
-Blueneck drank his rum and, beginning to feel more cheerful, he leaned
-forward a little to join in the talk.
-
-“Ah! a wonderful funny thing that be,” Granger was saying, as he shook
-his head sagely. “You’re right, a wonderful funny thing.”
-
-“Ah! and what’s more, it ain’t the first time it’s happened,” put in
-another man casually.
-
-“What?”
-
-In an instant the company’s attention was fixed on the new speaker and
-he looked round as though he were going to say something very secret.
-
-“Six months ago on Ray Island,” he said.
-
-“Oh, everyone knows that, Tom Fish. Go home with your old stories!”
-
-There was a note of disappointment in their voices and they all laughed.
-The man muttered something about there being old and old, and subsided.
-
-Blueneck came a little nearer.
-
-“Might I ask what you are talking about?” he said.
-
-Cip de Musset rolled his quid into his cheek and spat before he replied.
-
-“A rowboat load o’ rum and two men lost going from here to Bradwell,” he
-said laconically.
-
-“Ah,” said Granger, “wonderful strange.”
-
-“What, ain’t the boat been washed up?” said Blueneck, glad to enter into
-the conversation.
-
-“No, nothing found at all,” said Granger eagerly, as he shifted his
-position slightly. “Nothing at all. But, ah, well,” he added, “I don’t
-know what’s come to them.”
-
-“Would the Preventative men have catched them, think you?” remarked Cip,
-chewing.
-
-“Now that are likely,” said Granger sarcastically. “Ain’t ’it? There not
-being a sign of a Preventative man these nine months! Oh, yes, Master de
-Musset, it are likely they’d be spry enough to catch two chaps in a
-rowboat in the middle of the Blackwater without a soul on the Island or
-the mainland knowing aught. Lord, you ought to ha’ been an excise man
-yourself, you ought.”
-
-“Maybe, Granger, maybe,” said Cip de Musset placidly and without ceasing
-to chew.
-
-“Maybe they drank the liquor and then pulled out the bung and sunk her
-theirselves,” suggested Habakkuk, sniffing violently.
-
-Granger turned slowly in his seat and let his gaze fall upon the nervous
-little man for a second or two before he spoke.
-
-“Ah! Master Rheum-in-the-head, maybe they did,” he said, “and maybe the
-devil come along and carried them off in a thunder-cloud, or maybe a
-sea-serpent swallowed them. Eh?”
-
-Habakkuk looked into the others’ unsmiling faces and sniffed, while a
-weak, ineffectual little smile spread over his bilious, pimply face, and
-then, as Granger betrayed no amusement, it struck him that he must have
-said something sensible, so he answered, “Ay, most likely,” wagging his
-head sagely.
-
-The company burst into a roar of laughter, and Habakkuk, feeling that
-this time he had been witty, joined with them happily.
-
-“Ah, no, but it is unnatural,” continued Granger thoughtfully after the
-laughter had subsided. “And ye know it ain’t the first time a rowboat o’
-rum and two chaps have been lost,” he went on. “Just in the same way,
-too, started off after dawn and never seen no more. Ah, unnatural,
-that’s what it is.”
-
-“The currents be plaguey strong out i’ the channel,” said French,
-looking up for a moment.
-
-Granger was up in arms at once.
-
-“Currents!” he ejaculated. “Now tell me, just tell me, Master French, do
-you think either Clarry Kidley or Gustave Norton would be likely to run
-into anything like that, an’ if they did, to stay in it? Just tell me!”
-
-French shrugged his shoulders and continued to explain to Red the
-kitten’s natural objection to being stroked from tail to the ears.
-
-Granger looked round triumphantly. “Ah, I don’t know, I don’t know,” he
-said at last.
-
-“More do we,” said Habakkuk with a sniff, and the talk drifted to other
-channels.
-
-Blueneck was feeling that perhaps the world was not so dreary a place
-as he had imagined, when the door burst open, and young Tant Pullen
-rushed in without a hat and very breathless. He looked round the room
-for a moment as though searching for someone. At last his quick bright
-eyes fell upon Blueneck and he darted over to him.
-
-“Look out you, get out of here and hide quick,” he gasped as well as he
-could for lack of breath.
-
-The Spanish sailor looked at him in surprise, and the rest of the
-company, seeing that something was afoot, turned to listen.
-
-Tant took the sailor by the collar when he saw that the man did not
-move.
-
-“Quick, hurry, or he’ll get you,” he said.
-
-Blueneck opened his mouth in astonishment.
-
-“Why--what?” he ejaculated.
-
-Tant took a deep breath.
-
-“My mother’s bin beatin’ my father, because he said that she’d took
-presents from strangers,” he volunteered. The company began to laugh and
-Blueneck still looked bewildered.
-
-Tant gave one anxious look at the door.
-
-“Mother says I was to come and tell you,” he said.
-
-Again the circle rocked and the mystified Blueneck looked up.
-
-“Well?” he said.
-
-Tant sighed.
-
-“You best come,” he said, “my father’s wonderfully riled after he’s been
-beat by my mother, an’ he’s coming up here to beat you now.”
-
-“Oh!” The company went off into another paroxysm of laughter, and
-Blueneck began to see a little more light in the matter. “Let him come,”
-he said, shrugging his shoulders.
-
-Hal stepped forward from the dresser where he had been arranging
-tankards.
-
-“You better go, Master Blueneck,” he said. “Joe’s wonderfully strong,
-and after he’s bin beat by his wife there’s no holding him.”
-
-Blueneck hesitated. Then he shrugged his shoulders. Whatever he was,
-Dick Delfazio’s mate was no coward and he stood his ground.
-
-“I’m not feared,” he said; “let him come.”
-
-Hal looked at Gilbot who had been watching the scene attentively.
-
-“Ohsh he’sh all right,” said the old man. “Let him come, Hal.”
-
-Hal shrugged his shoulders, and sent Anny upstairs to look to the
-guest’s room. Then he quietly and unobtrusively moved everything movable
-to the sides of the room, so leaving a clear space in the centre.
-
-The company also shrugged their shoulders and edged a little away from
-Blueneck so that the sailor found himself sitting alone on a bench. He
-looked round him uneasily, but did not move.
-
-Suddenly Tant, who had been looking out of the window, remarked in a
-stage whisper, “Here he come,” and then dived under a pile of sacking in
-a far corner.
-
-Nobody spoke and the silence was almost uncomfortable. Little Red
-noticed it, and after looking about put his arms round French’s neck and
-climbed on to his knee.
-
-“Put Win into your pocket,” he whispered, “she got hurt last time Nan
-and Pet fought.”
-
-French obeyed and, moving a little farther into the chimney corner, he
-looked up shyly at Sue, who smiled and came round the high seat to sit
-beside him.
-
-French made room for her on the inside of the bench, and she took Red
-from him and held the child herself.
-
-By this time heavy footsteps could be heard coming across the yard, and
-the Ship waited in a silence only broken by Habakkuk’s sniffs and the
-plaintive mews of Red’s little kitten who was shut in the darkness of
-French’s big pocket.
-
-Then the door was kicked open with such a clatter that Habakkuk nearly
-fell off his seat with nervousness, and Joe stalked into the room. All
-his usual good humour was gone and he seemed to Blueneck, at least, to
-have got quite six inches taller. He stood for a moment looking round,
-his face flushed and his eyes dark with fury; a long, livid weal ran
-from his left eye to the corner of his mouth, and he trembled with anger
-as he stood there breathing heavily. Then, as he caught sight of
-Blueneck, he gave one whoop of exultation and leapt across the room,
-landing on the top of the unfortunate man, whom he proceeded to punch
-with all his might.
-
-Blueneck was no indifferent fighter himself, and as Joe’s first blow
-landed in his ribs a dull light of anger kindled in his eyes and he
-forced his way to his feet, and then the greatest fight that the old
-Ship Tavern had ever witnessed began. They closed in, and Blueneck tried
-to take advantage of his superior strength by grasping his opponent
-round the body and swinging him over his head, but Joe was too wiry for
-that. Seizing his opportunity he dropped low, and throwing his arms
-round the sailor’s knees he suddenly crouched so that the man fell over
-and stretched his body full length on the floor. Before he could again
-regain his feet Joe was upon him and they rolled over and over together
-kicking, the Spaniard swearing softly. Joe said nothing but grit his
-teeth and fought steadily and swiftly, always making for the man’s
-throat. At last he got there; the Spaniard lay on his back and Joe,
-making a desperate dive between his clawing hands, grasped at the hairy
-throat and held on tightly.
-
-Blueneck’s mouth opened and his eyes bulged; slowly his movements grew
-less effectual and more convulsive. Joe held on grimly and without a
-word; finally he stood up.
-
-“Give him a rum,” he said. “I’ve not done with him yet by a long way.”
-
-Nobody spoke, but Hal stepped forward with the rum. He had drawn it in
-readiness, and between them he and Joe raised the half-strangled man to
-his feet and forced the spirit down his throat. Then, as he grew
-stronger, Joe took him firmly by the collar and dragged him out of the
-Inn, without a word or a glance behind him.
-
-Sue was on her feet in an instant.
-
-“Will he kill him?” she cried.
-
-Hal shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“No,” he said, “I don’t reckon so--and if he does, what’s a Spaniard,
-anyway?”
-
-“Yesh,” said Gilbot, holding out his rumkin to be refilled. “What’s a
-Spaniard, anyway? Let’sh have a shong.”
-
-And as Joe, his wrath hardly one whit abated, dragged the
-half-suffocated Blueneck down the road to the sea, he heard the jovial
-strains of “Pretty Poll” roared out in lively chorus from the Ship’s
-kitchen:
-
- “_Pretty Poll she loved a sailor_
- _And well she loved he,_
- _But he sailed to the mouth_
- _Of a stream in the South,_
- _And was lost in the rolling sea,_
- _Lost in the rolling sea!_”
-
-“Ah, ha,” said Joe between his teeth as he shook his unfortunate captive
-by the collar. “And that’s what you’re goin’ to be, my lad, ‘lost in the
-rolling sea’.”
-
-Blueneck opened his mouth to expostulate, but Joe swung him round like a
-meal sack and tightened his neckerchief, so that it was all he could do
-to breathe, and they hurried on.
-
-Joe strode over the ground at a tremendous pace, dragging the Spaniard
-after him. And not one other word did he speak till they came to the
-waterside, where Joe’s little rowboat, the _Amy_, flopped and see-sawed
-on the rising tide.
-
-Still keeping one hand on Blueneck’s collar, Joe stopped, caught at the
-riding-line, and pulled it in.
-
-“Get in,” he commanded.
-
-Blueneck obeyed as meekly as a lamb, and Joe stepped in after him, and
-pushed off. He rowed steadily for some seconds and, as the water was
-very calm, made good progress. About twenty-five yards from the shore he
-pulled in the oars and sat looking at the other man a full minute. Then
-he spoke sharply.
-
-“Change places and row a bit,” he said.
-
-Blueneck shrugged his shoulders and did not move.
-
-Joe’s eyes began to sparkle and a dull flash suffused his neck and face.
-
-“Do as I say,” he said quietly.
-
-The fresh air and the rum had revived Blueneck and he began to feel
-angry again. Still he did not move. Joe seized an oar, holding it in
-both hands; he wielded it above his head; it was a clumsy weapon,
-however, and the boat rocked dangerously. Instinctively Blueneck drew
-back, and before he knew what he was doing raised himself to a sitting
-position on the gunwale; this was Joe’s opportunity, and he grasped it.
-Lowering the oar as swiftly as possible he hove it sharply into the
-Spaniard’s stomach, who immediately doubled up and fell backward into
-the water.
-
-Joe crawled along the boat and looked over the side. Blueneck came up a
-little to the left and seized hold of the side; Joe pushed him off, and
-he sank again and tried to strike out for the shore, but his wind was
-gone and he floundered, gasping.
-
-Joe looked at him critically.
-
-“You won’t come near my wife no more,” he observed, as he threw the
-helpless man a line. “Oh, no, you can’t come in my boat dripping as ye
-are,” he said cheerily as the other, wild-eyed and half-drowned, clawed
-at the boat. “You hang on that there line and I’ll tow ye in,” Joe
-continued, and suiting the action to the word picked up both oars and
-struck out.
-
-When at last the keel grated on the soft shingle, Joe got out and after
-first dropping his anchor looked round for Blueneck. The man lay still
-in the water, both hands tightly grasping the line, the ripple of the
-waves tossing him to and fro.
-
-Joe dragged him in, threw him down on a bank of dry seaweed, and stood
-looking at him for a minute or two.
-
-“Ah, I wonder if he be dead now,” he said to himself, and he bent down
-to lift the sailor’s eyelids. He tore open the wet remains of Blueneck’s
-best surcoat and put his hand in the left side.
-
-Then he stood up and shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Ah, well!” he said, addressing the unconscious body, “seeing that you
-ain’t dead, you may as well live, but you don’t come round my house in a
-hurry again, or there won’t be any not quite dead about it--see?”
-
-Blueneck opened his eyes for a second and then fell back again into
-unconsciousness.
-
-Joe looked round him, heaved a sigh of relief and, as he strolled off up
-to the Ship, his face assumed once more its wonted good humour, his
-heavy sandy lashes fell half over his eyes as usual, and, thrusting his
-thumbs in his belt, he whistled as clearly, happily, and tunefully as a
-linnet in May.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-
-Everything on the shore was very dark and very silent when Blueneck
-regained consciousness and sat up. His head ached and his body was stiff
-and cold while his clothes, still wet and sticky with brine, clung to
-him uncomfortably.
-
-He peered round in the darkness, striving to remember where he was and
-what had happened to him. There was no moon, or at least if there was it
-was so hidden behind the clouds as to be of no use to any one, and he
-could only faintly distinguish a kind of haze some quarter of a mile in
-front of him which he supposed was the sea. Behind him he could see
-nothing at all, only blackness. He put out a cold, trembling hand and
-felt cautiously about; the first thing he touched was the dry, crumbly
-seaweed. Not sure what it was he grasped a handful of it and pulled it
-up. Immediately the sickening stench of stale salt water arose and he
-spat and swore aloud. Then he reached out his other hand and touched
-still more seaweed. He groaned with stiffness and pain and threw himself
-back on the heap. As he did so his shoulders encountered something hard
-and he almost screamed aloud, so much did it jar him. Changing to a
-sitting posture again, he felt for the obstacle and found that whatever
-it was it lay beneath the seaweed. Wearily he pushed the stuff aside and
-thrust his hand into the clammy depths beneath. The hard thing was lower
-down still and he burrowed feverishly in a tired, thoughtless way,
-hardly knowing what he did or why he did it.
-
-Suddenly he paused, and felt more gingerly, yes--surely he could not be
-mistaken, he was running his hand over the hard round belly of a rum
-keg. He twisted round quickly and winced as his stiffened muscles
-twinged at the movement. Beside the first keg he felt another; and yet
-another at the side of that. He lay back exhausted by the effort and
-wondered at his find. He had no doubt it was some smuggler’s private
-store, but was surprised that on such a lawless coast such secrecy
-should be resorted to. He knew that in Mersea everyone was more or less
-his own master and thought that it was therefore a rather unnecessary
-precaution.
-
-When he had arrived thus far in his thoughts, however, he felt a return
-of the giddiness which he had before experienced and lay back, his eyes
-open, staring in front of him.
-
-He had not lain so many minutes before he caught the glimmer of a light
-in the distance and he stared at it in surprise. It was not coming from
-the sea and was therefore not the riding light of a boat, neither was it
-coming from the direction of the brig or the Ship Inn, but from the
-west, from the lonely strip of coast between the little villages of East
-Mersea and West Mersea.
-
-Nearer and nearer it came, till he could see how it jogged and danced
-along the beach, swaying from side to side, pausing a minute here, and
-then darting off again, sometimes vanishing completely only to reappear
-considerably nearer.
-
-Blueneck watched it, fascinated, a strange, uncanny fear creeping over
-him; everywhere was so dark and lonely, and he strained his eyes peering
-at the light, fancying that he saw sometimes a man behind it, sometimes
-a beast, or a fiend. This fear grew upon him every moment, and he tried
-to struggle to his feet, but his legs were too benumbed to bear him and
-he sank back again.
-
-The light came nearer and nearer, dancing and swaying more than ever. In
-a flash the story of the lost rowboat ran through his mind and his flesh
-began to creep.
-
-Like most sailors, and Spaniards especially, Blueneck was very
-superstitious; he shuddered and his teeth chattered as he imagined the
-thing that was holding the lantern to be first a blue swollen corpse
-with dead sightless eyes, then a rampaging devil with swinging tail and
-ram’s horns, and then a mermaid whose white teeth were adder’s fangs and
-whose lips were the nightshade’s berries.
-
-His hand crept up to his neck where a little silver crucifix usually
-hung, but it was gone; he must have lost it in the fight with Joe. He
-trembled and mouthed a prayer.
-
-The light seemed to be making straight for him, and as it came nearer,
-wild, unearthly crooning noises came from it.
-
-Blueneck gulped, and his eyes started from his head and the blood
-tingled and danced in his veins.
-
-The noise--it was certainly not a song nor yet the cry of an animal, but
-a sort of long-drawn-out sighing on a high quavering note--came nearer
-and grew louder. Now the light was within fifteen paces of him and he
-held his breath. Nearer it came.
-
-“Doña Maria, let it pass,” he prayed. Now it was within five yards of
-him, and came nearer still. Straining his eyes, he could make out a
-fearful bundle-like figure behind the lantern. The noise grew louder;
-nearer it came till the light stopped three feet away from him, and fell
-on the most evil and half-human face the terrified sailor had ever seen.
-
-This was the last straw, and Blueneck screamed. The sound rang out high
-and short as he dropped back on the weed, half insensible. However much
-the thing with the lantern had frightened him, he certainly frightened
-it with his yell, for it sprang back and emitted a howl which started
-the echoes and woke the sea-birds who screamed also as they flapped
-sleepily away.
-
-Blueneck shut his eyes and waited during three seconds of horrible
-suspense. Then he felt the light beating on his eyelids, and heard a
-cracked human voice very near him say:
-
-“Oh! ye would be spying on me, would ye, ye hell-traitor?”
-
-The words reassured Blueneck more than perhaps anything else would have
-done and he opened his eyes. The terrible old face was very near his
-own, and hot spirit-tainted breath blew into his nostrils, but what
-fixed his attention was the glitter of steel above the figure’s head.
-
-Blueneck rose to the situation now that he was assured of the old
-woman’s mortality (he decided that it must be an old woman). He was not
-the man to be frightened of a knife other than his captain’s.
-
-“Pity a poor sailor; so stiff with the cold that his legs will not bear
-him,” he moaned, in a pitiful pleading whine.
-
-The old woman laughed horribly.
-
-“You don’t catch birds like Pet Salt with chaff, hell-rat,” she said.
-
-“Pet Salt!” Blueneck began to understand. “Mistress,” he said, “what are
-you about?”
-
-“Killing a spying knave,” was the reply, and the blade descended until
-its point pricked his throat.
-
-Things were turning out more seriously than Blueneck had expected, and
-he spoke quickly.
-
-“Is it rum you want, lady?” he said as steadily as he could, the blade
-pricking deeper as the words moved the muscle of his throat.
-
-“It is, hell-rat, it is.” Pet Salt bent nearer. “And no spying dog
-shall stop me from getting it. Ye waited out here till you were too
-stiff to move, did you? Ah, you blue-livered pike, the devil looks after
-his own.”
-
-“Then I’m the man to get it for thee. I’m the mate of the _Coldlight_.”
-
-Blueneck had just time to get out the words or she would have killed
-him.
-
-“How do I know you be not?” she said shrewdly, though visibly shaken at
-his words, as she withdrew the knife.
-
-“I swear,” began the sailor.
-
-Pet Salt stopped him.
-
-“Swear!” she screamed. “What’s a seaman’s oath to me?”
-
-“Look at my garments,” said the anxious Blueneck. “Are they those of a
-common man or one befitting my station?”
-
-Pet, like many other women before and since, was moved at the sight of
-the bright colours and good stuffs.
-
-“They be ruined with salt water,” she remarked. “What happened to you,
-hell-rat?”
-
-Blueneck paused before he spoke. His pride forbade him to tell the
-truth, and his prudence warned him against a lie. Finally he made a
-compromise between the two and told a fairly plausible story of two men
-setting upon him, of a fearful fight, and finished up with a faithful
-account of the ducking which he had received.
-
-Pet seemed satisfied. How much she believed is another matter but, as
-she often told Ben Farran, she understood sea-folk and all their tricks.
-
-She put up the knife somewhere in her rags and set down the lantern.
-
-“Try and stand,” she commanded.
-
-Blueneck obeyed as one in a dream; slowly and painfully he staggered to
-his feet, only to drop again almost immediately.
-
-Pet waddled after him.
-
-“Rub your legs,” she said, “and hurry. You’ve got to work for me before
-the cocks crow.”
-
-Wearily Blueneck did as he was bid, and the old woman hobbled to the
-bank of seaweed where she set to work unearthing the kegs. With a grunt
-of satisfaction she set the last one beside the others and turned to the
-sailor.
-
-“Come on,” she said.
-
-Blueneck staggered to his feet; he was still very unsteady, but the
-rubbing had partially restored his circulation and he was just able to
-stumble along.
-
-Pet pointed to the three kegs.
-
-“Carry two,” she said shortly.
-
-Blueneck looked around him hopelessly. It was still dark and lonely and
-some of the horror he had felt when he first saw Pet Salt returned to
-him. He shuddered; the bent old figure in front of him clad in dirty,
-evil-smelling rags seemed again to take on some of the fear-inspiring
-qualities of a fiend or marsh-goblin. He struggled on to where the kegs
-were lying and with great difficulty hoisted one onto his shoulder.
-
-Pet lifted up another.
-
-“Put this under your other arm,” she said, “and mind your stepping; it’s
-heavy.”
-
-Blueneck took it without a word.
-
-Pet picked up the last keg and turned to him, her ugly bulbous face
-showing red with exertion in the lantern’s flickering light.
-
-“Now follow after me,” she said, and hobbled off.
-
-Long afterward Blueneck described this journey from the bank of seaweed
-to Ben Farran’s boat as a walk through hell itself.
-
-Time after time the keg under his arm slipped and fell in the soft
-powdery shingle, and he had to bend his stiffened and aching body to
-pick it up again, while the terrible cracked voice of Pet Salt, railing
-in the most fearful language, rang in his ears.
-
-But he went on. Once he fell and cut his head on a breakwater stone, and
-the old woman kicked him with her wood-shod foot and bade him rise in a
-tone that had fear in it as well as command.
-
-Once they saw a lantern in the far distance and Pet made him crouch and
-wait silent till it passed on. Again and again he felt that he must
-break away and regain his lost courage, but always the fear of the dark
-desolateness and the awful old woman prevented him, and he went on
-meekly.
-
-How at last he managed to climb up the rope ladder and scramble on to
-the deck of the _Pet_ and then down the hatchway to the stifling cabin
-and bunk-room below he did not know. However, he did it and fell through
-the doorway into Ben Farran’s presence in a fainting condition.
-
-When he recovered himself the air was full of a strange sickening odour
-mixed with the fumes of steaming rum.
-
-He looked round him curiously. The room was very small even for a boat
-and marvellously dirty and untidy.
-
-A few rags were bundled together in a corner, forming a rude sort of
-bed, and an old iron stove smoked and spat in another. On the top of
-this stood an iron bowl, and it was from this Blueneck decided that the
-strange smell came.
-
-In a corner by the stove lay Ben Farran, snoring loudly with his mouth
-open.
-
-Blueneck looked at him curiously. He had been a fine big man, he judged,
-and had had some strength and comeliness, but much rum had changed him
-and he sprawled there a most ungainly, loathsome figure. His shoulders
-were bent till he lost any pretension to height, his jaw was weak and
-drooping, and great blue pouches of flesh hung under his eyes. This,
-combined with an enormous stomach and bent podgy legs, gave him a great
-resemblance to a fat toad.
-
-Blueneck looked away and turned his attentions to himself. He found that
-his outer garments had been removed and that his arms and legs were
-covered with a black-greenish paste. He looked at them in surprise and
-disgust and began to rub off the caked mixture as fast as he could. But
-he noticed that his stiffness had left him and that he felt as well and
-strong as he had done the night before he had his fight with Joe Pullen.
-
-Pet came in presently and he saw that she was growing fast like Ben,
-rum-sodden and old. She smiled when she saw him and he thought how
-horribly pale her toothless gums showed across the flaming purple
-redness of her face.
-
-“Now, master, mate of the _Coldlight_, I bargain with thee,” she began
-as she handed him his clothes newly dried and motioned him to dress.
-
-Blueneck said nothing but took his garments and began to put them on.
-
-“Methinks your captain, the Spanish Dick, has set eyes on a pretty
-wench,” she said slowly.
-
-The sailor did not look up; he was mournfully regarding his best doublet
-coat stained and faded with salt water.
-
-“Oh, there be many pretty wenches who have had his eyes upon them,” he
-said carelessly.
-
-Pet swore roundly and with such vehemence that he glanced at her.
-
-“But one particular wench?” she went on, relapsing again into quietness.
-“I have long ears.”
-
-Blueneck, who was slow of comprehension, looked at her in surprise; her
-remark struck him as being strangely irrelevant.
-
-“I hear what is said on the Island,” the old woman continued. “I know
-your captain hath a great liking for Ann Farran, Ben’s gran’daughter.”
-
-Blueneck looked even more puzzled.
-
-“Ay, and if it be so, what then?” he said.
-
-Pet smiled again.
-
-“Your captain carries much rum,” she observed.
-
-Blueneck nodded and pulled on his boots.
-
-“This Ann Farran hath but one kinsman in the world save her bastard
-half-brother,” Pet went on crooningly.
-
-Blueneck stood up and began to see what she was leading up to.
-
-“There would be none to look for the wench, or hark to the wench if one
-were quieted,” she went on suggestively.
-
-“And that one loves rum!” observed Blueneck.
-
-Pet smiled again.
-
-“And that one loves rum!” she repeated.
-
-Blueneck stood thinking for a moment or two, his hands in his pockets.
-
-“For this news, mistress, I will say naught of what has passed this
-evening, nor of the three rum kegs,” he said.
-
-Pet nodded; the man seemed intelligent.
-
-“Nor will I say aught of a lost boat,” continued the sailor, darting his
-bright black eyes upon her.
-
-Pet blinked. This man was too intelligent, she told herself.
-
-“I will tell the Captain of your bargain,” Blueneck went on. “It may be
-he will hear. Meanwhile”--he looked at the array of little kegs on the
-floor--“you will not die of thirst, mistress.”
-
-Pet shrugged her shoulders and looked across at the slovenly figure by
-the stove.
-
-“We both drink well,” she said.
-
-Blueneck looked from one to the other.
-
-“Of that I have no doubt,” he sneered, and walked out up the hatchway.
-“I will tell the Captain,” he called back, as he climbed down the rope
-ladder and on to the now sunlit wall.
-
-He walked along, talking to himself in a whisper. Now and again he
-paused and made as though to go back. Then he recovered himself and went
-on, still muttering. Finally he shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Well, it won’t be the first time rum has bought a fair lass, anyway,”
-he said aloud, “and it ain’t a right thing in a man to go against old
-habits.”
-
-And lifting his head he began to whistle blithely.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-
-It was seven o’clock on the following Wednesday evening and there was an
-air of expectation in the Ship’s kitchen.
-
-The _Coldlight_ was due to sail under a new name at the late tide.
-
-Anny was upstairs preparing herself for Dick’s coming, while in the room
-below the talk ran high and many conjectures as to the Captain’s
-intentions were put forward and withdrawn as the company drank round the
-fire.
-
-“Osh, where’s the man as can withstand a pretty lass?” said Gilbot,
-smiling and hiccoughing over his sack.
-
-“Ah, maybe, maybe, but ’tis a wonderful risky thing, this changing names
-o’ crafts,” put in Granger, wagging his head. “I don’t hold with it
-myself.”
-
-“Ah, I reckon the Captain knows what he’s about; there ain’t many like
-him to a mile,” remarked another man.
-
-“You’re right there,” said old Cip de Musset, who had been sitting
-silently in a corner for some time. “He ain’t no crab, but I’d not let a
-lass o’ mine have much to do with him.”
-
-“What do you mean?” said Hal, firing up and coming over from the
-doorway where he had been standing.
-
-Old Gilbot began to laugh.
-
-“Hark to th’ lad,” he gurgled. “One would think he loved her hisself.”
-
-Hal turned away from the light before he spoke, and no one saw the deep
-flush which crept up over his features even to the roots of his hair,
-making his scalp tingle uncomfortably.
-
-“We look after our wenches at the Ship, Master Gilbot,” he said hastily.
-
-Gilbot nodded happily.
-
-“Ay,” he said, “wesh do, wesh do!” And the talk continued.
-
-Just as the clock by the chimney-piece struck the quarter steps were
-heard coming across the yard, and Black’erchief Dick, flanked by
-Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot, and backed by some nine or ten hardy
-ruffians, marched in at the door.
-
-In an instant the little Spaniard was the centre of an enthusiastic
-group, for, since his first coming to the Ship, Dick had done much to
-make himself popular, and now his deep musical voice was raised
-good-naturedly above the din calling for rum all round and sack for
-those who wished for it.
-
-Hal and Sue darted about in obedience to his order and soon the company
-stood, silent, mugs in hand, waiting for the toast. At this moment the
-inner door opened and Anny, dressed in the purple gown that Sue had
-given her, stepped into the kitchen.
-
-Dick was at her side in a moment, and respectfully taking her hand led
-her into the centre of the room.
-
-“Ann of the Island, her health and beauty for ever!” he shouted, his
-tankard high above his head. The toast was given boisterously, and Anny
-blushed and smiled shyly.
-
-Old Gilbot was enjoying himself thoroughly and took advantage of a lull
-in the conversation to exclaim:
-
-“Let’sh have a shong,” and then without any more ado began to quaver
-“Pretty Poll” at the top of his voice.
-
-The company took up the burden and the final “Lost in the rolling sea”
-was bellowed till the rafters shook.
-
-“More rum,” called Dick, and then as though obeying an impulse of the
-moment he sprang upon one of the forms and resting one foot on the
-tresselled table, exclaimed,
-
-“Hark ye, dogs, here is a new song, mine own song, a song of Dick
-Delfazio’s own composing.”
-
-And then throwing back his head he began to sing in a remarkably true
-tenor voice, swaying his body in tune to his own music:
-
- “_Fair as a seagull and proud as the sea,_
- _As naught in the world is fair Anny to me,_
- _So gentle, so tender, so wise without guile,_
- _Oh! Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_
- _Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,_
- _Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-By this time the rumkins were all replenished and the chorus of the song
-was taken up and repeated to the accompaniment of jingling pewter.
-
-Dick still kept his position and took up the song again, his dark eyes
-flashing and smiling at the girl who watched him, fascinated.
-
- “_Avaunt ye fine ladies of France and of Spain,_
- _So wayward, so wanton, so proud, and so vain._
- _No sweet pleading look, no trick, or no wile,_
- _Shall ever more tempt me from Ann of the Isle._
- _Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,_
- _Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-And then he added before any one could speak, “To the brig, dogs,” and
-skipping lightly off the table he offered his hand to Anny and led the
-way out into the yard, the whole company following, roaring as they
-went,
-
- “_Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,_
- _Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-Anny looked up shyly at the Spaniard, her heart beating quickly with
-excitement. He was strolling jauntily along, her hand lightly held in
-his own; the starlight touched the jewelled hilt of his knife, and his
-big mournful black eyes winked and smiled happily.
-
-He loved display, pageant, parade; she could see that by the way his men
-marched around him in regulated order, and by his gorgeous clothes, and
-she herself became a little intoxicated by the air of excitement and the
-singing of the laughing, jostling crowd.
-
-Glancing at him under her lashes, she slipped her hand through his arm
-and laughed a little self-consciously.
-
-A curious, self-satisfied, but half-regretful smile passed over his face
-and he bent toward her.
-
-“Give me a kiss, little one,” he said softly.
-
-A wave of cold water seemed to dash over Anny’s pleasure and she drew
-her arm away stiffly, saying, “Prithee, sir, I would return to the
-Ship.”
-
-Again the curious smile spread over Dick’s lips but this time there was
-no regret.
-
-“Pardon, mistress, methinks thy beauty and mine own singing hath made my
-brain whirl. Prithee, prithee, fair one, give me thy hand again.”
-
-Anny looked at him and held out her hand without a word. He seemed so
-debonair, so gracious, such a fine gentleman, and his soft eyes sought
-hers almost beseechingly, she thought.
-
- “_Ann! oh! Ann of the Island_
- _Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-sang the company as the little procession neared the waterside.
-
-Sue, who walked between French and Cip de Musset, looked at the two
-small figures and sighed involuntarily. She also thought the Spaniard
-was a fine gentleman and she also had seen his dark eyes fixed
-mournfully on the other girl’s face, and she began to laugh and talk
-noisily to hide her vexation.
-
-Gallantly Black’erchief Dick led the little serving-wench down over the
-planked way to the rowboat, helped her in, and then stepped lightly
-after her. Several of the company crowded in behind them and they pushed
-off. The rest of the band seized other boats that were anchored near the
-shore and followed as best they could.
-
-Once on board the brig, Anny looked about her with delight; the shrouded
-sails and spiderweb-like rigging pleased her immensely; the swinging
-lanterns overhead showed the clean boards and newly painted sides, and
-she laughed with satisfaction as she noted first one thing and then
-another.
-
-Dick was no less pleased; he loved his boat and derived more pleasure
-from showing it off than from anything else in the world. He took her
-from end to end, telling her tales of hairbreadth escapes and secret
-cargoes of papers and documents. Indeed, carried away by his own
-enthusiasm he even hinted that good King Charles owed more to Dick
-Delfazio’s courage than His Majesty was aware of.
-
-Anny listened to him open-mouthed, as he talked on, embroidering his
-tales with a network of fine and polished phrases, and interrupting them
-here and there to shout an order or swear at an unhandy sailor as the
-man hurried to obey him.
-
-When at last the greater part of the company which had followed Dick
-from the Ship stood on the deck of the _Coldlight_, he opened the
-proceedings after the custom of the Island by calling for rum all round.
-
-After the toast, the whole crowd, which was by this time very
-boisterous, congregated in the forepart of the ship to inspect the
-figurehead which was at the moment covered with a piece of sail-cloth.
-
-Dick with his inborn love of dramatic effect had seen to this, and now
-stepping forward he whipped it off with a flourish and stepped back,
-observing with delight the impression it was making.
-
-Old Ned Hutton, the ship’s carpenter, was certainly not an artist, but
-he had done his best, and all that paint and a chunk of rough-hewn wood
-could do had been done. The figure was undoubtedly meant to represent
-Anny and that was enough for Mersea folk. Everybody cheered loudly, and
-Dick called for more rum. Then he and the girl went forward to examine
-the figurehead more closely.
-
-The ugly awkward thing was profusely decorated with gold paint; so much
-Anny could see by the light of the lantern which Dick gallantly held for
-her, and her name, “ANNY,” was painted on the bright blue band that went
-round the figure’s black head.
-
-“‘Tis lovely,” she whispered half to herself as she ran her fingers over
-the great arms and breasts on which the paint was hardly dry.
-
-Dick smiled and made her the obvious compliment, and they went down to
-the bows and leaned over the gunwale so as to see the four great white
-letters, “ANNY,” painted on the smooth brown sides.
-
-The girl was delighted, and her infectious gurgling laugh rang out
-clearly several times on the cold air as she listened to Dick’s
-sparkling conversation.
-
-“Tide’s full and wind fair,” sang out a voice suddenly from the
-watch-tower.
-
-Instantly there was confusion: Dick shouted orders here and there but
-did not take his hand from Anny’s arm. Everyone made for the boats
-shouting farewells to the crew which responded cheerfully.
-
-Dick bent nearer to the girl.
-
-“I will come again,” he said softly.
-
-Anny smiled and nodded.
-
-“We are ever pleased to see company at the Ship,” she said demurely,
-slipping her arm out of his grasp and moving over to the side where
-French, Sue, and Hal waited for her.
-
-Dick followed her.
-
-“Give us your blessing, mistress,” he said loudly. There was silence at
-once: the sailors attached much importance to a blessing and they stood
-quietly.
-
-Anny looked round desperately; she had never had a blessing in her life,
-much less given one, and for a moment she was entirely at a loss. No one
-spoke, however, so at last she crossed herself devoutly and said as
-clearly as her nervousness would permit, “I pray God bless this ship,
-Amen.”
-
-“Amen,” repeated the crew solemnly, and then dashed off on their
-business and the bustle recommenced.
-
-Sue climbed over the side of the boat, French followed her, and then
-Hal.
-
-“Farewell, Ann of the Island,” said the Spaniard softly. “I will return
-to thee.”
-
-Anny looked at him and he seemed to her very comely. She held out her
-hand and he raised it to his lips.
-
-“Farewell, sir,” she said, and then followed her lover into the little
-boat.
-
-“Farewell!” came the deep and almost beautiful voice again; there was
-the clink of chains and the anchor was weighed, and then the brig, her
-sails all set, glided out into the channel.
-
-Hal bent his back to the oar he was plying and spoke to the other three
-in the little rowboat without looking up.
-
-“There goes a damned nuisance off the Isle for a bit,” he said.
-
-French grunted and pulled hard. Sue sighed and looked out to sea, while
-Anny laughed a little ruefully, and patted Hal’s broad shoulders with
-her little brown hand.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-“Anny, are you gone to sleep yet?” Sue sat up in her bed and peered
-through the darkness to where the other girl lay in a far corner. Her
-hair was unbound and fell over her coarse night garment like a soft
-black shawl as she leant forward, speaking almost in a whisper.
-
-It was nearly a month since Dick had sailed away from the Island, and
-the quiet country life had flowed peacefully on at the Ship without
-interruption. But Sue had not forgotten the little Spaniard. It was a
-continual source of amazement to her that she could have entertained a
-liking for him or even a thought when big handsome Ezekiel French was
-by, but she was not sure about Anny.
-
-Sue had an observant eye, and she noticed that Hal and the girl were not
-so often together as they had used to be, and she drew her own
-conclusions. She had a kind heart, and she felt herself Anny’s guardian
-in a sense.
-
-Poor, quaint, foolish little Anny, she thought, so fond of admiration,
-so willing to love and be loved, so pretty and so gentle; and then she
-thought of the Spaniard, with his bright, devil-may-care eyes, and full
-red lips, and she nodded her head into the darkness and leaned forward
-again.
-
-“Anny,” she said distinctly.
-
-“Ay.” Anny’s voice came clearly out of the dark corner.
-
-“Have you been asleep yet?” whispered Sue.
-
-“Nay.” Anny turned over on her side.
-
-“Did you not hear me speak before?” the other girl persisted.
-
-Anny sighed and turned back again.
-
-“Nay, I have lain long a-thinking,” she said.
-
-Sue drew her knees up to her chin and clasped them with her arms before
-she spoke again.
-
-“Do you ever think of the Spaniard?” she said at last, and then added as
-Anny vouchsafed no answer: “Black’erchief Dick?”
-
-Anny moved in her bed.
-
-“Oh, him!” she said with a note of contempt in her pretty childlike
-voice. “Oh, nay!”
-
-Sue sighed again, and when she spoke her tone had a certain tenderness
-in it.
-
-“Why do you lie to me, Anny Farran?” she said.
-
-Anny sighed softly.
-
-“Oh! Mistress Sue,” she said, “what would you have me tell you? How many
-times he begged a kiss of me, or held my hand, or bore my onions with
-his fair white hands?”
-
-Sue flushed.
-
-“Sure he never carried onions for thee!” she said.
-
-“Marry! did he not?” said Anny quickly. “Ay, with his thin white
-fingers cracking under their weight, and the muddied side o’ the skep
-rubbing on his silken hose, did he carry onions for me, and I stumbling
-along at his side for all the world like a Hythe oyster wench. Oh! Lord,
-the tales he did tell,” and she broke off into a little chuckle, and Sue
-frowned.
-
-“I would speak seriously with you, Anny,” she began.
-
-Anny sighed and tossed like a naughty child and then resigned herself to
-the lecture she felt was coming.
-
-“I am listening,” she said.
-
-Sue spoke earnestly and sincerely.
-
-“Methinks you care too much for the Spaniard, lass,” she said.
-
-Anny gasped audibly but said nothing, and Sue, mistaking the sound for a
-sigh of confession, went on:
-
-“He is a dangerous man for a young wench to think on,” she said. “I
-would not trust a man who looked so boldly at every smirking lass who
-chanced to stand in his way as he walked from the yard to the brig. Ah!
-you may laugh, but I know; I served in this inn long before you came,
-and I’ve seen men and wenches, time and again. Remember what befell
-Maria Turnby when her husband left for the Indies. There’s a thing for
-him to hear when he comes back again, poor fellow--his own children left
-to starve that sweetbreads may be served for another man’s brats. Oh,
-Anny, lass,” Sue’s voice shook in its earnestness, “have a care, have a
-care. Men be eels wi’ maids. And this Delfazio, as he is pleased to call
-himself, is a deal more eel-like than many other menfish. What with his
-soft laughter, and hands like white and polished bone, together with
-black wanton eyes! Oh! have a care, I know tales of him; they say no one
-ever dares to come between him and his wishes, and that never since he
-was a squalling brat has he been stayed from getting what he wants.
-Anny, perchance he wants you, and perchance you will be bewitched into
-letting him get his way.”
-
-Anny sat up on her straw mattress, her bright eyes glittering in the ray
-of starlight which shone in through the uncurtained window, and her
-little white teeth clenched.
-
-“Methinks you wrong me, mistress,” she said, restraining her voice with
-difficulty. “I have no love for any crawling foreigner. What if he do
-eat and talk like the quality; I tell thee there are thirty other men I
-would rather marry than a brown-skinned Spaniard.”
-
-“Marry?” Sue laughed and Anny flushed.
-
-“Methinks,” she went on, her voice becoming colder at every word, “that
-not to me so much as to thee, Mistress Sue, should such talk be
-addressed. Is your heart so free from thoughts of this same Dick that
-you can hold him up to me as dangerous? What was it made thee lose thy
-taste for Master French’s talk so suddenly? Oh! truth! you make me sick
-to see you take me for so senseless a wench that you think I do not see
-your cleverness. Mistress, beware of jealousy.”
-
-Sue gasped. She had never considered the possibility of her words being
-taken in this way, and she could think of no adequate reply at that
-moment save a reproachful, “Anny!”
-
-There was silence for a moment or two and then Anny spoke again over her
-shoulder.
-
-“Rest assured,” she said, “‘tis not thoughts of thy pesky little
-cheap-jack that keeps me awake o’ nights. There be many here better than
-he, and one amongst them whom I love.”
-
-Then she buried her head under the blankets and did not speak again, in
-spite of Sue’s protestations of dislike for Dick, and the elder girl,
-getting tired of talking to seemingly deaf ears, lay down also and
-beguiled herself to sleep with thoughts of her own lover.
-
-The next day broke fine and fresh after the heavy rainfall of the
-preceding three weeks, but Sue went about her work with a certain
-nervous fidgetiness which irritated Anny and sent her out over the
-fields with Hal.
-
-Several times when they were out Sue went up to her room and there
-peered into the cracked mirror, putting a curl back here, another
-forward there, smoothing down her eyelashes with a moistened thumb and
-forefinger, and biting her lips till the red blood suffused them
-glowingly. More often did she go to the window, however, and stand there
-for minutes on end, staring out into the new begreened landscape, where
-the young leaves danced like lambkins in the cool, strong sea breeze,
-the sun on their wet surfaces lending them some of the splendour of
-jewels.
-
-Sue had made up her mind. Nobody came to the Ship all the morning, and
-by three o’clock she was in no pleasant humour, so old Gilbot found when
-he asked her to sing for him, for she was up and off in a moment with
-the sharp remark, “that there was more to do in the world than sing and
-get deep in liquor.”
-
-Gilbot was amazed; his little blue eyes stared surprisedly in front of
-him, and he absent-mindedly put his rumkin upside down on the stove and
-it was some minutes before he discovered that the kitchen was reeking
-with burnt rum dregs.
-
-This made Sue angrier still, and she bustled about, throwing open the
-doors, muttering the while that she was ashamed to let visitors into a
-room that smelt like Pet Salt’s boat and looked like a sty.
-
-Little Red Farran, however, found her in a very different mood, for when
-he came creeping into the scullery with his kitten (now wellnigh a cat)
-tucked under his cape, she caught him up in her arms and kissed him and
-then to his astonishment gave him a large slice of oatmeal cake
-high-heaped with quince jelly and sent him off on his way rejoicing.
-
-Her charity was well rewarded, for some two minutes later the kitchen
-door was kicked open and Red and French came in together.
-
-Sue began at once to bustle about with unnatural gaiety, and Gilbot
-regarded her with still greater astonishment, until he suddenly looked
-round and saw French. Then he nodded his head sagely once or twice, and,
-getting up with difficulty, tottered to get his coat which hung behind
-the door.
-
-“Redsh an’ Ish goin’ foa walk,” he announced.
-
-Red gave a whoop of delight and ran after him happily.
-
-French looked after them in surprise.
-
-“Whatever made him go off like that, now?” he said, as he sat down at
-the table.
-
-Sue blushed and clanged the pots together noisily.
-
-“I’m sure I don’t know,” she said almost sharply.
-
-French turned to her, his handsome boyish face blank with astonishment.
-
-“Why, what’s the matter with you?” he said.
-
-Sue shrugged her shoulders and bit her lips. Why was he so different
-to-day, she wondered?
-
-“Me--oh, nothing; is there aught in my face that should make you ask
-that?”
-
-Sue turned a fiery cheek toward the young giant, and then moved away.
-
-French got up.
-
-“I don’t know what’s taken you all,” he said, puzzled. “When I first
-comes in, Master Gilbot flies out wi’ the young lad, and now you look at
-me as though I’d done some mortal wrong. What is it?”
-
-“Oh! go to with ye.” Sue’s back was toward him and he could not see her
-face but her voice sounded sharp. “I’m getting your rum as fast as may
-be.”
-
-“What need you be worrying about rum?”
-
-French looked round him miserably.
-
-“I’m sorry,” he said, changing his weight from one foot to the other and
-his hands becoming noticeable and awkward.
-
-Sue only sighed impatiently and busied herself with the rum.
-
-French turned on his heel.
-
-“All’s well then,” he said finally. “I’ll be getting down West. I reckon
-I knows when I’m welcome or not, Mistress--Mistress Susan Gilbot,” and
-he strode to the door. “There’s other inns,” he said meaningly.
-
-Sue turned about in a moment.
-
-“Oh, wait for your rum, Master French,” she said.
-
-French did not move but stood straddle-legged in the doorway looking out
-into the yard.
-
-“Rum? Oh, that don’t matter; an inn’s got more uses than just to sell
-rum, mistress,” he said.
-
-“Indeed, to provide wenches for any man to insult, I reckon,” said Sue,
-tossing her head and dashing her hand across her eyes.
-
-French turned round quickly.
-
-“Why, who’s been insulting you, lass?” he said sharply.
-
-Sue laughed and turned her head away.
-
-“What’s that to you?” she said.
-
-French shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“I’m going,” he remarked, and stepped down the stone stair into the
-yard.
-
-Sue swallowed once and then ran after him.
-
-“Prithee wait while I hot your rum, sir,” she said.
-
-French turned willingly.
-
-“I’d do aught for you when you ask me like that, Sue,” he said gently,
-as he followed her back into the kitchen and sat down while she bustled
-around with a tankard, hardly knowing what she did.
-
-French watched her critically.
-
-“Aught been upsetting you, mistress?” he asked.
-
-“Nay.” Sue blushed again and stumbled over a form.
-
-The big man sighed and looked into the fire.
-
-“Been thinking of the Spaniard?” he asked half between his teeth.
-
-“No,” said Sue so vehemently that he jumped. “I have not, nor am like
-to.”
-
-French smiled on her.
-
-“Well, that’s all right, then, ain’t it?” he said cheerfully.
-
-“I don’t know what you’re talking about,” she said stiffly.
-
-French’s smile faded.
-
-“No, that’s right,” he said almost mournfully, “that’s right.”
-
-And there was silence for a few moments. He drank his rum, and after
-opening and shutting his mouth once or twice, rose to go.
-
-Sue watched him to the door and then in spite of herself the tears
-began to trickle down the side of her nose, and she sobbed once audibly.
-
-French was at her side in a moment.
-
-“What is the matter, lassie?” he said kindly, all his shyness vanishing
-as he whipped out a large yellow handkerchief and began to wipe her eyes
-hastily. “Are you ill?”
-
-Sue sobbed violently.
-
-“No,” she said angrily, and then snatching the handkerchief out of his
-hand buried her face in it.
-
-French put a big hand on each of her shoulders and shook her gently.
-
-“If I asked you for something would you give it to me?” he said.
-
-Sue still covered her face with her hands.
-
-“Oh! why don’t you ask me?” she sobbed.
-
-French lifted her up in his arms to kiss her, and she stopped crying and
-began to blush as he carried her over to the chimney corner where they
-sat, laughing and whispering, till Gilbot and Red, driven in by the
-rain, which had restarted with as much violence as ever, came for their
-tea.
-
-“I thought you watched that damned Spaniard a deal too much,
-sweetheart,” said French, as he and Sue walked to the end of the lane
-together, although the rain came down in torrents.
-
-“Oh! go along with you. Would I not rather have a man to love than a
-live knife?” said Sue, as she stood on tiptoe to kiss him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-Master Francis Myddleton leaned back in his chair and gently stuffed a
-wad of coarse Virginia into the slightly blackened bowl of his stubby
-clay pipe, and lifted his gouty foot on to one of the bronzed firedogs
-which ornamented his spacious hearth, and then after pulling once or
-twice at the short stem, he took out a bundle of letters from one of his
-capacious pockets and began to read them. They were from his son who
-held a fairly responsible place at the Court of His Gracious Majesty
-King Charles II, and from time to time a low wheezing chuckle broke from
-the old man’s lips and he coughed and spat, the tears of laughter
-starting to his eyes as he read.
-
-“The sly devil,” he muttered, laughing, “bribed her serving-wench with a
-kiss, did he?”
-
-“Oh! dearie, dearie me--Good King Jamie was more particular. What a
-thing it is to be young and to have a king to serve,” and he laughed
-again, this time quite loudly.
-
-A female voice called shrilly from the room above:
-
-“What’s ailing you, Francis?”
-
-Master Myddleton put the letters hastily into his pocket.
-
-“‘Tis naught, Eliza, my foot doth trouble me somewhat.”
-
-“Marry,” came the high, strident voice from the other room, “‘tis
-strange that a gouty foot should make you laugh like a moon-struck
-lunatic.”
-
-Master Myddleton made no reply, and after a moment’s pause the voice
-went on again:
-
-“‘Tis a wonder you can laugh when we have a man coming to take the very
-bread out of our mouths. You should be praying the Lord to succour your
-wife and daughter, not laughing yourself daft by the fireside.”
-
-The old man sighed and shook the ashes from his pipe and began slowly to
-refill it.
-
-“What’s o’clock?” he called out after a minute or so’s silence.
-
-“Half after eight; he should be here by now if the river ain’t high over
-the bridle path at Tenpenny Heath.”
-
-“Ay,” said Master Myddleton reflectively.
-
-There was the sound of a chair being pushed back and of heavy steps on
-the stairs, and Mistress Eliza Myddleton entered the dining room where
-her husband sat.
-
-She was a big fair woman who still preserved a remnant of the great
-beauty which had once been hers, but as she often told her neighbours
-when she was in a confidential mood, what with having a rapscallion
-stepson and a pretty daughter to look after, an excise man for a
-husband, and also being a staunch, God-fearing woman and a puritan at
-that, lines and wrinkles would come and they had--as indeed any one
-might note for himself.
-
-Now as she came into the room, her thin face pale with worry, Francis
-looked at her, and old villain that he was, he wondered why he had ever
-married her.
-
-“What are you going to say to him?” began the lady, planting herself
-before him, her bony arms akimbo.
-
-Master Francis shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Say?” he said. “Why, naught!”
-
-Mistress Eliza threw her hands above her head in a gesture of despair.
-
-“You would,” she said. “I don’t believe you realize the state we are in.
-I don’t believe you care if your wife and child are thrown into the
-streets. I don’t believe you could say a word to save yourself hanging.
-In God’s truth, I don’t believe you have your wits about you, Master
-Myddleton.”
-
-Francis sat still puffing at his pipe and his wife went on:
-
-“Had you only done your duty, and gone out after the Mersea smugglers, I
-might be a fine lady this day, or at least----”
-
-“A widow!” put in Francis, without removing the pipe from his mouth.
-
-“Oh!” Mistress Eliza gasped. “For shame, Master Myddleton, are you a
-coward?”
-
-“No more ’an others, but, Lord, Eliza, you wouldn’t have me trapesing
-about i’ the dusk hunting rum kegs?”
-
-Francis took the pipe from his mouth and looked at his wife, a quizzical
-expression in his little gray eyes.
-
-“‘Tis what you’re paid for,” said Mistress Myddleton, lifting her eyes
-to the low-raftered ceiling.
-
-Master Myddleton coughed explosively, and his face grew red with anger.
-
-“God’s body! Isn’t that just like a woman,” he shouted, dashing his hand
-so violently on the arm of his chair that his pipe flew into shivers,
-whereupon he swore an oath which made his wife shudder. “Just like a
-woman sweet as honey till aught goes wrong,” he continued, getting more
-and more angry at every word. “Did you ever talk of hunting smugglers
-before the Mayor of Colchester must needs appoint an assistant to me?
-Lord! woman, you drink smuggled tea every day of your life so as to be
-i’ the fashion--don’t talk to me!”
-
-“It’s very well for you to call this Thomas Playle an assistant, Master
-Myddleton,” observed his wife with asperity. “‘Tis you are to be his
-assistant, I’m thinking. That will be a nice thing for the neighbours to
-hear--now if only our Matilda and he could----”
-
-Francis Myddleton fairly roared with fury.
-
-“Peace with ye, designing woman,” he shouted. “Will I have my only
-daughter disposed of before my eyes? Unfeeling mother! Elizabeth, I am
-amazed at ye.”
-
-Mistress Myddleton gulped with indignation.
-
-“Francis, I am surprised at you. I disposing of your daughter! Oh, you
-scandalous man! Why ever was I married to such a lump of lying perfidy?”
-
-“God knows!” said Master Myddleton bitterly.
-
-Mistress Elizabeth’s answering outbreak was checked by the sound of
-horses’ hoofs in the cobbled yard outside.
-
-“There he is--God help us,” she had time to whisper, and then composing
-her features into an amiable smile went out to meet their unwelcome
-guest.
-
-Master Myddleton sat looking down at the fragments of his pipe: then he
-felt in his pocket and drew out a twist of tobacco which he smelt and
-rolled lovingly round his fingers.
-
-He sighed.
-
-“Drat women and work,” he said to the roaring fire which blazed,
-crackled, and spat as though it quite agreed with him.
-
-Master Thomas Playle sprang out of his saddle and threw his bridle rein
-to the grinning ostler who ran out to meet him, and then marched up to
-the front door and pulled the bell sharply.
-
-Mistress Myddleton was before him in an instant and so overwhelmed him
-with welcome and motherly concern for his wet, muddy condition that he
-had nothing to say for himself for a minute or so.
-
-The candlelight in the stone-flagged hall showed the newcomer to be a
-tall, rather handsome man, some seven and twenty years of age.
-
-Mistress Myddleton regarded him with approval and mentally summed up her
-daughter Matilda’s attractive qualities: the result seemed to please
-her, for she smiled and conducted him to the dining room.
-
-“My husband hath a troubled foot,” she was at some pains to explain,
-“and prays you to pardon him for not being on the steps to meet you.”
-
-Playle bowed coldly and followed his voluble hostess in silence.
-
-Master Myddleton looked up casually as they entered, and after returning
-the younger man’s bow without rising he bade his wife hasten the supper,
-and, after waiting until she was out of the room, motioned his guest to
-a comfortable chair on the opposite side of the hearth.
-
-“His worship, the Mayor and his----” began the young man sententiously
-as he sat down and stretched out his high mud-caked boots to the
-friendly fire.
-
-Master Myddleton waved his hand.
-
-“After we have eaten, I pray you. The morning will do,” he said. “Until
-then I would like to speak of this heinous crime of smuggling as carried
-on in this town and on the Island over the Fleet.”
-
-Playle felt disquieted. Here he was in this old gentleman’s house,
-drying himself at his fire and making himself generally comfortable. How
-could he boldly announce that these affairs would be his care in future,
-and that Master Myddleton need trouble himself no further? He decided to
-put it off till supper was over. After all, he considered the old man
-must know something of use to him in his future work.
-
-Master Playle was a very conscientious young man and one who had
-ambitions. He had fought for this appointment and meant to show his
-ability. He had served for a time in one of His Majesty’s own regiments
-and still held a commission.
-
-Master Myddleton began to speak.
-
-“We have a very difficult task before us, Master Playle,” he began in
-the deep pompous voice which he used on all official occasions. “I think
-I can truthfully say that on no other part of the coast is King Charles’
-law--God bless him--more persistently and I might almost say
-courageously violated.”
-
-He paused, and his little gray eyes sought a flicker of surprise on the
-young man’s face, but they were disappointed. Playle’s easy smile still
-played round his thin lips as he listened with polite attention.
-
-Master Myddleton began again.
-
-“With such violent, all-daring, cut-throat gang against me, I
-have--er--yes, to be plain with you, Master Playle--I have--er--felt it
-unwise--not to say foolhardy--to take more than preliminary measures
-against these unruly vagabonds until I received assistance from
-headquarters.”
-
-Playle’s smile deepened and Francis, looking up suddenly, saw it.
-Instantly his manner changed.
-
-“Ah, I see you know something of their customs, Master Playle,” he said,
-laughing wheezily.
-
-Playle looked up a little disconcerted, but he laughed with the old man
-and nodded his head.
-
-“I can see I can be quite plain with you,” went on Francis, his eyes
-scanning the other’s face.
-
-Playle was a simple, straightforward soldier, and he felt rather at a
-disadvantage with this quick-witted old villain with the gouty foot.
-However, he deemed it prudent to make some remark.
-
-“Oh, yes, of a certainty, of a certainty!” he said as intelligently as
-possible. “I am determined to abolish this illegal trading.”
-
-Master Myddleton sighed; he began to see a little more clearly how the
-land lay.
-
-“Very right, an excellent spirit in youth,” he said heartily. “Go in and
-conquer--sweep all before you. That’s how I like to hear young people
-talk. It is for the old with our gouty feet and long experience to sit
-at home and think out campaigns, and for you, the young and healthful in
-body, to carry them out gloriously.”
-
-He slapped his knee in applause at his own words, and then, as the young
-man said nothing, but sat still smiling into the fire, he continued, his
-voice resuming the pompous note.
-
-“But believe me, you have a difficult task, as I said before--a
-difficult task indeed. Now let me advise you first to attack the
-smuggling here on the mainland. Had you half a troop of infantry it
-would be madness to attempt to quieten Mersea Island.”
-
-Playle sat up and became interested.
-
-“The Island,” he said. “Yes, I’ve heard of the smuggling there; the
-block-house there was well-guarded in the war, I know.”
-
-Master Myddleton waved him silent, and continued to talk. “There are two
-principal smuggling vessels,” he said casually. “The first, _The Dark
-Blood_, belongs to a man called de Witt, and then the _Coldlight_, which
-belongs to a mysterious Spaniard.”
-
-Young Playle gasped. That the old man should know all this and yet take
-no measures to stop it amazed him, and his youthful imagination began to
-play round his old ambitions until he saw himself lord of the customs
-and His Majesty’s right-hand man.
-
-“Why not stop all vessels that enter the river?” he said.
-
-“I had thought of it--I had thought of it,” said Myddleton, wagging his
-head sagely.
-
-“Well, I’m going to do it,” replied Playle quickly.
-
-Old Francis laughed deprecatingly and was about to answer him when
-Mistress Eliza, her daughter, a tall girl fair like her mother and
-buxomly beautiful, with their little maid, Betsey, entered with the
-supper.
-
-During the meal, Mistress Eliza talked almost incessantly, and her
-husband filled up the few pauses in her streams of conversation with
-lurid stories of the smugglers’ cruelty. Once after a more vivid one
-than usual, Mistress Matilda looked archly at the young soldier.
-
-“If only it could be stopped!” she said, while her mother made some
-remark about poor little Matty’s childishness.
-
-Thomas Playle looked up from the lump of boiled fish he was eating.
-
-“It shall be stopped, mistress,” he said. “Such flagrant crime is a
-disgrace to the glorious court of His Gracious Majesty.”
-
-While Francis felt the bundle of letters in his pocket and grinned
-wickedly to himself.
-
-“You have some men in your pay and arms for them, I suppose, Master
-Myddleton?” observed Playle a little later on in the evening.
-
-“About five,” said Francis, and then, noting the other’s surprise, he
-added: “But some twenty more trustworthy men can be called out at a
-moment’s notice, if you find it necessary.”
-
-Playle could hardly repress a smile of pleasure; life seemed suddenly to
-have opened up to him. Twenty-five men at his orders, a gang of
-ferocious smugglers to attack, and a pretty girl to stand by and admire
-at the proper time. His smile broadened.
-
-His ambitions flew away with him and he sat staring at his plate, his
-brown eyes twinkling with pleasure, until Mistress Myddleton had to
-touch him on the shoulder and give him a candle, before he realized that
-Betsey, the little maid, waited to show him his room.
-
-Once in their room Mistress Eliza and her husband argued over the
-situation until both were exhausted.
-
-“He’s a handsome man, anyway,” said the lady at last, as she brushed her
-little wisp of gray-yellow hair before the oval mirror. “I wonder if
-Matilda----?”
-
-Francis, who was already tucked in his side of the huge four-poster bed,
-growled through the curtains, and Mistress Eliza bit her lip.
-
-“He’ll make a difference to the price of tea hereabouts, I’ll warrant,”
-she said, after a minute’s silence, as she blew out the candles and
-opened the casement.
-
-Francis grunted.
-
-“Methinks he’ll be a deal of nuisance to the trade,” he said bitterly.
-“No more cheap tabac--God help us.”
-
-Mistress Eliza echoed his sigh, and they settled themselves to sleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-
-“There, look, there now, will that be the _Coldlight_--_Anny_, I mean?”
-
-Anny paused in her walk and stared out across the bay. Hal followed the
-direction of her hand and then shook his head.
-
-“Nay,” he said, “‘tis too small.”
-
-Anny sighed and moved on, but the boy still stared out at the
-white-sailed boat on the horizon.
-
-“Last time I saw a craft like that,” he began reflectively, “was when
-the Preventative folk chased Fen de Witt halfway up the Pyfleet and then
-got stuck.”
-
-Anny stopped quickly.
-
-“Lord! It won’t be them, will it?” she said, a note of fear creeping
-into her voice.
-
-Hal shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Like as not,” he said carelessly.
-
-The girl stared, fascinated, at the white speck in the distance.
-
-“And the captain coming back this very day!” she said.
-
-Hal reddened at her words, and wheeled round fiercely, but she was not
-looking at him and he turned away again.
-
-“Hal, what if the Preventative folk got any one?” she asked.
-
-“They’d die, that’s all,” he replied laconically.
-
-The girl looked round at the early summer landscape and shuddered.
-
-“Look again, are you sure about the boat?” she commanded anxiously.
-
-Hal threw a casual glance over his shoulder.
-
-“Sure? Sure of what?” he asked gruffly.
-
-“That it’s the Preventative folk!” Anny shook his sleeve as she spoke.
-
-Hal wrenched his arm out of her grasp, and replied irritably:
-
-“No, of course I’m not sure; don’t be stupid, girl; I only said ’twas
-like one.”
-
-Anny looked at him in surprise.
-
-“What’s the matter?” she laughed; they had come to a part where the wall
-melts into the high-lying fields and the path is very wide, and Hal
-stepped back a pace or two and turned a red and angry face toward the
-girl.
-
-“Look here, Anny,” he said, his voice shaking with anger. “I’m tired of
-this hankering and whining after that dirty little Spaniard. You know
-we’re going to be married as soon as I can get some money; then I’ll be
-able to give you things--better things than him--aren’t you going to
-wait for me? See here, I won’t have this carrying on with the
-foreigner.”
-
-Anny’s blood was up and she turned to her lover as fierce as a
-tiger-cat.
-
-“Indeed, and will you not, Master Hal Grame?” she said bitingly. “I’ll
-have you know that you have no authority over me you--you tapster!”
-
-Hal blinked; he had never seen Anny like this before and he stood
-staring at her in amazement, his mouth half open.
-
-“I have not hankered after the Spaniard, as you call it.”
-
-Anny’s eyes were bright with tears at his injustice, but she spoke
-firmly, and with great intensity.
-
-“And as for you being tired, master Lord of the Island, so is Anny
-Farran, your servant--very, very tired of this fooling. Lord! you
-child--is it me that hankers,” the word seemed to have stuck in her
-mind, for she repeated it, “hankers for the Captain? Is it me? Oh, Hal
-Grame--I--I hate you.”
-
-Hal stepped back another pace or two and looked round him vaguely. This
-was a new departure of Anny’s. He had never seen her so indignant, and
-he thrust his hands in his pockets and turned on his heel.
-
-“I hope that is the Preventative folk then,” he remarked, jerking his
-thumb over his shoulder, “then they’ll catch the little dog.”
-
-Anny reddened.
-
-“Hal Grame, you’re a jealous coward,” she said clearly, and then her
-tears began to fall and she sat down on the grass, looking out over the
-cloud-shadowed water.
-
-Hal did not speak but stood idly kicking the dust with his foot.
-
-“You’re not saying that you don’t love me?” he said confidently.
-
-Anny bit her lip.
-
-“I’ve told you I hate you,” she said clearly; she was still very angry
-for the boy’s mistrust had hurt her.
-
-He turned round slowly.
-
-“Don’t be silly, Anny,” he said not unkindly.
-
-Anny furtively wiped her eyes; his confident attitude annoyed her, and
-she spoke clearly.
-
-“Go away, Hal Grame; I won’t ever marry you.”
-
-Hal gasped.
-
-“Anny, you’re bewitched,” he exclaimed. He couldn’t have chosen a more
-unfortunate remark, for Anny was more irritated than ever.
-
-“Nay, not now, but I was, ever to think at all on the likes of you,” she
-snapped. “Oh, go away.”
-
-Hal wavered; his little sweetheart sat on the grass, her face turned
-away from him, but he felt that she was crying, so came a little nearer.
-
-“Give me a kiss,” he said, laughing. “You’re a smart little wench,” and
-kneeling down behind her he bent to kiss her cheek.
-
-Before he realized what had happened he felt a smart blow across the
-mouth, and Anny sprang to her feet and walked off quickly.
-
-Hal sat back on his heels and passed his hand across his lips.
-
-“You little vixen,” he gasped.
-
-Anny laughed, a bitter, angry little laugh, and went on.
-
-Hal looked after her anxiously for a moment or two, and then as she did
-not turn back he scrambled to his feet and followed her.
-
-“Anny, you’re not angry,” he said, as soon as he was near enough to
-speak softly. The words came shamefacedly from his mouth and he slurred
-them one into another.
-
-Anny gulped; she was very angry, and Hal’s attitude annoyed her.
-
-“Indeed I am,” she said, “and turning a slobbering calf won’t make me
-any better. Oh! go home, Hal Grame.”
-
-Hal was amazed.
-
-“Anny!” he ejaculated.
-
-Anny repressed a howl of disappointment and contented herself with
-saying wearily:
-
-“Oh, go home--go home!”
-
-The boy looked at her for a moment or two.
-
-“Anny,” he said at last, “are you trying to leave me for the Spaniard?”
-
-This was more than she could stand, and turning to him she broke out
-into a stream of angry, incoherent abuse and denial.
-
-“Why are you for ever plaguing me about the Spaniard? Why does everyone
-talk of him? I’m sick of hearing his name--if you’re jealous of him go
-to him, not to me.”
-
-Hal shrugged his shoulders and said with irritating calmness:
-
-“Then there is that for me to go to him about, eh?”
-
-Anny raised her little clenched fists above her head and cried aloud:
-
-“You make me mad, Hal Grame. Of course there isn’t,” and then, as she
-saw that he didn’t believe her, she went on, “Of course not, of course!
-Oh, Hal! if you were a man you’d do other things than worry a poor lass
-dead with your foolishness.”
-
-Hal flushed.
-
-“Ah, that’s like a wench!” he said. “What if I haven’t a golden jacobus
-to my name! I shouldn’t think you’d throw that at me if you loved me.”
-
-Anny did not speak and he went on, “If I were a man--yes, that’s it, if
-I were a dirty, sneaking, knife-throwing Spaniard, with a fleet of
-rat-ridden cockle-boats and a crew of mangy dogs behind me, you’d be
-content--then I could do other things--bring you gauds and laced
-petticoats. Faugh! I’m glad I’ve seen you thus; I wouldn’t wed a
-cormorant and a shrew.”
-
-His anger had carried him away with it, for like most Norsemen he had a
-strain of bitterness under his usually sunny, peaceful disposition.
-
-Anny winced at his words.
-
-“It’s not that--you know it’s not that, Hal,” she said piteously. “But
-why worry me? If you’re jealous of him, fight him.”
-
-Hal looked at her in astonishment; he was no coward, but neither was he
-a hot-head, and he knew something of Dick’s reputation as a swordsman
-and a knife-fighter.
-
-Anny shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“Fight him,” she repeated mechanically.
-
-A sneer played round the boy’s mouth when he next spoke, and his eyes
-had grown cold.
-
-“Marry, Anny Farran, I did not think you capable of it,” he said. “You
-would have me die on the Spaniard’s knife and so rid of for ever.”
-
-Anny began to cry hopelessly. She felt there was no use in saying
-anything to him while he was in this mood, but she was very fond of him
-and he hurt her much more than he knew.
-
-Hal turned on his heel, and, as he strode off, began to realize how much
-he loved the wayward beauty. A great wave of self-pity swept over him.
-He was very young, barely nineteen, and once or twice he bit his lip
-convulsively, as he imagined the future loneliness, the constraint at
-the Ship, old Gilbot’s sallies, and then, as he stayed to look out over
-the glancing, shimmering water, he noticed that the little white-sailed
-ship was still hovering about the mouth of the Mersea River, and he
-laughed wildly.
-
-“May you sink the Spanish weasel,” he exclaimed aloud, and then went on,
-and every step he took he became more miserable and angry with himself
-and the girl.
-
-“Oh! I’ll go and see Joe,” he thought, as he turned into the lane. “It’s
-a fine thing to have a mate, so it is, when your lass leaves you for a
-yellow heathen.” And he turned down toward Pullen’s cottage.
-
-Anny sat on the bank where he had left her. She was very sorry for
-herself, too, and she looked round her through tearful eyes.
-
-No one was in sight. Behind her the bright sun lit up the countryside
-with beautiful green and yellow light, while in front, the sea, clear
-and smooth as glass, sparkled and glittered peacefully. She got up
-slowly, and started back for the Ship, and for the first time a sense of
-insecurity came upon her, and she realized rather fearfully that she was
-very much alone. Hitherto, she had always relied on Hal to take care of
-her, but now he was angry, very angry, she could see that; perhaps he
-would never forgive her. She shivered involuntarily. Old Ben was her
-only relative, and the thought of him and Pet Salt frightened her. Sue
-and Gilbot were very kind, but would they trouble themselves to protect
-a little serving-wench from a wealthy customer?
-
-All these questions ran through her head, and the image of the dark,
-wanton-eyed, debonair little captain rose up in her mind like a spectre.
-She knew now that she did not like him, and she began to be afraid. She
-remembered the times he had tried to kiss her; and how each time at the
-thought of Hal she had repulsed him successfully. Now Hal would be
-indifferent. A sob stuck in her throat, and she swallowed painfully.
-
-Then an idea struck her. There was always Nan Swayle--poor, disappointed
-Mother Swayle had always a soft spot in her hard-crusted heart for
-little Anny Farran, her old lover’s grandchild. She would go to
-Nan--but then the picture of the lonely old woman living with her cats
-in a tumble-down shed on one of the many small dyke-surrounded islands
-in the marshes presented itself to her, and she began to cry afresh as
-she walked wearily up to the Ship.
-
-Meanwhile, out in the river’s mouth, alone between sea and sky, the
-little white-sailed craft patrolled steadily to and fro, as Master
-Thomas Playle, a telescope to his eye, swept the horizon anxiously and
-impatiently.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-The sun was just about to set over the Island in a blaze of glorious
-colour when the _Anny_, sailing peacefully under half canvas, came in
-sight of Bradwell Point.
-
-Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot were below deck in a little bunk-hole which
-they had fitted up as a sort of wash-house. It was one of Black’erchief
-Dick’s fads to have his linen always spotless and marvellously
-laundered, and, as this was a luxury hardly dreamed of on the Island,
-during his visits to England the valiant Captain had to have his washing
-done aboard. The job of laundryman had almost naturally fallen to
-Habakkuk, who had accepted the office joyfully, and he now stood, clad
-in nothing but his breeches, in front of an emptied Canary tub immersed
-up to the elbows in soapy water.
-
-Blueneck leaned against the doorway watching him.
-
-“Santa Maria! what an occupation,” he remarked contemptuously.
-
-Habakkuk sniffed.
-
-“It’s very nice when you’re used to it,” he said without looking up from
-the garment he was pounding and squeezing with a kind of vicious
-delight.
-
-Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Maybe,” he said, “anyway, I’m going on deck; this here rat-hole’s too
-stinking for me.”
-
-Habakkuk sniffed again but took no other notice of his friend, who
-presently lumbered off up the hatchway.
-
-The water was very green and the waves rolled lazily after one another
-as though it were hot even for them, while the _Anny_ dipped and rolled
-gently among them at about one third her usual speed.
-
-They were early, and, careless though he was, Dick did not like landing
-until it was at least dusk.
-
-Blueneck strode across the deck and stood staring toward the Island, now
-just a streak on the flaming horizon.
-
-Suddenly he started, and, speaking sharply, ordered one of the sailors
-who was sprawling on the deck to bring him a telescope.
-
-The man went off at once and returned in a second, bringing a long brass
-spy-glass with him.
-
-As the mate of the _Anny_ clapped it to his eye an exclamation of
-surprise escaped him.
-
-“Mother of Heaven, what will that be?” he murmured, and putting the
-glass under his arm went down the deck in search of the Captain.
-
-As usual the little Spaniard was standing against the main mast, his
-arms folded across his chest, and his heavy-lidded eyes half closed.
-
-Blueneck approached him deferentially and reported--“Ship ahead,
-Capt’n.”
-
-The deeply sunken eyes opened at once and Dick put out one delicately
-scented hand for the glass.
-
-“She’s sighted us, dogs,” he remarked calmly a second or so later.
-
-Blueneck gasped.
-
-“I’ll go and head her round, Capt’n,” he said at once.
-
-Dick lowered the telescope and looked over it in quiet surprise.
-
-“That you will not, son of a snipe,” he said, his soft voice playing
-musically with the words.
-
-Blueneck began to expostulate.
-
-“The Preventative folk?” he said fearfully.
-
-Dick swore.
-
-“And since when have you been feared of the Preventative folk, dog?” he
-asked, and his fingers played round the hilt of his knife.
-
-Blueneck flushed.
-
-“I’m not feared,” he said stoutly, “but ’tis madness to go on.”
-
-Dick laughed happily, putting the glass up again. Suddenly his whole
-manner changed. His bright black eyes lost their sleepy indifference and
-became alight with interest and excitement, his slender white hand
-ceased to play with his knife, and his voice, no longer caressing,
-adopted a note of command as he wheeled round and strode off down the
-deck shouting orders here and there.
-
-“Put on full canvas and keep her straight,” Blueneck heard him say, and
-he groaned inwardly.
-
-Under the extra load of canvas the _Anny_ plunged and righted herself,
-speeding through the water at her full speed.
-
-The other brig was well in sight now, and she hailed the smugglers
-several times.
-
-Dick took the wheel himself and shouted an order for the cannon to be
-looked to.
-
-The other brig had turned her head straight for the _Anny_ as soon as
-she saw that her salute was ignored, and now a ball from one of her
-several brass cannon fell some two yards short of the smuggler’s bows.
-
-“Fire!” shouted Dick, and Noah Goody, the _Anny’s_ old gunner, lit the
-match; the shot cleared the pursuing brig and Noah loaded again.
-
-Nearer and nearer came the brig until Blueneck could read the name on
-her bows, the _Royal Charles_.
-
-Faster and faster went the _Anny_, but the _Charles_ gained on her every
-second. They were well inside the bay by this time, but escape seemed
-impossible, for the tide was barely past the turn and between them and
-the Island lay a great gray field of soft slushing mud. Any moment they
-might strike a bank of it and be compelled to stay there, an easy prey
-to the Preventative men.
-
-Dick looked behind; the _Charles_ was very near. For a moment he
-hesitated. He knew the Western creeks like the back of his hand, but in
-order to reach that side of the Island he would have to cross in front
-of the enemy, and although he was a daring little man Black’erchief
-Dick was no fool. The only course left open to him, then, was to make
-for the East. He knew there were two creeks that were deep enough to
-take the brig, but they were no more than thirty feet in their widest
-part and that was dangerous going. Besides, he was not nearly so
-familiar with these as with those on the Western side.
-
-At this moment a ball from the _Charles_ dropped through the little
-deck-house and then rolled off the deck harmlessly.
-
-Dick made up his mind.
-
-“Send Habakkuk Coot hither,” he shouted, for he remembered that the man
-had spent his boyhood in the East of the Island.
-
-Everyone had forgotten Habakkuk in the excitement of the moment and now
-he was nowhere to be found.
-
-Dick cursed him for a skulking rat and in other terms.
-
-Blueneck went down the hatchway to look for him; the smell of steaming
-soap and water still came from the dirty little hole where he had left
-him.
-
-Blueneck looked in; Habakkuk was there, his arms still in the soapy
-water. He was singing in a high nasal voice and sniffing at frequent
-intervals.
-
-He listened to Blueneck’s incoherent account of the chase in profound
-astonishment, but nevertheless went steadily on with his washing, and
-refused to leave it until Blueneck in desperation took him by the scruff
-of the neck and the seat of the breeches and carried him before the
-Captain, his arms still wet and soapy, and a dripping shirt clutched in
-his hand.
-
-But the situation was too serious for Dick, or, indeed, any one else, to
-notice any little irregularities of this sort.
-
-The _Royal Charles_ was within a musket shot of the _Anny’s_ bows and
-every second the mud flat in front grew nearer.
-
-Habakkuk, however, had a very good memory, and under his guidance the
-_Anny_ shot down a wide, river-like stream of water, the mud forming
-banks on either side.
-
-Dick looked at it in surprise.
-
-“I did not know that there were any creeks as wide as this on the East,”
-he said.
-
-“Ah,” said Habakkuk wisely, “this ain’t no more ’an twenty foot
-wide--it’s very deceiving. Look over the side, Captain, there’s about
-six inches of water on the starboard--an’--they don’t know that, do
-they?” he chuckled, jerking his thumb over his shoulder to where the
-_Royal Charles_ had just turned after them. “It’s only about twenty wide
-a bit farther along,” he announced cheerfully a little later. “I hopes I
-ain’t forgot where.”
-
-Dick stood watching the _Charles_ as she followed them down the
-treacherous creek. She must have a pilot who knows the place, he
-thought, for she still gained on them.
-
-At last, when they were within five hundred yards of the shore, Habakkuk
-gave a short exclamation.
-
-“We’re stuck,” he cried.
-
-“What?” Dick sprang round on his heel.
-
-Habakkuk grinned foolishly.
-
-“Little tiny channel’s silted up, I reckon,” he said. “We’re aground.”
-
-Dick struck him off his feet with an oath.
-
-“Out with your knives,” he shouted.
-
-It was beginning to get dusk and the _Charles_ bore down upon the _Anny_
-like a great gray tower; nearer she came and nearer until they could
-plainly hear the voices of the men on her deck.
-
-And then it happened. In his excitement the man at her tiller let it
-swerve a little, a very little, but enough; there was a soft swishing
-sound, and the _Charles’s_ nose cut deep into the soft cheesy mud--she
-also was aground.
-
-Exciseman Thomas Playle swore with disappointment as he ran forward and
-saw the very little distance between the two brigs, but he loosened the
-broad-bladed cutlass at his hip and, shouting to his men to follow,
-swung himself into one of the boats.
-
-“Maria! they’re trying to board us,” shouted Blueneck, whipping out his
-knife and running to the side.
-
-Instantly there was confusion, the greater portion of the crew running
-after their mate to the still floating side of the brig.
-
-This sudden change of weight saved the situation. With a lurch, a roll,
-and a quiver, the _Anny_ jerked off the mud, Habakkuk seized the tiller
-just in time, and the brig slid on down the creek.
-
-A yell of disappointment rang out from the first boatload of
-Preventative men and echoed over the fast-darkening mud-flats. The tide
-was coming in like a mill-stream, and any moment the _Charles_ might
-also swing clear, but Playle would not wait; springing into a second
-boat, he urged his men to row the faster in a vain attempt to catch the
-_Anny_.
-
-Old Noah Goody did his best with the cannon, but the progress of the
-little rowboats was so irregular that he could never get the exact
-range.
-
-The _Anny_ shot away from the boats at first, but as she came nearer
-into the shore the channel grew narrower and narrower and she was forced
-to take in most of her canvas.
-
-Dick stood on the bows looking at the fast-gaining boats, and thinking.
-If on reaching the shore he abandoned the brig and he and his men ran to
-hide on the Island, the Preventative men would scuttle the _Anny_ and
-confiscate her cargo, which was an extra valuable one of Jamaica rum and
-fine Brussels lace. His only alternative was to fight.
-
-By this time the brig was within twenty yards of the beach, and in
-another moment her keel grated on the muddy shingle.
-
-The excise men were not far behind.
-
-Dick seemed suddenly to come to life; leaping out into the centre deck,
-he shouted:
-
-“To the shore, lads, and fight the liverish dogs on land!” Then, agile
-as a monkey, he slid down the hawser and pulled in a boat--the crew
-followed, some wading through the shallow water and others in the
-boats.
-
-Once on shore they ranged themselves in a double line along the beach,
-waiting, with drawn knives, for the boats. It had grown almost dark by
-now, and one by one the stars had come out in the fast-deepening sky,
-but there was a big moon and the line of rugged, rum-stamped faces on
-the shore showed clearly in the yellow light. Their brutal expressions
-and the flicker of steel about their belts might have frightened many a
-man older and more tried than Master Playle, but the little boats came
-on undaunted, and just as the first keel touched the shingle a musket
-shot rang out and the man next to Blueneck dropped silently.
-
-Dick swore in Spanish and, raising his pistol--the one he had taken from
-Mat Turnby--fired at the man nearest him, a fat elderly servant of
-Master Francis Myddleton’s. The man was almost out of range, but the
-shot wounded him, for he screamed and dropped into the water. For half a
-second there was no sound, and then with a yell the crew of the
-_Charles_ charged over the soft, slithering mud at the solid line of
-grim, taut figures who awaited them.
-
-“Pick out your men!” Dick rapped out the order, and as he spoke the
-handle of his knife slipped into the hollow of his soft white palm as if
-it had suddenly grown there, and the slender hand and delicate weapon
-quivered as one living thing.
-
-There were fully ten more excise men than smugglers and they came on
-with such a rush that the crew of the _Anny_ was forced to give way a
-little, but they rallied immediately, and although the Preventative folk
-had the advantage of numbers Dick’s people had the priceless knowledge
-of the ground they were fighting on. The wiry grass which covered the
-unlevel saltings that lay the other side of the narrow beach was very
-slippery, and in the pale light the ridges and dykes were almost
-invisible.
-
-Dick soon realized that if the fight was to be fought to a finish the
-sooner they got to level ground the better, as his own people found the
-light deceptive. So he worked his way round to Blueneck, slashing right
-and left as he went.
-
-Blueneck was apparently enjoying himself for, although the moonlight
-showed a gash across his temples about six inches long, from which the
-blood poured freely, it also showed a smile on his ragged mouth and a
-dripping cutlass in his sinewy hand.
-
-Dick spoke to him quickly, just a few muttered words, and almost
-immediately the smugglers began to give way. Back, back, they went until
-they were flying across the saltings over the meadows and straight for
-the Ship, with the Preventative men in full pursuit.
-
-Once the mocking voice of Playle called out to the _Anny’s_ crew to
-surrender, and the flying smugglers paused and half-turned with many
-oaths, but Dick’s voice dragged them on again with, “On, dogs, on, for
-your damned lives,” and the chase continued.
-
-Suddenly, as they reached the Ship yard, Dick vanished: Blueneck,
-looking round for further orders, could not see him, and his heart sank.
-Was it possible that a knife-thrust from behind had killed the Captain?
-He dismissed that idea almost as soon as it came to him. The Spaniard
-was too wary to be the victim of such a mishap. The only other
-alternative was that he had deserted his crew.
-
-Blueneck feared Dick, but he had no love for him, and this last seemed
-to be the only possible explanation. He spat on the ground
-contemptuously.
-
-But by this time the Preventative folk were well upon them and Blueneck
-realized that it was a case of each man for himself, so calling a halt
-he turned on the oncoming force.
-
-The smugglers were only too glad to obey, and with a redoubled force
-they turned on their enemy and hewed their way into them.
-
-The Preventative men were not sorry to fight, however, and young Playle
-threw himself into the thick of the scrap with something very like
-pleasure.
-
-The smugglers fought like wild beasts, preferring to close in and kill,
-but the others liked to thrust and parry, pricking and wounding, giving
-way here and pressing there, and as they had longer weapons than the
-smugglers they found their method an excellent one.
-
-Back went the smugglers down the Ship yard, Blueneck slashing wildly,
-Noah Goody defending himself only, and little Habakkuk, his bare chest
-and shoulders a perfect network of cuts, darting here and there like a
-robin.
-
-Onward pressed young Playle until he had the smugglers with their backs
-against the kitchen door, which opened suddenly from the inside.
-
-Blueneck put himself on the step in the way of the excise men and
-shouted to his mates to get into the kitchen and form a guard. When the
-last man was in he retired also, but the excise men pressed on; first
-one of their men fell, on attempting to enter the kitchen, then a
-second, and a third, but before the fourth was struck down in response
-to a great crush behind him he broke through the smugglers’ guard and
-the Preventative men swarmed in.
-
-Hal Grame suddenly darted forward out of the darkness. He carried an old
-sword which had hung over the kitchen shelf for years, and he now laid
-about him with great strokes, but a certain recklessness distinguished
-his fighting, and his red shirt was soon dyed a still deeper shade.
-
-In spite of his help, however, the excise men drove on.
-
-“God! if the Captain was only here!” groaned Blueneck aloud. The man
-next him caught his words and looked round, so did his neighbour, and in
-a moment all that was left of the _Anny’s_ crew realized that their
-captain had deserted them, and a certain hopelessness crept into the
-fighting from that time on, and in a minute or two the smugglers
-retreated in a body, knocking over the barrels and benches as they
-went. They scuttled into the inner room and then slammed the heavy oak
-door behind them.
-
-Habakkuk alone was left behind and he, finding the door shut upon him,
-turned to fly through the other door into the yard, but a Preventative
-man’s sword ran him through just as he reached the threshold, and with
-one last sniff the brave little laundryman fell prone in a pool of his
-own blood.
-
-The kitchen was very dark, there being no fire, as it was summer-time,
-and the only light was the moonlight which showed in through the windows
-and fell on the floor in two bright patches.
-
-So when the door slammed on them, Thomas Playle took the opportunity of
-counting his forces. He found to his deep disappointment that he had
-lost a great many more men than he had dreamed, and those around him in
-the kitchen numbered at the most no more than six or seven.
-
-“We must get them yet,” he said, speaking to his few remaining followers
-in a low tone. “An you two stay here and I and Jacques go round to the
-other door we----” Suddenly he caught his breath, his voice trailed away
-into silence, and he started back, his drawn sword put up to shield his
-body.
-
-The man to whom he had been principally speaking had quietly dropped
-without a cry, and as he touched the ground his head and shoulders
-rolled into the patch of moonlight, and his horrified comrades saw a
-thin spurt of blood shooting out from a clean small wound in his neck
-just over the collar-bone.
-
-Before they could collect their wits after this shock there was a faint
-patter of feet behind them and another man staggered, tried to speak,
-reeled, and fell.
-
-Instantly there was confusion; men slashed about in the darkness
-striking anything and any one, shouting, and screaming. A terrible fear
-of something unknown and horrible possessed them and each man made for
-the yard, but one by one as they approached the doorway the unseen
-terror caught them and they fell. At last there were but three left,
-young Playle himself, his mate, Jacques, and the _Charles’s_ gunner, a
-tall, powerful man called Rilp.
-
-These three stood back to back in the centre of the kitchen, making a
-triangle, their swords drawn before them, so that it was practically
-impossible for anything to harm them from behind.
-
-They stood there for some moments holding their breath; everything was
-silent. Then there was a light patter of feet again and a small bent
-shape darted through the patch of moonlight. It seemed to Playle’s
-terrified eyes to be an evil spirit not three feet high from the ground
-and to have its head almost level with its waist while its back was bent
-into a monstrous hump. Instinctively he put up his sword to shield his
-head and at that moment something brushed passed him; he slashed at it
-and fancied that he had wounded it, but the next moment he felt Jacques
-grunt and stumble. He was just going to spring away when he felt the man
-right himself and once again a man’s back was firm against his own.
-
-Then there was silence again for a second.
-
-Suddenly Rilp staggered, shivered, and dropped.
-
-Playle immediately darted forward, when to his amazement and horror the
-man whom he thought was Jacques darted after him; something sprang on
-his shoulders from behind, a streak of silver light darted before his
-eyes and plunged down into his neck; he felt the blood well up in his
-throat, his breath failed him, a dark cloud passed over his eyes, and he
-died, crashing face downward into the little patch of moonlight.
-
-In the scullery Blueneck, his shoulders against the door, turned to his
-comrades and urged them to pull themselves together; put forward every
-excuse for Black’erchief Dick’s extraordinary behaviour and besought
-them to get ready to fight again.
-
-Inside the kitchen they could hear the Preventative men talking
-together, and by their low tones came to the conclusion that they were
-planning the next attack.
-
-Suddenly Blueneck started.
-
-“Marry! they’re fighting among themselves,” he whispered. “Hark!”
-
-From inside the kitchen came the sounds of clashing steel, and angry
-oaths and ejaculations, followed by screams and groans. Then there was
-silence for a while immediately followed by footsteps, mutterings, and
-one terrible yell.
-
-Then all was silent again.
-
-“Shall we go in?” whispered Hal.
-
-“Nay, ’tis a trap,” said another man, whose hand and cutlass were one
-red mass.
-
-“Nay, I’ll go,” said Hal stubbornly.
-
-“I shouldn’t, lad,” said Blueneck, staunching the bleeding wound on his
-forehead as best he could.
-
-Hal put his hand to a dark patch at his side and brought it away wet and
-sticky.
-
-“Oh, what does it matter?” he said; taking a candle from the table he
-opened the door, holding the light above his head. Then he gasped and
-threw the door wide.
-
-“Mother o’ God!” he exclaimed weakly. “Look!”
-
-Blueneck and the others crowded behind him and they, too, gasped and
-fell back in astonishment.
-
-In the centre of the room the flickering light showed a terrible bent
-little figure; it was a man, but the crouching attitude in which he
-stood suggested rather a beast of prey. He was literally surrounded with
-bodies, and he looked down at them with an almost ghoulish delight which
-was terrible to see. But only for a second; as soon as he became
-conscious of the little group in the doorway he straightened himself and
-stood smiling at them.
-
-He was clothed only in his breeches and immaculate white shirt; his
-black kerchief was half off, showing the black curls beneath, while his
-white hands were clean and undyed.
-
-Dick Delfazio smiled again and then began to clean his knife on a dainty
-lace-edged handkerchief.
-
-Then his crew entered, and he looked up casually as they filed in and
-turning to the least wounded man he pointed to a chair over the back of
-which his black silk coat was hung.
-
-“Prithee, friend, help me into my surcoat,” he said, his voice caressing
-and honey-like as ever. “For see,” he added, turning round, “I am much
-hampered.”
-
-The crew started.
-
-The sleeve of the white shirt was split from the shoulder to the elbow,
-displaying a terrible ragged wound which at one place had laid bare the
-bone, and from the bend in the elbow the warm blood trickled on to the
-floor.
-
-This was the last act of Thomas Playle’s hand and he had done his best.
-
-Dick slipped into his coat and then surveyed the crew.
-
-“Wash yourselves, friends,” he admonished, “the wenches will come down
-now and may be feared at the sight of blood.” He staggered a little and
-his face grew ashy pale, but he rallied himself and with some of his
-usual jauntiness said loudly, “Bring me some wine.” Already the black
-silk sleeve of his coat was sodden and sticky, and the arm inside it
-hung limply from its socket; once again he staggered, tried to recover
-himself and failed, and then, very faint from loss of blood,
-Black’erchief Dick rolled over on his side, unconscious.
-
-Blueneck picked him up like a child and stripping off the coat called
-loudly for Anny.
-
-“Surely the girl knows somewhat of physicking. The Captain may bleed to
-death,” he said sharply in answer to Hal’s suggestion that they didn’t
-want wenches about the place.
-
-Hal put his hand over his own wound and, shrugging his shoulders, a
-gesture which cost him a great deal of blood, went off to find Anny and
-beseech her to attend to his rival’s arm.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Late the same evening a tumbril borrowed from a neighbouring farmer
-carried a gruesome burden from the Ship door down to the beach, and
-along the road it stopped from time to time to collect additions to its
-load.
-
-A little later a party of men in three rowing-boats loaded a terrible
-cargo into a lonely ship which rode at anchor not far from the shore
-where a brig lay aground, and then that same lonely ship sailed off out
-of the bay, and later, after three boats had left her side, broke into
-flames.
-
-And later still widows and children in Brightlingsea wept to see charred
-spars and planks cast up on the beach outside their homes.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-“There, there, Master Dick, don’t fluster yourself so; ’twill only smart
-your arm the more.”
-
-Anny spoke timidly and shrank behind one of the high-backed seats in the
-old Ship’s kitchen as Black’erchief Dick, his eyes dark with anger,
-raved up and down the room. It was some three weeks after the affair
-with the Preventative folk and the Island had once more regained its
-usual serenity.
-
-“You are bewitched, girl; what are you to refuse the love of a man like
-me?” Dick said angrily, and then as she did not answer, he continued
-more softly, “Why not come with me, beautiful Ann of the Island? We will
-leave this God-forsaken mud heap and sail away to Spain, cross the great
-river to the beautiful country beyond, where all the grass is green and
-all the plants have bright flowers. What is there about this rum-sodden
-drinking hut that you will not leave it for Utopia?”
-
-“I never heard of Utopia and Mersea is good enough for me,” said Anny
-stolidly. “Besides, if you want to marry me, why not tell everybody and
-have a proper wedding by the parson from the West, but even then I
-wouldn’t marry you; I don’t love you, sir!”
-
-The Spaniard paused suddenly in his walk up and down and looked at her.
-
-“Never has a woman said so much to me before,” he said slowly, his voice
-soft and smooth as ever.
-
-Anny shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“‘Tis time then one should,” she laughed. “Rest your arm, sir, and leave
-worrying a poor girl that has work and enough to do, now that Mistress
-Sue be for ever out along the beach with Big French.” She turned away.
-
-The Spaniard was beside her in a second and his slim white fingers
-fastened round her wrist.
-
-“Oh, you silly little wench,” he said with a laugh in his voice, “do you
-think you can turn off Dick Delfazio easily like that? Mistress, I am of
-some account on the Island. Is a man who kills six Preventative folk
-single-handed to be stayed in his heart’s desire by a little
-serving-maid, think you?”
-
-“What would you do?” Anny, her big green eyes wide with apprehension,
-and her back against the wall, jerked out the question fearfully.
-
-Black’erchief Dick looked at her in admiration, and, swinging her toward
-him, he put his arm round her waist, and Hal, passing the window at that
-moment, suddenly changed his mind about entering the kitchen and marched
-off down the garden coughing and swearing to himself.
-
-Anny freed herself in a moment and stood with her arms akimbo.
-
-“An you were not wounded and a customer, I should smack you across the
-mouth,” she said, her eyes filling with tears.
-
-Dick laughed.
-
-“Come, we should not quarrel, sweetheart,” he said. “When you are aboard
-the _Anny_----”
-
-“I pray God I shall be dead before,” the girl interrupted angrily, her
-tears overflowing and rolling down her cheeks.
-
-Dick caught her hand again and looked at her fiercely.
-
-“I have played enough, lass,” he said. “You must come off secretly with
-me or----”
-
-Anny laughed.
-
-“Must?” she said. “Must, indeed! And whyfore? I tell you, sir, I hate
-you, and if you pursue me more I’ll have the landlord at you.”
-
-“The landlord!” Dick sneered.
-
-Anny was desperate.
-
-“Or Hal Grame,” she said.
-
-Dick threw back his head and laughed aloud.
-
-“A tapster! Oh, pretty, pretty little wench, you are very amusing!”
-
-The girl wrenched her hand away.
-
-“Master Black’erchief Dick,” she said slowly, her little face very white
-and grave, “will you understand please that I do not love you, I do not
-even like you, and I will never go anywhere with you of my own will?”
-
-The Spaniard stepped back a pace or two. He seemed to have realized at
-last that she was speaking the truth, for he looked at the earnest
-little face in front of him with a mixture of amazement and anger.
-
-“You do not like me?” he said, his voice losing all its music and
-becoming almost childish in its extreme surprise.
-
-Anny nodded.
-
-“No, I don’t like you. Will you please go away and leave me to my work,
-sir?”
-
-Dick’s anger rose up and boiled over in a moment.
-
-“I tell you, you shall come, you pretty little fool,” he swore. “Or----”
-he paused suddenly. “Is there some other man you love? Tell me, tell
-me!”
-
-Anny cowered before his angry, distorted face.
-
-“No, sir, of course not, no, sir!” she lied vehemently. “Let go my
-wrist, sir. Marry, how you hurt me!”
-
-“This great hulking French, now, have you set your heart on him? Speak
-out, girl!”
-
-“No, sir, of course not!” Anny’s amazement was too genuine to be
-mistaken.
-
-“Yet you will not marry me?” Dick spoke sharply.
-
-“No--no--no, sir! Go away!”
-
-Dick turned on his heel and went to the door.
-
-“By this knife,” he said, turning on the threshold, “you shall come with
-me. I wish it, and never yet have I been prevented from my desires.”
-
-“Lord! you’re mad!” Anny flung after him.
-
-“Ay, mad for you, mistress.”
-
-Dick’s voice had grown soft again and he laughed unpleasantly as he
-strolled off down the yard. Anny watched him go and then turned back to
-her work.
-
-“Now I wonder will I ever be married at all?” she said to herself, as
-she picked up a broom from the chimney-corner and began to sweep away
-the dirty sand which lay all over the floor.
-
-Blueneck was sitting on the sea-wall, thinking regretfully of Habakkuk
-Coot, when Black’erchief Dick strode up and without speaking dropped
-down beside him.
-
-Blueneck looked at his captain slily and without turning his head.
-
-Dick was smiling sardonically and his knife slid in and out the slim
-white fingers of his right hand.
-
-Blueneck considered it prudent to sit still and say nothing.
-
-Dick did not speak for some time, and Blueneck began to get uneasy.
-Finally he rose to his feet as nonchalantly as he was able and started
-to stroll off down the beach.
-
-Dick raised his eyes.
-
-“Sit where you are, dog!” he said sharply.
-
-Blueneck slid back to his place without a murmur.
-
-The silence continued. At last, however, Dick put the knife back in his
-belt and turned his sharp eyes on his mate.
-
-“The lass refuses me,” he said.
-
-Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“These country wenches be mighty particular about marrying their
-husbands and so forth,” he observed.
-
-Dick raised his eyebrows.
-
-“I have said I will wed her,” he said stiffly.
-
-Blueneck’s jaw dropped.
-
-“Wed her?” he ejaculated. “Why, Cap’n, you must----” He broke off
-lamely.
-
-Dick snapped out the question, “Must what?”
-
-Blueneck did not vouchsafe an answer, and they sat in silence for a
-minute or two.
-
-Dick began to speak, slowly and carefully, as though he was thinking out
-each word separately.
-
-“There is a thing on this earth, my friend, called love. And a very vile
-and evil thing it is. It descends upon a man unawares like a shower of
-rain, and soaks through to his very marrow. It takes away his energy,
-his pride in his work and person,” he looked down at the lace ruffles at
-his cuff and stroked them lovingly, and then added, “and I have reason
-to think that great men feel it more sharply than others.”
-
-Blueneck glanced quickly at the dapper little figure by his side, and
-shrugged his shoulders.
-
-The Captain was showing signs of strain, he thought.
-
-“Must the wench be willing?” he asked. “Why not carry her off?”
-
-Dick shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“I would rather she were willing,” he said.
-
-Blueneck looked at him, exasperated.
-
-“Well, if you can’t persuade her I don’t know who can,” he muttered, but
-Dick did not hear him. He was smiling, his eyes half shut.
-
-Blueneck spat.
-
-“Bewitched!” he commented silently to himself. Then an idea struck him
-and he turned to the Captain.
-
-“There’s Pet Salt,” he said. “She might do much.”
-
-“Pet Salt?” Dick turned to him quickly. “Who’s she?”
-
-Blueneck told the story of his night on Ben Farran’s boat with as much
-credit to himself as was possible.
-
-Dick listened in silence until he had finished; then he rose to his
-feet.
-
-“I will go to see this crone,” he said grandiloquently. “Lead me, dog!”
-
-Pet Salt sat on the deck of her boat mending a net. She was mumbling to
-herself, and her old knotted finger-joints cracked as she fumbled about
-with the rough twine she was using. Beneath the hatches she could hear
-old Ben swearing loudly as he hunted among the empty rum kegs for one
-that still contained a little of the precious stuff. To judge from his
-language he had been so far unsuccessful and the woman shifted uneasily
-as she sat thinking of the beating he would give her if he found
-nothing.
-
-It was then that she heard a voice calling her from the beach.
-
-“Pet Salt! Pet Salt!”
-
-Noisily she scrambled to her feet and hobbled over to the side of the
-hull, and looked down.
-
-Dick and his mate stood together staring up at her.
-
-“Good morning, mistress,” Dick began in his best manner.
-
-Pet stared at him open-mouthed, her yellow teeth looking like fangs. She
-had never seen such finery.
-
-Dick, although himself rather taken aback at Pet’s appearance, could not
-but feel flattered at her evident approval of his own.
-
-Pet’s bleared eyes now fell on Blueneck and a shade of recognition
-passed over her wrinkled, spirit-sodden face.
-
-“Oh! it’s you again, ronyon, hey?” she cried in her cracked crooning
-voice into which an eager note had crept. “You have no rum kegs slung
-about you, eh?”
-
-Blueneck waved his hand impatiently.
-
-“Throw down the ladder, that we may come up and talk with thee, hag,” he
-ordered peremptorily.
-
-Pet hobbled off to obey him without a word, and Dick turned to his mate
-in something like admiration.
-
-“You have been well schooled, friend,” he said approvingly. “Yours is an
-excellent way of dealing with crones.”
-
-“Have a care!” called Pet from above as she threw the rope ladder over
-the side. The end passed within an inch of Blueneck’s shoulders and he
-looked up angrily.
-
-Pet was leering at him from the deck.
-
-“Come up, ronyon,” she said coaxingly.
-
-Blueneck scaled the ladder in a minute and clambered on to the rolling
-deck beside her.
-
-Dick followed, more dignified but not a whit less agile.
-
-Once on deck he looked about him in disgust. The worm-eaten boards, the
-empty kegs and other lumber, and the general filthiness of the place
-disgusted the little Spaniard. His own brig was always kept neat and
-fastidiously clean.
-
-He shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“A very vile place in truth,” he observed, and then, turning to Pet, he
-raised his hat as gallantly as if she had been a duenna.
-
-“I would descend and talk with thee on the shore, if you please,
-mistress,” he said. “This ship distresses me.”
-
-He went again to the ladder, picking his way daintily across the dirty
-deck; slowly he climbed down again. Pet and Blueneck followed him
-without a word on to the sand again.
-
-“Prithee, mistress, be seated,” said Dick, indicating a bank of seaweed
-and seating himself on a breakwater some four feet away.
-
-Pet sat down heavily and looked from Dick to Blueneck in a half-witted,
-puzzled way, her big loose mouth sagging open, on one side showing the
-large yellow teeth, which so irritated Blueneck.
-
-Suddenly she stretched out a bony hand toward Black’erchief Dick and
-began in a droning whine:
-
-“May the Lord bless ye, fine gentleman; could ye spare a drop o’ rum for
-a poor woman to take to her man who is dying of cold? Old Pet Salt knows
-you, pretty sir. Old Pet don’t forget a generous face when she sees one.
-Pet remembers when she came to the Ship and you gave her a keg. Could
-you spare a little, fine gentleman?”
-
-Dick stared at her; he remembered her now, and instinctively drew a
-little farther away.
-
-“Hold thy peace, hag, and hark to me,” he said sharply, “and much rum
-may come of it--nay,” he continued as the old woman struggled to get to
-her feet and come toward him, “keep thy distance and let thy dull wit
-take in as much of this as it can. You have a granddaughter?”
-
-A cunning light crept into the old bleared eyes.
-
-“Ah!” she said, putting on a pathetic whine. “I have, God bless her pure
-heart and body. One my man loves dearly! What would you have with her,
-fine gentleman?”
-
-Dick waved his hand.
-
-“Woman,” he said softly, his voice taking on that musical quality which
-his enemies knew so well. “It would be well if thou and I knew each
-other’s mind a little more clearly--rum is a precious thing to you,
-eh?”
-
-Pet’s eyes glistened and her lips moved without sound.
-
-“I have much rum,” Dick went on, looking at the old woman steadily, “and
-I would wed your granddaughter.”
-
-“Wed?” The exclamation escaped her before she could stop it.
-
-Dick went on as though he had not heard her.
-
-“At your boat and by a priest that I shall bring with me, I would wed
-her.”
-
-“Oh!” Pet said, and smiled knowingly.
-
-“But so far the lass will have none of me,” Dick continued, noting Pet’s
-amazement, “and so, mistress, I would wish you to persuade her to wed me
-here secretly.”
-
-“Ay, and if I do?” Pet broke in.
-
-“If you do, you earn enough rum to keep you and your husband in liquor
-for the rest of your life.”
-
-Dick put his hands on his belt and looked at the old wretch quizzically.
-
-Pet began to laugh. It was a terrible sound, half a wheeze and half a
-choke.
-
-“I’ll persuade her,” she muttered.
-
-Dick quickly put up one white beringed hand.
-
-“Nay, mistress, you must use no violence on her,” he said, “neither must
-you harm her with spirit charms or other bedevilments; I would not have
-her hurt.”
-
-Pet Salt looked at him out of the corner of her eye.
-
-“I’ll not hurt your love, master,” she laughed. “She shall marry
-thee--and by a priest you bring--ha--ha!”
-
-Blueneck had never seen his captain blush before and he now regarded the
-little Spaniard with great interest. The usually sallow skin was stained
-with a vermilion as he turned on the woman in anger.
-
-“Keep to your promise then and be silent,” he said softly, “or by Heaven
-I’ll blow your pig-sty of a rat-ridden hulk off the Island.”
-
-The woman looked at him, frightened for a moment, but soon she began to
-laugh.
-
-“She shall wed thee, my pretty, fine gentleman, she shall wed thee--I’ll
-see to that,” she said, scrambling to her feet--“and the rum shall be
-paid, you promise, master?”
-
-Dick nodded.
-
-“I swear it,” he said. Then he got up and beckoned to Blueneck to follow
-him.
-
-“Good-morrow, mistress,” he said, taking off his hat.
-
-Pet stood looking after them.
-
-“I’ll coax her,” the woman called. “I’ll coax her,” and all the way as
-they went down the beach they could hear her cracked, horrible
-laughter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-“Rum! rum! ru-u-m-m!”
-
-Nan Swayle sat in her miserable little cabin with her knees drawn up to
-her chin; her cat was perched on a rum keg beside her and there was no
-light save for the cold gleam of stars coming in from the open door. She
-sat there, a tall, gaunt figure steadily rocking herself to and fro as
-though keeping time to some monotonous rhyme. She was talking to herself
-in a deep, weary voice, and the words she uttered were always the same,
-“Rum--rum--ru-u-m-m!”
-
-Outside on the marshes everything was very quiet, and she rocked on,
-undisturbed for a while. Then from the direction of the Stroud she heard
-the squeak of a frightened gull as it flew up, disturbed from its rest,
-and then another a little nearer, and again nearer still.
-
-The woman did not cease her rocking; she knew someone was coming over
-the dykes to see her, but what mattered that?
-
-Suddenly she stopped, however, leaned her head forward to listen, and
-then sprang from her chair with surprising agility and hurried to the
-door.
-
-“Nan--Nan, where are you?” called a girlish voice out of the darkness.
-
-“Stay where ye are, Anny lass, till I get ye a light.”
-
-Nan’s stentorian tones boomed over the flat bogs. Hurriedly she crossed
-to the darkest corner of the little hut where she fumbled for a minute
-or two. There was the sound of soft scraping of flint on steel then the
-tinder caught fire and Nan lit a tallow dip and carried it to the door,
-holding it high above her head.
-
-There was no breath of wind in the cloudless night and the flame burned
-steadily.
-
-“Oh! Nan, I’m so glad ye’re here,” came the same voice out of the
-darkness, this time a good deal nearer.
-
-“Why, lass, wherever else would I be? What’s ailing ye, my girl?”
-
-Anny scrambled over the last dyke and staggered breathless into the
-circle of light thrown by the little flame of the dip.
-
-“Let me come in and talk with ye, Mother,” she said, clutching hold of
-the elder woman’s ragged kirtle.
-
-Nan put a strong bony arm round the girl’s shoulders, and when she spoke
-her deep voice had a softer quality in it than before.
-
-“Sit down, lass, sit down, and get your breath, and then I’ll listen to
-ye as long as my eyes will keep open,” she said kindly.
-
-Anny sat down on the upturned rum keg, after first displacing the cat,
-who spat at her viciously.
-
-Nan snatched a leather thong from the wall and lashed at the cat
-savagely, whereupon it slunk into a corner and lay down on a heap of
-onions, keeping one baleful eye fixed on his mistress’s visitor.
-
-Nan sat down on a three-legged stool, the only other article in the room
-save for a huge iron bowl which hung on chains over the now empty grate,
-and several bunches of dried herbs hanging from the roof, and looked at
-the girl critically.
-
-Anny’s face was very white and drawn, and she looked about her with a
-hunted expression in her wild green eyes. She had evidently been crying
-as she came along, for there were tear-marks on her white cheeks.
-
-Nan said nothing, but sat looking at her, her strong, rugged face
-absolutely expressionless.
-
-“I’ve got to marry Black’erchief Dick, Nan,” Anny said at last. “What
-will I do?”
-
-Nan’s eyes flickered.
-
-“Got to? Who says Anny Farran’s got to do aught she don’t want to?”
-
-“Pet Salt said----”
-
-“What!” Nan’s face blazed with fury. “That blue-livered, mange-struck
-ronyon! Truth, lass, you’re mad to think on her! The louse-ridden,
-thieving, man-stealing, spirit-sodden devil,” she muttered to herself.
-
-Anny shook her head.
-
-“She says I’ll be took to the Castle if I don’t do as she bids,” she
-said hurriedly.
-
-Nan lashed the earthen floor with her strip of leather.
-
-“The woman’s a lying fiend,” she said quickly and intensely.
-
-The girl laid her hand on the other woman’s trembling arm.
-
-“I know she is, Mother, I know she is, but what will I do?” she said
-softly.
-
-Nan looked up impatiently.
-
-“Do? Why, do naught, the old hell-kite, the sithering----”
-
-“Ay, but listen, Mother! Listen!” The girl’s voice was so insistent that
-the older woman allowed her voice to die away to a muttering.
-
-Anny went on.
-
-“If I don’t wed Master Dick, Nan, Pet Salt--” Nan began to mumble again,
-but Anny took no notice--“saith that he will carry me off without him
-marrying me--and, Mother, I would be wed.”
-
-Nan paused in her muttered imprecations to look at the girl. This was a
-new side of the affair, and she realized the importance to the girl’s
-mind. She began to consider it carefully, while Anny watched her face
-with almost painful eagerness.
-
-But Nan’s hatred for Pet Salt was too great to allow her to think
-clearly on any subject connected with her old enemy for more than two
-minutes at a time, and she soon broke forth into low, tense reviling.
-
-“Look!” she said, suddenly springing up and standing between Anny and
-the open doorway, a tall black figure against a background of stars.
-“Look at me, child--do you know how old I am?--forty-three! You’re
-surprised? Of course, I look sixty, don’t I?--tell me--tell me.”
-
-Anny looked at the rugged face that had evidently once been so
-beautiful; the light from the dip flickered over it and accentuated each
-wrinkle and hollow. She nodded.
-
-“Ah!” Nan lifted her clenched fist above her head. “That is her work,
-the woman of hell. Once my cabin was the sweetest, cleanest, and neatest
-on the Island, my lips were the reddest, my hair the blackest, my smile
-the most prized---- Oh, that crawling filcher, would I might feel these
-hands about her scabby neck!”
-
-Anny sighed. She knew it was no use to attempt to stop Mistress Swayle
-in this mood, so she crouched back in her corner, while the cat, which
-had at first objected to her, now came to hide in the folds of her
-kirtle. He also knew his mistress’s vagaries.
-
-Nan went on, her voice rising higher and higher, and her words coming
-faster and faster until she seemed to be repeating some frenzied chant.
-
-“She took my man--your grandsire--she stole him from me with promises of
-rum to rot his soul with--God curse her. I, a sweet milk lass working
-all day in my dairy with a flowered kirtle to my back and shoes to my
-feet--and she a dirty, mange-eaten quean. Oh! may the red-plague fall
-on her and her rat-eaten boat. And he a simple, kind-hearted lad with a
-liking for the spirit! Oh! that kite shall go through torments in her
-time! But he loved me--not her, devil baste her.”
-
-Anny rose to her feet and the cat ran away squealing.
-
-“Mother Swayle,” she said pleadingly, “what will I say to her?”
-
-Nan seemed to come to herself again, for she patted the girl kindly on
-the shoulder.
-
-“You run back to the Ship, lass. I’ll see the ronyon,” she said.
-
-Anny took her hand.
-
-“You’re good to me, Mother,” she said.
-
-Nan pulled her hand away sharply.
-
-“Go off with you, child,” she ordered harshly, and as Anny sped over the
-marshes, she heard the deep voice behind her getting fainter and fainter
-calling--“Rum--rum--rum!”
-
-Early on the next morning Mistress Swayle set out for Pet Salt’s boat.
-The sun, rising red out of the sea, tinged her black gown and flying
-elf-locks with a certain rustiness as she bent her head before the salt
-morning wind and strode down the ill-made road. She walked along with
-sweeping strides, a five-foot bramble stick in her hand. On either side
-of her stretched the gray-green, dyke-patterned saltings, while ahead
-gleamed fields of ripening wheat and blue vetches.
-
-She was murmuring to herself as she went along and often paused to shake
-her stick at some unseen adversary.
-
-Her cat followed her at a respectful distance, always keeping one eye on
-the bramble stick.
-
-As it was some way to Pet Salt’s boat, Nan was tired by the time she
-reached the Ship and would have gone in and rested there had she not
-been beset by a pack of young urchins, Tant Pullen and little Red among
-them, who danced round her in a ring calling “Witch!” and “Devil’s
-Aunt!” and so forth.
-
-The old woman--for she looked old--laid about her vigorously with her
-stick and as she was very strong soon prevented them from barring her
-way, but they followed her for a long distance along the wall.
-
-Pet Salt lifted a tousled head above the hatchway, sniffed the cool
-clean salt air, and shivered. Then hastily wrapping a piece of old
-sail-cloth round her mouth and nose she scrambled on to the dirty deck
-and hurried across to a heap of kegs piled up high. Under these she at
-last unearthed a partially full one and hugging it to her bosom ran back
-to the hatchway, her bare feet sounding oddly on the rotten boards.
-
-It was at this moment that Nan tapped on the side of the boat with her
-stick and shouted in tones loud enough to awaken the seven sleepers.
-
-“Ho, there, you dirty ronyon, come out, come out, Pet Salt, Heaven blast
-ye!”
-
-At the sound of her voice Pet dropped the keg she was carrying and
-tearing the sail-cloth from her face hobbled over to the side and looked
-down.
-
-“What! you round here, you hell-cat, sneaking a look at your love, I
-suppose, you old----”
-
-A stream of unprintable language broke from her ragged lips.
-
-Nan, leaning heavily on her long stick, gazed upward and when Pet paused
-for breath she began to talk in her big booming voice.
-
-“What have ye been doing with my god-daughter, you stealer of loves?”
-she shouted.
-
-Pet began to laugh.
-
-“Your god-daughter!” she shrieked. “And who is she, you mother of
-witches? You’re not talking of my granddaughter, are you--you tike?”
-
-Nan shook her stick at her fiercely.
-
-“Your granddaughter! You mange-struck man-stealer!” she ejaculated.
-
-“Man-stealer!” Pet shrieked in her fury. “You jade, you miserable,
-jealous jade--still whining about your lover as you call him, you old
-she-goat. My Ben never loved you--your lover! You’re as old as the
-Island. What do you want with lovers?”
-
-Nan stood there, a tall, imposing figure, her black rags gently stirring
-in the wind.
-
-“You lie, Pet Salt! In your rotting throat you lie,” she said calmly. “I
-am not so old as you say, not so old as Ben--and he loved me well--and
-would have wed me had not you stolen him----”
-
-“I stole? Marry, hell-kite, I stole in truth! I stole when he came
-begging to my door and beseeching me to save him from you? I stole, you
-vile devil!”
-
-“He did not!” Nan spoke hotly.
-
-“Indeed, did he not, ronyon?” Pet was foaming at the mouth in her anger.
-“Ay, he did, he crawled to my boat and said on his knees: ‘Oh, save me,
-my own Pet o’ the saltings, save me from yon scabby wanton who waits for
-me!’”
-
-“May the green grass turn to ashes in your way for that lie, Pet Salt,”
-said Nan slowly.
-
-Pet put up her hands.
-
-“Ye’re not to curse me, Nan Swayle,” she shrieked, “ye witch of
-darkness, ye’re not to curse me, or by Heaven I’ll call Ben up to ye.”
-
-Nan laughed a hard, crackling laugh in her throat.
-
-“You daren’t, you slut,” she said. “Ben may not have forgotten his old
-love!”
-
-Pet grew purple with rage.
-
-“I dare not let him see you!” she screamed. “What! you ronyon--I dare
-not let him---- Oh! you’re mad!”
-
-Nan laughed again.
-
-“Still I say you dare not,” she said.
-
-Pet choked with anger; then a crafty look came into her eyes.
-
-“Oh, I see your mind, Mistress Nancy Swayle,” she said with a scornful
-laugh. “I did not think you would be so cunning--do you then long so
-much for a sight of your old love that you walk five miles in the early
-dawning to beg for a look?”
-
-Nan’s rugged features twitched convulsively, but in a moment she was
-laughing again.
-
-“Still I say you dare not, slut,” she said.
-
-Without another word Pet turned away from the side and called down the
-hatchway.
-
-Nan waited on the beach below, quite still and leaning on her stick, a
-proud smile playing round her wide, humorous mouth.
-
-Two or three minutes later Pet reappeared supporting Ben, who in spite
-of the early hour was very unsteady on his feet.
-
-He lurched forward and sprawled over the side of the hull looking down
-at Nan. She was evidently much surprised at the change in him, for she
-started back a little.
-
-Pet laughed derisively.
-
-“Ain’t he a pretty one?” she said.
-
-Nan gulped and came forward.
-
-“Hail to ye, Benny,” she said softly.
-
-Ben looked at her vaguely.
-
-“Hail!” he said, and then after a moment added abruptly, “Whosh you?”
-
-Pet shrieked with laughter, and settled herself down beside him.
-
-“Who are you, old one?” she screamed.
-
-Nan went nearer.
-
-“Do you not remember Nan Swayle, Ben?” she said pleadingly.
-
-“Ah, yesh! I remembers Nan Swayle,” said Ben cheerfully.
-
-“That’s her, ducky,” said Pet, her face red with laughter.
-
-Ben leant farther over the side to look at Nan, then he drew himself up
-and turned to Pet.
-
-“Slut, you lie,” he said, as clearly as he could. “That’s”--he pointed
-to Nan--“an old hag--but Nan Swayle--no, Nan Swayle was a shweet lash--a
-shweet milk lash--an’,” he went on very seriously, “a very pretty lash.”
-
-He leaned over the side and had one more look at Nan, who stood beneath
-him, her arms outstretched and her bright eyes brighter than usual.
-
-“No,” he said. “No, no, nosh--that ish not a bit like Nan Swayle. Nan
-Swayle is a pretty lash, a shweet, pretty lash.”
-
-Pet rocked herself to and fro in a paroxysm of laughter.
-
-Ben stood looking at Nan.
-
-“Go away, hag,” he said, “find Nan Swayle and send her to me and I’ll go
-with her, but yoush not Nan Swayle, or, anywaysh,” he went on, “not Nan
-Swayle I knowsh, you ugly old hagsh.”
-
-And he began to laugh. “That’s not Nan Shwayle,” he giggled, poking
-Pet’s fat side with his fingers.
-
-Pet rolled over on the gunwale in a fit of laughter.
-
-“No, ducky,” she roared, “that’s not Nan Swayle. That’s a witch telling
-us she’s her.”
-
-“Ah! she couldn’t cheat me!” Ben chuckled. “I knowsh Nan Shwayle, a
-pretty lash.”
-
-“Pet Salt, the time will come when you shall pay!”
-
-Nan’s voice drowned their laughter for a moment. She stood there on the
-shingle, the waves lapping up to her feet and the newly risen sun
-lighting her wrinkled face where two tears sparkled on her yellow
-cheeks, but her eyes were bright and hard.
-
-Then she turned away and strode off, holding her head high, and as she
-went the wind carried after her the sound of their derisive laughter.
-
-And it was not until she reached her cabin that she remembered she had
-said no word to Pet of the business on which she had set out, Anny’s
-marriage.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-“Pet Salt, are you sure all this is so? I wouldn’t wed with him if I
-could help it.”
-
-Anny spoke anxiously, her little face white with apprehension.
-
-She and Pet Salt were alone together on the deck of Ben’s old boat. The
-tide was well up and the waves leaped against the stern with a gurgling
-sound.
-
-It was late in the evening, the wind was rising, and the sun was setting
-over the Island in a blaze of red and green light.
-
-On board the _Pet_ there was the customary muddle: empty kegs, rotting
-sail-cloth, torn fishing nets, and derelict baskets lay strewn about the
-decaying deck in endless confusion.
-
-Pet was leaning against the stump of the main-mast, her red arms akimbo
-and her tousled gray head cocked on one side, while Anny stood looking
-on to the darkening water with her back to the old woman.
-
-“Sure? Why, girl, certain I’m sure. As sure as this boat’s a vile hell,
-Master Black’erchief Dick will have you one way or another--wed or
-unwed. Which way lies with you?”
-
-Pet’s harsh voice broke the warm quietness of the summer evening
-unpleasantly.
-
-Anny caught her breath, and shrugging her shoulders turned toward the
-old woman. Then she laughed.
-
-“Lord! you must be mad, Pet Salt, how could Master Dick carry me off
-from the Ship, the whole village there to stay him?” she said,
-brightening.
-
-Pet laughed unpleasantly.
-
-“You think too much of yourself, lass,” she said. “To stay him? And why
-should any one stay him?”
-
-Anny’s eyes grew big with surprise and fear.
-
-“What do you mean?” she said as slowly as she could. “Why, Gilbot----”
-
-Pet began to laugh.
-
-“You, lass, have less wit than most girls, if you think any one would
-turn away a moneyed captain because of a little serving slut,” she said.
-
-Anny looked round her helplessly.
-
-“Did you see Mother Nan yesterday?” she asked suddenly.
-
-Pet began to swear.
-
-“I did,” she said viciously. “The old ronyon! Come prowling around here
-for a look at your grandsire, like an old hen clucking for its chick.”
-
-“Did--did she not speak with you of me?” Anny’s voice trembled.
-
-Pet laughed again.
-
-“Lord, girl! the whole Island don’t spend its time thinking and talking
-o’ you,” she said. “I heard naught of you from her----”
-
-Anny looked round her hopelessly, the tears welling into her eyes. The
-sun had sunk out of sight behind the belt of oaks on the Island and
-everything around had grown gray and cool.
-
-Suddenly she turned and threw herself before the old woman.
-
-“Grandam, what will I do? What will I do?” she sobbed.
-
-Pet kicked her away hastily and spat on the deck.
-
-“Get up and behave yerself, Anny Farran,” she said sharply. “What should
-ye do but marry the handsome Spaniard and sail off with him? Such a
-chance don’t come to every dirty serving-maid.”
-
-Anny sprang to her feet.
-
-“I’ll not wed him,” she said, her voice clear and loud. “I’ll not if he
-kills me.”
-
-Pet Salt’s smile vanished and a crafty, anxious light crept into her
-watery eyes. She crossed over to the girl with a peculiar smooth
-movement and stood very close to her, her villainous face very near to
-the young girl’s frightened one.
-
-“Anny Farran,” she said, her harsh, high voice growing more and more
-uncanny, “there be some as say Pet Salt is a witch.”
-
-Anny started involuntarily. The light was fading, and faint shadows were
-creeping fast all round the boat.
-
-Away over the fields a corn-crake called plaintively once or twice and
-then, quite near, an owl screamed loudly.
-
-Pet’s face grew distorted in the shade.
-
-Anny shuddered; she shared in all the superstitions of the day, and
-witches and the evil eye were well known to her.
-
-“Ay, they do!” she faltered, “but what say you?”
-
-“I say--naught!”
-
-Pet came a little nearer and her voice sank to a whisper.
-
-Anny shrieked and started back.
-
-“Holy Mother of God, defend me!” she muttered.
-
-Pet laughed weirdly.
-
-“Prayers don’t frighten Pet Salt,” she whispered, coming still nearer to
-the terrified Anny, who clung to the gunwale.
-
-“What will you do?” The girl’s voice was so low that Pet could hardly
-hear it.
-
-“Nay! What will you do, ronyon? Shall the handsome captain lie by you or
-no?”
-
-Anny clenched her little brown hands so that the nails cut into her
-palms. The vision of Hal’s hurt and angry face kept rising up before
-her.
-
-“And if I do not wed him what will you do?” she said at last.
-
-“Bewitch you, girl, so that even your young slave, Hal, may loathe you,”
-Pet began in a slow sing-song voice. “So that your beautiful black hair
-may fall off on the sand like seaweed, leaving you old and hairless--so
-that your eyes may burn up and grow dim and the sight of the sea never
-more be seen in them--so that your teeth may grow black and ache with
-the pain of ten thousand devils tearing at their roots--so that your
-nails may drop off and lie on the floor like shells, and your fingers
-wither and grow black, and their knuckles decay and the joints drop off,
-and----”
-
-Anny covered her eyes.
-
-“Oh, peace--peace, I pray you,” she screamed. “I will do anything. Oh,
-peace----”
-
-Pet began to laugh.
-
-“Have a care, Anny, how you tell this,” she said, “or I will bewitch
-thee certainly.”
-
-Anny looked at the woman curiously.
-
-“Yet I will not wed,” she announced suddenly. “I mind me when you vowed
-that Master Pattern should have a blister grow on his skin to the size
-of an egg, and I mind me that he had no such thing at all.”
-
-Pet began to swear heartily.
-
-“The hell-kite went to the priest at West,” she explained.
-
-Anny’s eyes lighted.
-
-“Then so will I,” she said promptly.
-
-“That you shall not.” Pet laughed raucously. “Look you, Ann Farran,” she
-said, “if you do so there’s other things that Pet can do. Send Hal Grame
-and you to Colchester to the Castle to rot your lives out in the foul
-dungeons they have there.”
-
-This was the last. Anny, who was by this time thoroughly frightened, had
-been brought up along with the other Island children to fear Colchester
-Castle worse than death, and, indeed, the stories of the dungeons
-current at that time were very terrible, the civil war being only just
-over. She began to cry.
-
-“I will wed with him,” she said.
-
-“Secretly on this boat to-morrow night?”
-
-Anny gasped. Nevertheless, she shrugged her shoulders and nodded.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Good! The Captain comes to-night to hear of it; will you wait to see
-him?”
-
-“Nay.” The word broke from her lips like a sob, and she ran over to the
-rope ladder.
-
-“If you fail----” Pet’s voice grew threatening.
-
-Anny’s voice trembled.
-
-“I will not fail,” she said, and then added beneath her breath, “Oh,
-Hal, what will I say to you?”
-
-As she ran back to the Ship across the fast-darkening saltings Anny
-began to realize the situation a little more clearly. She had bound
-herself to marry Dick on the morrow; that was terrible enough in itself,
-but after she was married, what then? The girl stopped in her stride to
-think on it.
-
-“After I am wed I can go back to the Ship,” she said, half aloud, “but
-why be wed first? Oh! whatever will I do?”
-
-Two weeks ago she would have gone to Hal naturally. Now she swallowed
-uneasily in her throat.
-
-Hal had hardly spoken to her of late; he had grown strangely sullen and
-taciturn, and spent all his spare time in a fishing-boat with Joe
-Pullen. She knew that they took the fish they caught up the Colne and
-sold it in the little inland villages. She had tried to speak to him
-several times, but he had always looked at her so fiercely that she had
-abandoned the attempt.
-
-Alone on the wild, wind-swept marshes, the girl sank down on her knees
-on the damp spiky grass and covered her face with her hands. She
-remained quite still for several seconds and then sprang up with a
-little cry. Hastily she passed her hands over her shining plaits as
-though to make sure that they were still there, and examined her nails
-anxiously. Then she sighed with relief and with one fearful backward
-glance at the _Pet_, set off to the Ship, her skirts flying out behind
-her as she ran.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-
-The same evening Hal Grame and Joe Pullen walked up the Ship lane
-together in silence. They had just returned from one of their fishing
-expeditions and Joe carried the catch in a dripping basket on his
-shoulder.
-
-Hal strode along beside him, his hands in his pockets and his eyes fixed
-moodily on the ground.
-
-No word of Anny had passed between them since the night a fortnight
-before, when Hal had stumbled into Joe’s cottage and told the story of
-his quarrel with her. Ever since, with natural delicacy, Joe had
-carefully avoided the subject, and had carried his mate off fishing as
-often as he could, thinking that this would take his mind off the girl.
-
-Suddenly Hal stopped.
-
-“How much had we from the sale of yesterday’s fishing?” he asked
-abruptly.
-
-“Four groats,” replied Joe promptly.
-
-“Wilt thou give me two, mate?”
-
-Joe looked at his friend in surprise; Hal was not wont to want money,
-but he answered readily enough:
-
-“Certes, lad, certes,” and setting his basket down he brought out the
-two coins almost reverently from his pocket and held them to Hal, who
-took them thoughtfully, weighed them in his hand, and then looked up at
-his mate questioningly.
-
-“How much silk can I buy with these at Tiptree?” he asked slowly.
-
-Joe looked at him in astonishment.
-
-“Silk? Why, Hal Grame, what in heaven and earth do you want with----” He
-broke off abruptly, a wave of understanding passing over his face.
-
-“She’s not worth your troubling, mate,” he said at last.
-
-A dull flush of anger spread over the younger man’s face and he broke
-out impetuously:
-
-“Not worth my troubling! Lord save you, Joe Pullen, if it was any other
-man who said as much, I’d----”
-
-Joe put a huge paw on the boy’s shoulder.
-
-“That’s right, lad, that’s right,” he said kindly. “The lass is your
-love when all’s said an’ done--pray Heaven you may not be as fooled as I
-was, though,” he added mournfully, the thought of Mistress Amy flashing
-through his mind.
-
-Hal smiled in spite of himself at his friend’s lugubrious expression,
-but he soon became serious again.
-
-“Joe,” he said hesitatingly.
-
-“Ay!”
-
-“You have had a deal of truck with women?”
-
-Joe grunted.
-
-“Wi’ one woman, you mean,” he said savagely.
-
-Hal looked at him curiously before he spoke.
-
-“What will I do about Anny?” he said at last.
-
-Joe cleared his throat; he had very strong views on this subject.
-
-“You make too much ado about her,” he said.
-
-“But for these last two weeks I have said naught to her,” Hal objected.
-
-Joe knew this was true and he shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“I should be sharp with her, lad,” he said at last. “Tell her there be
-other lasses you could love, and she’ll come round in no time.”
-
-Hal nodded.
-
-“I had thought as much myself,” he said.
-
-“Depend on it, I’m right,” said Joe, shaking his head sagely, and
-reshouldering the basket, and they continued thoughtfully up the dusty
-road.
-
-On turning into the Ship yard they saw the usual company seated on
-benches before the kitchen door, drinking beer and rum, each man to his
-fancy.
-
-Old Gilbot’s chair had been moved out into the porch, and he sat in it
-drunk and happy, singing to his heart’s content.
-
-The two mates were greeted cheerily; Joe sat down and called for rum,
-but Hal, seeing Blueneck and one or two others of the _Anny’s_ crew
-among the company, walked into the kitchen, put his cap and coat by, and
-looked about for Anny.
-
-She was not in the kitchen or the scullery, so presently he wandered out
-into the garden where the evening shadows lay deep over the plants and
-shrubs. He sat down on an upturned barrel, his elbows resting on his
-knees and his chin on his hands.
-
-Hardly had he been there a moment when there was a rustling in the
-shrubbery at the end of the garden and Anny, her plaits flying out
-behind her, sped up the path toward him. She did not notice him, and
-would have passed had not he put out an arm to stay her.
-
-At his touch the girl gave a little terrified scream and started back
-like a frightened animal. When she saw who it was, however, she gave a
-little sigh of relief and a smile crept into her face, while her heart
-beat faster.
-
-Hal was going to make friends with her at last, she thought, and as she
-smiled up at him she felt that here was the solution of her
-difficulties.
-
-Hal on his side felt a glow of pleasure at her obvious friendliness and
-a warm impulse to take her in his arms. However, he remembered Joe’s
-advice and the smile died on his lips as he said sharply:
-
-“Where have you been, Ann Farran? And why come you in so quickly by the
-back way?”
-
-The eager, happy light died out of the girl’s eyes in a moment, and a
-flush of anger spread over her cheeks.
-
-“And what will that matter to you, Master Hal Grame?” she said, pertly
-tossing her head.
-
-Hal’s young face grew hard and he laid a hand on her arm.
-
-“Indeed, it has a great deal to do with me, Ann Farran. What duty am I
-paying to Master Gilbot if I let his serving wenches go flying about
-the Island at all hours of the day, and besides, Anny, don’t forget that
-you--you----” His voice had grown much softer and even trembled a
-little, but Anny was too angry to notice it.
-
-“Indeed, I think you take too much on your shoulders, master--master
-tapster,” she burst out.
-
-Hal gasped, and then as his anger rose, his grip on her arm tightened
-and he shook her violently.
-
-“Take care, Anny, take care,” he said between his teeth, “don’t forget
-that you were to wed me!”
-
-Anny tried to wrench her hand away.
-
-“Were? Ay, you’re right, Hal Grame,” she said proudly. “Marry! I would
-not wed you now if you and I were the last to be on earth.”
-
-Hal blinked and let go his grip on her wrist; then a smile broke over
-his boyish features, and he said half laughing:
-
-“Lord, you’re daft, Anny, you know you love me. Come, say I lie, you
-can’t!”
-
-Anny’s black brows came down on her white forehead until they made one
-straight line across her brow and her big green eyes blazed.
-
-“I say you lie, Hal Grame,” she said very quietly and distinctly. “I say
-you lie and that you are an over-weening puppy and think yourself too
-fine.”
-
-Hal was stung into replying sharply:
-
-“Lord preserve you, silly wench, who do you think would marry you, a
-little serving slut, without a portion, or even a father, for that
-matter?”
-
-Anny tossed her head and looked at him disdainfully.
-
-“I could be wed to-morrow to a finer man than you,” she said, forgetting
-prudence in her irritation.
-
-Hal laughed savagely.
-
-“Oh, you fool, you fool, Anny,” he said bitterly. “Do you think your
-little sea-rat will wed you?”
-
-Anny looked at him with child-like surprise.
-
-“I do not think at all,” she said, and added under her breath: “I know.”
-
-Hal looked at her hopelessly. He felt that Joe’s advice had not been
-altogether helpful, and as she stood there, a wild, free-looking little
-creature in the dim light, he could not help feeling that if he had
-coaxed her instead of attempting to drive her into his arms things might
-have gone better with him, and Anny as she stood looking at him felt a
-pang in her heart when she thought of the old Hal, the Hal whom she had
-loved, who had been so different from this new Hal who seemed to be
-deliberately trying to make her hate him.
-
-For two seconds they stood looking at one another, each hoping against
-hope that all would yet come right; yet neither of them spoke. At last
-Anny turned away and went slowly into the house, her mind made up about
-her marriage and her thoughts on Black’erchief Dick.
-
-Hal watched her go and then sat down again, his head on his hands.
-Presently he put his hand into his pocket and brought out the two
-groats, and looked at them as they lay shining in his palm, and then
-made a gesture as though to fling them from him away into the bushes,
-but thought better of it and repocketed them.
-
-“The lass may love me still,” he muttered to himself. “I’ll get the
-present for her. Lasses are slippery catches. I would I knew the way of
-them.”
-
-Then, thrusting his hands deep into his pockets, he got up heavily and
-strolled slowly up the path, kicking savagely at the loose gravel as he
-went.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-
-“Ho, there, you mange-struck dogs, broach a keg and drink to your
-captain’s lady!”
-
-Black’erchief Dick, his eyes flashing and his face showing bright and
-triumphant in the flickering lantern light, shouted the words over the
-side of Ben’s boat to a little knot of picked men of the _Anny’s_ crew,
-who were ranged on the sand below.
-
-They were present to witness their captain’s marriage to Anny Farran,
-and incidentally to carry the rum which was the price of his bride.
-
-The worn deck of the _Pet_ had been cleaned and partially cleared for
-the occasion. Dick had insisted on this, and, in spite of the
-protestations of the two old people, Ben and Pet, the work had been done
-and the place presented a fairly tidy aspect.
-
-The empty kegs were ranged in neat rows round the gunwale, the
-clothes-line had been removed and the rest of the litter swept down the
-hatchway.
-
-It was almost dark, and the cloudless sky was a pale blue shading off to
-rose and green in the west where the first two or three stars shone
-faintly.
-
-On deck a big ship’s lantern stood on the stump of the main-mast while
-two smaller ones hung on each side of it; they showed sick and yellow
-in the half-light.
-
-Standing before this improvised altar was a man dressed as a priest. He
-held a book in his hand and was mumbling to himself nervously in a
-foreign tongue. On either side of him were Blueneck and Noah Goody;
-their knives were drawn and their faces set like wooden masks.
-
-Before them, in a gorgeous ill-fitting gown of yellow Lyons silk which
-Dick had brought and insisted on her wearing, stood Anny. Her cheeks
-were flushed and her eyes dancing with excitement. Round her neck hung a
-great silver pendant studded with garnets, and every now and then her
-hand would stray up to this and her fingers caress it lovingly, half
-wonderingly. On the little brown hand shone a ring; it was an
-extraordinary jewel, consisting of a little gold hoop supporting a large
-flower, each petal of which was a different kind of stone: diamond,
-ruby, emerald, onyx, pearl, and sapphire, with a little piece of amber
-for the centre.
-
-Dick had told her that it was very old when he had put it on her finger,
-and she looked at it with something very like awe.
-
-Behind her stood Ben and Pet; the old man swayed to and fro drunkenly,
-taking little or no interest in the proceedings, but the old woman
-watched eagerly, half enviously, her bleared eyes following Anny’s every
-movement and each gleam of the jewels, her quick ears catching each word
-that was spoken. Nothing escaped her, and she noticed that the priest’s
-garments were made for a much larger man, and that his book was upside
-down, but she said nothing and merely smiled wickedly to herself as the
-ceremony went on.
-
-The men on the beach below were not long in obeying their captain’s
-order, and in a minute the toast was given.
-
-“Health and good fortune to the Captain’s lady!”
-
-Everybody drank heartily, the priest more than any one, and Dick, his
-brocaded coat and soft lace ruffles shining in the dim light, and his
-black curls showing a little more than usual from under his black
-kerchief, raised his glass above his head and taking Anny by the hand
-threw back his head and laughed joyously. He had once again got his own
-way in spite of difficulties. He drained off his liquor, and throwing
-the empty glass over his head began to sing:
-
- “_Fair as the Island, and proud as the sea,_
- _As naught in the world is sweet Anny to me._”
-
-The rich musical voice echoed round the old boat and floated out over
-the marshes.
-
-Anny caught her breath and her grip on the Spaniard’s pulsing white hand
-tightened. She was carried out of herself by the excitement of the
-moment, the wonderful frock, the jewels, and above all the singing.
-
-Dick felt her emotion, and his arm slid round her waist much like a
-snake slips round a tree stem, and, as her pretty head fell back on his
-shoulder, the song grew louder, sweeter, and a triumphant note crept
-into it.
-
- “_So gentle, so tender, so wise without guile,_
- _Oh, where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-Anny sighed deliriously and she shivered with pure excitement; the
-Spaniard’s full red lips brushed her hair before the wonderful voice
-rang out again in the chorus:
-
- “_Ann, Oh! Ann of the Island,_
- _Where is another like Ann of the Isle?_”
-
-The crew took up the strain, and Dick and Anny stood together in a
-circle of singing men, each with his rumkin held high above his head and
-his foot keeping time to the rhythm.
-
-Old Pet spat on the deck and an envious light came into her evil old
-face. All her life she had longed to be the centre of a scene like this,
-the magnet of an admiring crowd of hard-drinking, hard-fighting,
-hard-loving men. All her youth had been spent in dreams of a night like
-this. Now in her age it was bitter to see it come to another woman.
-
-As for Anny, she was intoxicated with it all; any sense of prudence had
-left her. She was supremely happy. Now and again a faint regret that she
-could not marry Hal rose in her mind, but she dismissed it promptly.
-
-The future had no being for her, and the past was a dream; the thing
-that counted was the present, the laughing, pulsing, living present.
-
-And as the _Anny’s_ crew roared out their captain’s own love-song, and
-Dick, his Spanish blood on fire with love triumphant, kissed her hair,
-her eyes, and mouth, she laughed as freely and as joyously as he had
-done.
-
-The shadows were deepening by this time and the deep blue sky was
-studded with stars, and Anny, looking up from the Captain’s shoulder,
-said suddenly:
-
-“It is late, sir; I must go back to the Ship now.”
-
-Dick looked at her in astonishment for a moment, and a contemptuous
-cackling laugh broke from between Pet Salt’s thin, blackened lips.
-
-At the sound of it Anny shuddered involuntarily and drew a little closer
-to the Spaniard, who, noting her agitation, turned on the old woman
-angrily, his eyes suddenly losing their dreamy love-heaviness, and
-becoming hard and bright.
-
-“Peace, hag!” he rapped out, “get thee down thy rat-hole, and take thy
-sodden man with thee, or nothing shall you see of me or my cargoes from
-this night on.”
-
-Pet began to mumble and curse under her breath, but nevertheless she
-obediently hobbled across the deck toward the hatchway, half carrying,
-half dragging the drunken Ben along with her. The company watched them
-in silence and Anny, as with fascinated eyes she followed them to the
-dark hole down which they disappeared, could not help being reminded of
-one big muddy crab dragging its prey after it into its noisome hole,
-there to feast.
-
-Dick, too, watched them and shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“So may all evil creatures drag themselves out of thy path, my Ann of
-the Island,” he said, and then as though a new idea had struck him:
-“Thou art right, dear heart, get thee back to the Ship. That will be the
-best way, and then I will come for thee. Until then say nothing of
-this.”
-
-Anny smiled happily and ran to the hatchway to change her frock again,
-and as she laid by the soft silk she felt in her childish,
-happy-go-lucky way that she had laid by the whole evening’s business
-with it.
-
-She had been half afraid that Dick would not let her go back to the
-Ship. Now it seemed that he wanted her to. She had some sort of vague
-idea that she was to be his wife on the Island only, when she would see
-him in the ordinary way at the Ship.
-
-She sighed relievedly; the matter did not seem to be as important as she
-had imagined.
-
-When she came on the deck again dressed in her usual kirtle and bodice,
-the crew were rolling several unopened kegs onto the deck, and the
-priest was helping them, but Anny did not notice this, for Dick was
-waiting for her.
-
-“I will go with thee along the way,” he said gallantly, his soft eyes
-seeking hers and his slim white hand closing on her little brown one.
-
-Anny smiled at him and he helped her down the rope ladder and on to the
-beach. Once again his silk-sleeved arm slid round her, and she laid her
-head on his shoulder. They walked on in silence.
-
-Suddenly the Spaniard stopped and his other arm encircled her, pulling
-back her head and raising her little white face to his.
-
-Anny could see him strangely earnest and grave in the moonlight.
-
-“You are my first love, Ann of the Island, though there be many others I
-have sported with,” he said in a strangely quiet, even voice, “and I am
-a strange man; take care how you use me.”
-
-Anny looked at him with frank, innocent eyes; he was very handsome, she
-thought.
-
-“I pray you kiss me, sir,” she said softly.
-
-They did not move for a second or so, and the wind rose over the sea and
-whistled through the long grass at the sides of the path, and rustled
-the seaweed at their feet. Suddenly they became aware that someone was
-coming toward them.
-
-Anny grew suddenly rigid; it was a step she knew.
-
-Dick looked up quickly, and they began to walk on.
-
-The figure came nearer and nearer. Dick strained his eyes to see who it
-was, but the man was in the shadow, and he passed without speaking.
-
-When they had gone on a little way, Dick paused.
-
-“Didst see who ’twas passed us, Ann?” he asked.
-
-Anny swallowed, and then said as carelessly as she could:
-
-“Oh! ’twas no one of any account; ’twas the tapster from the Ship.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-
-“Nan, are you within? I’ve come to beg a thing of ye, Mother.”
-
-Anny stood outside Nan Swayle’s little cabin and knocked at the door. It
-was early afternoon and the hot sun poured down on the gray purplish
-saltings, but in spite of the heat the hut was shut up.
-
-Anny began to be afraid that the old woman had gone away, and a sudden
-feeling of terrible loneliness seized her; she knocked again
-frantically.
-
-There was silence for a moment or so and then Nan’s great booming voice
-came out to the waiting girl like a welcome peal of thunder after a
-lightning flash:
-
-“Good swine, peace to ye, whoever you are. What do you want wi’ old
-Mother Swayle?”
-
-“‘Tis I, Mother--Anny Farran, and in great need.” The girl spoke eagerly
-and her voice shook unsteadily.
-
-There was the sound of someone moving hastily across the hut; the door
-flung open and Nan’s great gaunt form appeared in the opening.
-
-“Come in, child, in,” she said kindly, her shrewd, keen eyes taking in
-the girl’s white, haggard face and miserable expression.
-
-Anny looked up at her for a moment, and then her mouth twitched
-convulsively at the corners, her eyes filled with tears, and she flung
-herself in the old woman’s arms, sobbing hysterically.
-
-Nan led her into the little dark hut and sat on an empty keg, gently
-pulling the girl down beside her. Then she began to rock herself gently
-to and fro. She said nothing for some minutes, during which Anny’s sobs
-grew less and less violent.
-
-“Now what’s the matter, my daughter?” said Nan, after the girl’s grief
-had somewhat abated.
-
-Anny began to cry afresh.
-
-“Oh, Nan, what will I do?” she sobbed. “What will I do?”
-
-The older woman put her hands on the girl’s shoulders and held her firm.
-
-“Cry till ye can cry no more, lass, and then tell your story; ’tis the
-best way; crying eases the heart. The Lord gave women tears that their
-hearts might not break every day,” she said, her great kindly voice
-echoing round and about the little shanty.
-
-Anny lifted up her tear-stained face from the old woman’s knee, and,
-carefully avoiding her piercing brown eyes, began to speak in a
-half-whisper, stopping here and there to wipe her eyes.
-
-“When I came home from the wedding wi’ Master Dick,” she began--Nan
-started at her words and carefully suppressed an exclamation of
-horrified surprise--“we passed--Hal--on the way--and, when I got to the
-Ship, no one was in the kitchen, so I sat down on the long seat and
-thought on the Captain, and after a while Hal comes in, and----” She
-paused.
-
-Nan said nothing but sat staring in front of her.
-
-Anny looked up quickly.
-
-“You knew that we had quarrelled, Mother?” she said.
-
-Nan nodded.
-
-The girl paused, and when she spoke again her voice had sunk into a
-murmur.
-
-“He did not see me at first for the kitchen was dark and I in the
-corner. I watched him, Nan, I watched him come in, sit down before the
-counting-table, and take down the slate, and I saw him push it away, and
-then draw it to him again, and I saw him put his hand through his hair,
-and I heard him breathe loudly and slowly, and as though it somewhat
-hurt him, and I--oh, Mother--I heard him call me: ‘Anny, Anny, Anny,’ he
-said as though he was speaking from a long way off; then he laid his
-head on his arms there on the counting-table and I heard him breathing
-again, loud and fast.”
-
-Her voice died away and there was no sound in the coolness of the little
-hut; then she began to cry again.
-
-Suddenly Nan spoke, and her voice sounded sharp after Anny’s impassioned
-murmuring.
-
-“And you were married to the Spanish captain?” she asked.
-
-Anny sat up, her beautiful green eyes brimming with tears.
-
-“Yes,” she said pitifully, “and I love him.”
-
-“Who? Black’erchief Dick?”
-
-“Nay, oh, nay, Mother; nay, Hal, Hal Grame--my love!” A sob rose in her
-throat but she swallowed it down and continued almost eagerly, “And as
-he sat there, and I watching, I knew ’twas he I loved, for all his
-foolings, and I wondered would I creep behind and put my arms about his
-neck, and put my face to his hair, but I minded I was married to the
-Spaniard, and I knew I could not wed with Hal, and I wondered what would
-I do, and then, as I was watching him, he looked up and saw me. His face
-was very pale, and I have never seen any one but the dead so pale. I
-thought he would have cried out, for his mouth opened and his lips
-moved, but he said naught; then he stood up and came toward me, slowly,
-as though I had been a spirit, and his eyes were so dark and full of
-something, I know not what--that I put up my hands to hide my face.”
-
-She broke off abruptly and looked round her, and brushed the hair off
-her forehead before she spoke again--all the time Nan rocked silently to
-and fro.
-
-“Then I heard him speaking below his breath, and his voice hurt me, Nan;
-his voice hurt me. ‘Anny,’ he said, ‘Anny, are you come back to me, my
-love?’ and I heard him fall on his knees at my feet, and I felt his head
-in my lap and his arms about my waist--and I loved him. Oh, Nan! I loved
-him so!”
-
-Her hands clutched at the older woman’s gown convulsively.
-
-“Mother, will you tell him? Will you tell him?” she broke out suddenly.
-“I couldn’t, I couldn’t, not when he was kneeling there more like a
-young lad than a man.”
-
-Nan stopped rocking and faced the pleading, frantic little girl before
-her.
-
-“You did not tell him?” she said slowly.
-
-Anny shook her head.
-
-“Nay, I could not tell him--I love him so,” she said. “I got up and ran
-away to bed, leaving him there, his head on the seat I had left, and,
-oh, Nan! all night long I dreamed I could still hear him breathing
-heavily like that and calling ‘Anny, Anny, Anny.’ Oh, Nan! tell him for
-me, tell him for me! I could not stay in the Ship and he there not
-knowing. Both our hearts would break.”
-
-Nan looked at her curiously.
-
-“I will tell him,” she said.
-
-A sigh of relief broke from Anny’s lips and Nan went on: “I did not know
-you had wedded with the Spaniard, lass; why did you so? You must have
-been mad; what will ye do now?”
-
-Anny looked at her in astonishment.
-
-“I had no choice,” she said. “Pet----”
-
-A light of understanding swept over Nan’s expressive face and she sprang
-to her feet.
-
-“Miserable hell-cat that I am,” she exclaimed, her great voice shaking
-with fury, “to be turned aside by Pet’s damned witchcraft, and sent
-home without having done aught. Oh, why did ye do it, lass, why did ye
-do it?”
-
-Anny shrugged her shoulders.
-
-“‘Tis nothing, Mother, nothing,” she said wearily. “I shall not be known
-as his wife. There will be no difference, save that I cannot wed with
-Hal.” Once again her voice broke on the name.
-
-Nan stared at the girl incredulously.
-
-“Did he say so?” she gasped.
-
-Anny shrugged again. “Nay, not in words,” she said carelessly, “but he
-said, ‘Go back to the Ship and I will come,’ so you see nothing will
-change.”
-
-The elder woman seized the girl by the shoulders.
-
-“You’re mad, Anny,” she said fiercely. “Don’t you see he’ll take you
-away? When the Spaniard comes to the Ship, he comes for you.”
-
-Anny sprang to her feet, her eyes wide with fear and amazement. This
-view of the affair had not presented itself to her before.
-
-“Take me away?” she repeated wonderingly, and then, as the full meaning
-of the words came to her, a little terrified scream escaped her. “I
-won’t go,” she said quickly, “I won’t go--leave this Island? Leave the
-Ship? Leave Hal? No, I won’t go--I----” She stopped suddenly and turned
-to the old woman, an expression of horror on her face.
-
-“There was none who could stay him wedding me,” she said slowly, her
-eyes growing larger and more frightened at every word. “There was none
-who could stay him wedding me; there will be none to stay him taking me
-away. Oh!----”
-
-She dropped down on the beaten earth floor, shuddering violently.
-
-Nan looked down at her for a few seconds and then out of the door over
-the flat marshes to the hilly wooded island beyond.
-
-“The witchcraft of Pet Salt--blast her--stayed me once, Anny,” she said,
-“but none shall stay me the second time, my daughter.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-
-As Anny ran back to the Ship her mind was full of one thing only--fear
-of leaving the Island.
-
-Nan’s few words had thrown an entirely new light on the situation.
-Before hearing them she had thought of the future as simply a
-continuation of her present life. She could hardly imagine a world in
-which the Ship, the Island, and Hal had no part. They had become
-necessary to her; and the thought of losing them terrified her. She had
-been somewhat reassured by Nan’s promise to prevent her from going with
-the Spaniard, but as she thought of Dick, with his determined air and
-ready knife, her heart sank again, and she hurried on, her head full of
-troubles.
-
-That evening the usual company gathered together in the old kitchen of
-the Ship, and Anny was kept busy serving liquor; she had no one to help
-her. Sue was down walking on the beach with Big French, and Anny felt
-half envious when she thought of the other girl’s smooth love affair
-compared with her own. Hal, too, was away; he had gone off to a
-mysterious summons which had been brought to him some two hours ago and
-had not yet returned.
-
-Old Gilbot was very merry, and as the time drew on he called for the
-candles to be lighted and then leaning back in his chair, treated the
-company to one of his favourite songs--“Pretty Poll, she loved a
-sailor,” and soon had the rafters shaking with his music and their
-laughter.
-
-No one noticed Anny, and the girl went about her duties quietly, almost
-dreamily. Often she would pause to listen, and stand waiting, her eyes
-on the door for some seconds, before she went on with her work again,
-her face set and white.
-
-Just when the chorus of “Pretty Poll” was at its height, however, there
-was the sound of footsteps on the cobbles outside and the door opened
-suddenly. No one noticed it save Anny, and she stood silent.
-
-Hal came into the kitchen slowly, screwing up his eyes until they should
-have got used to the light. The girl watched him, fascinated. His face
-seemed to have suddenly grown very grave and quiet. A man’s face, she
-thought, and she looked at him wonderingly!
-
-Suddenly he turned and saw her.
-
-Anny met his eyes with difficulty, and then dropped them before his
-gaze, so reproachful and yet so kind. She shivered a little.
-
-Nan had kept her promise.
-
-For the next two days Anny saw nothing of the Spaniard and her spirits
-began to revive. Like all the Island folk, she took life very casually,
-and, as the days slipped on uneventfully, the event of her marriage,
-although barely a week past, grew more and more like a rather exciting
-dream.
-
-She was thinking like this as she sat alone in the kitchen’s open
-doorway, stitching a seam in one of Sue’s new kirtles, when she saw
-Blueneck coming across the yard toward her. Instantly all her fears
-returned and her fingers trembled as she pushed the needle to and fro
-through the coarse flannel.
-
-He came up and saluted her courteously, as became one addressing the
-Captain’s lady.
-
-“Mistress, I have a message for thee,” he said, looking about him
-cautiously.
-
-Anny glanced up quickly.
-
-“There is none with us,” she said, jerking her head toward the kitchen.
-
-Blueneck looked round the yard hastily, and then bent a little nearer to
-the girl.
-
-“Mistress, the Captain bids me tell you that we sail to-morrow night,”
-he said softly.
-
-Anny caught her breath and the sailor went on:
-
-“And, mistress, he bids me tell you to be ready to go with him when he
-comes for you.”
-
-Anny’s sewing slid off her lap onto the ground unheeded.
-
-Blueneck noticed her confusion and, dropping his voice to a whisper,
-said kindly:
-
-“Take heart, lass, if ever the Captain kissed a woman, he loves you,”
-and then, recovering his respectful manner, he added, “and the Captain
-prays you to be secret for a while.”
-
-Then with a smile and cheerful wave of his hand he turned and left her.
-
-Anny sat spellbound.
-
-It had come.
-
-Immediately her thoughts flew to Nan. She must tell Nan at once for,
-whether the old woman could help her or not, the girl realized that she
-was the only person on the Island who was willing to do so.
-
-She got up to get her shawl and then remembered that she dared not leave
-the Ship.
-
-Sue and Hal were out in the fields and Gilbot had walked down to the
-sea. The Inn could not be left unattended; suddenly she remembered Red.
-
-The child was playing happily in the garden; he came rather unwillingly
-when she called him and stood before her, a quaint, bedraggled little
-figure biting his nails, but he was fond of his sister and listened to
-her instructions with great attention.
-
-“Red, will ye run along to Nan for me?” she said as calmly as she could.
-
-The child’s face fell but he nodded all the same.
-
-“And will ye tell her this? Now do keep it in your head, Reddy”--she was
-trembling in her agitation--“tell her this--he wants Anny to go
-to-morrow and none can stay him.”
-
-She spoke very distinctly, as though she were trying to imprint each
-word on the child’s mind.
-
-Red screwed up his eyes in a great mental effort.
-
-“He wants Anny to go to-morrow, and none can stay him,” he repeated at
-last. Then he turned to his sister. “Who wants you, Anny?” he asked
-curiously.
-
-Anny frowned.
-
-“Oh, go along, dear, go along, hurry!” she almost sobbed.
-
-Red looked at her in mild surprise, and then trotted off obediently,
-muttering to himself as he ran and letting the words keep tune to the
-soft pad of his feet. “He--wants--An--ny--to--go--to--morrow--and
-no--one--will--stay--him.”
-
-He was very hot and breathless by the time he reached Nan’s hut, and he
-stammered out the words to the old woman, who listened eagerly, a
-strange light in her eyes.
-
-“To-morrow?” she said as the boy sank down on the floor panting and
-gasping.
-
-Red looked up.
-
-“Yes,” he said, and added: “And no one will stay him.” He repeated the
-words as though they held no meaning for him.
-
-A fierce expression grew on Nan’s rugged face and she bent down to the
-little fellow and shook him half-angrily.
-
-“You lie, boy, you lie,” she said, her face very close to his. “Do you
-hear?--you lie--for there is one who will stay him, nay, who shall. Get
-back to your sister--tell her not to fear.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-
-“Ah, Master Gilbot, ’twill be a deal quieter than this to-morrow night,
-I reckon.”
-
-Master Granger leaned across from his seat in the chimney corner and
-jerked his head in the direction of the body of the room where
-everything was in commotion.
-
-The _Anny_ was due to sail on the night tide and her crew were
-celebrating its departure with rum and song.
-
-One of the long tables had been pulled out, and round this some ten or
-twelve men sprawled in more or less comfortable attitudes. Behind these
-were others sitting on rum kegs or leaning against the walls. They were
-all very merry, and from time to time loud shrieks of laughter shook the
-old Ship’s rafters and made them echo again and again.
-
-Round the flickering fire, the first of the season, but a bright one,
-sat the Islanders, Joe Pullen, French, Cip de Musset, Granger, Gilbot,
-and a few others. They did not mix with the roaring, yelling crowd of
-seamen, but sat stolidly, drinking slowly, talking slowly, and enjoying
-themselves after their own quiet fashion. Now and again, perhaps, a
-young man would leave his seat to go over and split a joke and a pint
-with a sailor, but the majority kept themselves to themselves, neither
-objecting to, nor wholly approving, the noisy pleasure of the smugglers.
-
-Hal, especially, was very taciturn. He stood quietly in a candlelit
-corner, cleaning pewter, and spoke hardly at all. Sue, however, was in a
-very good humour; in her best kirtle, and her hair tied with a bow of
-scarlet ribbon which French had given her, she flew hither and thither
-carrying the liquor.
-
-Anny had not yet appeared, and Blueneck nudged Noah Goody as they sat at
-the long table, when the time crept on, and still she did not come.
-
-Little Red sat on French’s knee keeping very still and listening to the
-conversation with the utmost interest.
-
-Granger’s remark called forth a chorus of “Ay’s,” some disconsolate, but
-mostly cheerful.
-
-Gilbot looked at the reeling crowd out of the corners of his little
-red-rimmed eyes; then he chuckled:
-
-“Nish,” he said thickly, a weak, happy smile playing over his big puffy
-face. “Nish, oh! very nish indeed. Letsh have a song,” and he struck up
-“Mary Loo” in a thin, quavering voice.
-
-At this moment the door was flung open and a wave of cold air blew round
-the stifling kitchen; several men from the table turned to swear at the
-intruder, but their mouths shut silently and they rose to their feet as
-they saw who it was.
-
-Black’erchief Dick stepped lightly into the room, and, shutting the
-door behind him, stood smiling on the company, a slim, dapper little
-figure in black velvet.
-
-Then he removed his black beaver and called loudly for liquor all round.
-His words were received with cheers, and once again the talk broke out,
-and the singing restarted.
-
-Dick perched himself on the end of one of the empty tables and looked
-about for Anny. The smile faded from his face when he saw she was not
-there, and a look of disappointment took its place. He had no doubt she
-was preparing to fly with him, but he had expected to see her waiting
-for him, her big eyes and wistful little face alight with expectation,
-and, he flattered himself, love. His vanity was hurt at her neglect. So
-his astonishment and anger when he saw her come in a few minutes later,
-in her usual kirtle and serving apron, an unwonted colour in her cheeks
-and a sparkle in her eyes as she fluttered to and fro from one knot of
-seamen to another, leaving a smile here and a jest there, and a pert,
-stinging remark somewhere else, knew no bounds. He looked at her in
-amazement; she had not even glanced his way. The disappointed expression
-left his face and a smile returned, but it was not the same smile.
-
-In the next half hour Anny surpassed herself for gaiety. Her laugh rang
-out loud and clear almost every other second, and the whole company was
-at her feet in ten minutes.
-
-Even old Gilbot noticed her and, wagging his head sagely, said that
-“good lashes” were “good business.”
-
-But for Dick she had no eyes, not once did she meet his glance, bring
-his liquor, or come within five feet of him.
-
-At first his surprise kept him silent and grave, so that Blueneck
-observed in a whisper to Goody that it was wont to be the lasses and not
-the Captain who were grave when sailing time came, and that times had
-changed, but after a while Dick’s smile grew more and more pronounced
-and he called for rum again and again.
-
-Still Anny took no notice of him. Louder and louder grew her laugh,
-quicker and quicker her retorts, brighter her smile, and more numerous
-her admirers.
-
-Hal looked up from his pewter cleaning and sighed.
-
-“She was never so happy when we were sweethearts,” he muttered.
-
-Only Sue looked at Anny strangely; she was a woman and she knew that
-there was a false note in the girl’s laughter, and that the light in her
-eyes was an almost desperate one. But she was an Islander, and therefore
-another lass’s business was none of hers, and she said nothing to her
-nor to any one else.
-
-At last the Spaniard could bear this lack of notice no longer, and
-raising his voice called pleasantly enough:
-
-“Mistress Anny!”
-
-The girl started, and the tray of mugs which she was carrying rattled
-nervously, but she recovered herself in a second, and smiled radiantly
-at him.
-
-“Will your lordship wait till I put these down?” she said gaily, with
-mock deference.
-
-Dick’s smile grew broader, and Blueneck, who was watching him, whistled
-softly between his teeth and nudged Goody again.
-
-“Not at all,” Dick was saying, his voice very soft and caressing.
-
-Anny put down the tray with a clatter.
-
-“Oh! there now,” she exclaimed brightly, “if I haven’t spilt one half of
-Master French’s sack; I must fill it up. Here, Hal, will ye go to the
-Captain for me while I do this? I know he likes being served quickly.”
-
-Hal went over to him obediently.
-
-The Spaniard’s eyelids flickered and his smile broadened as he ordered
-more rum, planking down a jacobus in payment.
-
-The time went on, and Gilbot and his customers grew more and more
-lively; still Anny avoided the Spaniard, and still he sat on the table
-steadily drinking rum.
-
-Suddenly in the middle of a song Dick looked at the clock, and then
-rising to his feet shouted:
-
-“Get aboard, dogs!”
-
-The singing died away immediately and all eyes were turned on the clock.
-The hands pointed to 8.15.
-
-Then a murmur rose among the crew and one bolder than the rest said
-something about orders being a quarter to nine.
-
-Dick sprang to his feet and his hand played round the hilt of his knife.
-
-“A mutiny?” he asked softly.
-
-Instantly there was a shuffle toward the door and they filed out one by
-one, and Gilbot, his fuddled brain just realizing that the merriment had
-suddenly died down, began to pipe cheerfully:
-
- “_Oh, no one remembers poor Will_
- _Who stuck by hish mate at the mill._”
-
-Dick laughed and took it up, and the crew, glad to find him so easily
-recovered, joined in eagerly and they filed off down the road singing in
-chorus:
-
- “_He ground up more bones_
- _Than barley or stones,_
- _And more than old Rowley could kill._
- _More bones, more bones,_
- _More bones, more bones,_
- _More bones than old Rowley could kill._”
-
-“Ah, well!” said Joe, rising to his feet, as the last man reeled
-drunkenly out of the doorway. “I reckon I’ll be getting down to look to
-my boat.”
-
-The others laughed; it was well known that the smugglers would
-commandeer any rowing-boat that might come their way to take them to the
-brig, and like as not would set it adrift to be carried out to sea.
-
-“I’ll go with ye, lad,” said Granger, and they went out together.
-
-Most of the others followed, leaving only French, Red, and Cip de Musset
-sitting with Gilbot round the fire.
-
-Anny and Sue stood by the door talking together, their backs to the
-Spaniard, while Hal went on cleaning pewter.
-
-Dick swaggered over to French.
-
-“Master French,” he said softly, his beautiful voice very even and
-clear, “hadst thou not better go down to the brig and see to thy goods?”
-
-French looked up, puzzled.
-
-“Goods?” he said wonderingly, and then added as he met the Spaniard’s
-steady gaze, “Oh! ah! maybe I had, maybe I had,” and got up hastily.
-
-Red caught hold of his hand.
-
-“Take me,” he whispered.
-
-French looked down at him and laughed as he stroked his honey-coloured
-beard.
-
-“Come on, then, young ’un,” he said kindly.
-
-Red whooped joyfully, and the big man and the little boy went to the
-door together.
-
-Sue slipped her arm into French’s as he passed her.
-
-“I’ll come a little way with ye, Ezekiel,” she murmured.
-
-French put his arm about her and they went out.
-
-Cip de Musset then rose to his feet.
-
-“Are you coming, Captain?” he said, as he picked up his stick.
-
-Anny caught her breath as she edged round behind the empty table.
-
-Dick smiled sardonically.
-
-“I shall follow,” he said.
-
-Cip looked about him, and then smiled knowingly, and putting on his hat,
-went over to the door and out into the dark.
-
-Black’erchief Dick waited until he had gone and then turned and faced
-Anny, who was watching him, fascinated. She felt that the time had come
-at last when she must shake him off for ever or else go with him.
-
-She had not heard from Nan since Red had taken her message, and she
-remembered the old woman’s promise as the one gleam of hope on her
-horizon, and every moment she expected to see her hobble into the
-kitchen, but it was getting late, and Nan had not come.
-
-Dick walked over to the table behind which she stood and seated himself
-upon it without speaking.
-
-The desperate light crept into the girl’s eyes again and she began to
-laugh. At least she must keep him in as good a temper as possible. She
-realized that. So, dropping a curtsey, she came a little nearer and
-leaning over the table she asked him would he drink again. To her
-surprise he answered her very pleasantly that he would, and ordered rum.
-
-Hal, who was still cleaning pewter, looked up from his work, and watched
-the little scene with a growing sense of despair.
-
-To know that his love was lost to him was bitter enough, he told
-himself, but to see her happy in the Spaniard’s company, to see her
-hang upon the Spaniard’s words, and wait for his smile, was too much; he
-turned away quickly.
-
-When Anny came back with the rum, Dick caught her wrist and held her
-firm with one hand while he raised the tankard to his lips with the
-other.
-
-“Why are you not ready to come with me?” he whispered as he set down the
-empty rumkin.
-
-Anny began to laugh again.
-
-“Lord! how you talk, Captain!” she said, trying to pull her arm from out
-his grasp.
-
-The Spaniard’s grip tightened, and his smile grew more grim.
-
-“Ann, this is not the time to jest,” he said, his voice growing softer
-and more musical at every word. “The brig waits us.”
-
-Anny noticed that his voice was gentle, and began to giggle again.
-
-“Well, Master Dick, let it wait,” she said, tossing her head. “It can
-wait till Doomsday before you’ll see me aboard,” and she broke into a
-little nervous laugh.
-
-To her surprise Dick joined in with her, and his long, low laugh echoed
-through the kitchen.
-
-Hal looked up quickly and then turned away as though the sight had stung
-him, while Gilbot, thinking that it was a signal for general joyfulness,
-began to sing again:
-
- “_Pretty Poll, she loved a sailor,_
- _And well she loved he---- _”
-
-“Peace, damn you, peace,” roared Dick, suddenly gripping Anny’s arm so
-hard that she cried out.
-
-Gilbot sat spellbound. Never had any one so spoken to him in his life
-before, and he was about to reply, but one look at the furious face of
-the little Spaniard calmed him and he subsided, muttering:
-
-“No offensh, no offensh.”
-
-This outburst had surprised Anny quite as much as Gilbot, and she looked
-at Dick with new fear. If only Nan would come, she thought, if only Nan
-would come!
-
-At this moment the door opened and she turned eagerly, her eyes alight
-with hope, but it was Sue who came in softly and sat down quietly by the
-fireside opposite her uncle.
-
-Dick turned his head without letting Anny go, and called for more rum.
-
-Hal brought it, without looking at either of them, and set it on the
-table.
-
-The Spaniard drained it at a gulp.
-
-“So you will not come with me, my beautiful one?” he said, still
-smiling, and leaning across the table toward the girl.
-
-Anny looked at him and her spirits rose; he was only playing with her,
-after all, she thought, as she saw his dark eyes smiling at her.
-
-Yet she wished that Nan would come, although she was still vague in her
-mind as to what she expected the old woman to do when she did come.
-
-“Nay, sir,” she said, smiling, “not this time.”
-
-The Spaniard laughed again.
-
-“Not this time, my Ann? Not this time?” he questioned in an almost
-threatening note, which crept into his laughing tone.
-
-“Here, boy, more rum,” he called over his shoulder.
-
-Hal brought the liquor; the Spaniard drew his knife from his belt and
-held it up by the blade so that the flickering light fell on its
-jewelled hilt.
-
-“‘Tis a fair blade,” he said admiringly.
-
-“Ay, it is,” agreed Anny, as she took the rum from Hal, who nearly cried
-out as he saw her bright, eager face lifted to the foreigner’s.
-
-Dick took the tankard and drained it; then he began to smile again and
-to twist the knife through and about his fingers with that peculiar,
-smooth movement his crew knew so well.
-
-The girl watched him for a second and then looked up at the clock. Why
-had not Nan come, she wondered?
-
-“‘Tis late, Captain, you will miss the tide an you do not hasten,” she
-said.
-
-Dick’s eyelids dropped a little lower over his dark eyes, but his knife
-slipped through his fingers with a faster motion than before. Yet still
-he smiled, and when he spoke Anny thought that she had never heard so
-beautiful a voice.
-
-“Ah! señora, I would not leave the Island without that jewel which is
-mine by right,” he said softly.
-
-“Oh! I had forgot,” said Anny, feeling in her apron pocket, “here is the
-ring, sir, I had it ready for you,” and she drew out a little muslin
-packet, and unfolding it disclosed the flowered ring which he had given
-her. She held it out to him.
-
-Sue, who had been watching them, gasped at the sight of such a jewel,
-and looked at Anny wonderingly.
-
-The girl was over-lucky, she thought.
-
-Dick took the ring and slipped it over the blade of his knife; it slid
-up to the hilt and there stuck, a band of gold and gems round the blue
-steel.
-
-“You give it back to me?” he said, half to himself. “You give it back to
-me? No other woman has done so much,” he added suddenly, looking at her
-with that peculiar smile playing round his lips. Then his voice dropped,
-and he said as though he had just realized something: “But to no other
-woman have I given so much,” and he laughed again, unpleasantly and yet
-so musically--while the knife fairly sped through his slim, delicate
-fingers.
-
-Anny began to feel fairly sure of herself. Why should she wait for Nan
-to defy him, she thought? Here he was, laughing and playing; surely
-there would be no danger in telling him the truth.
-
-She leaned a little nearer to him and said very softly so that none of
-the others could hear:
-
-“I would you would go, sir; you have your ring; what else remains?”
-
-The knife paused for a moment in its unending circle round the thin
-white hand, the dark lids flickered, and the thin twisted smile
-vanished, but only for a second; then the soft voice said smoothly:
-
-“One thing, Ann, my Ann of the Island, one thing remains that must come
-with me; that is my wife.”
-
-Anny began to laugh again nervously, but conquering herself she said
-sharply:
-
-“Pest on ye, sir, will ye never stop teasing a poor girl’s life out? I
-tell you, I hate you, sir.”
-
-Dick laughed softly, and there was a new note in his voice which no one
-could mistake, and Anny drew back a little.
-
-“You said so once before, sweet Ann,” he said, “and I did not believe
-you then, as I do not now.”
-
-Anny felt strangely irritated by his attitude, and bending still closer
-to him, said in a sharp half-whisper:
-
-“Oh! but, sir, you should; a man who woos unloved is a foolish sight in
-my eyes.”
-
-Dick slipped his arm round her waist and held her fast; he was beginning
-to realize that he had at last come up against a will which would not
-bend before his own, and a wave of uncontrollable anger surged over him;
-his smile almost vanished for a moment and the knife quivered in his
-hand.
-
-Anny took his silence as a sign that her words were prevailing with him
-and determined to play her last card.
-
-“I love another one,” she said softly, drawing away from him as she
-spoke.
-
-A ripple of laughter burst from the Spaniard’s lips and he held her
-closer to him.
-
-Hal looked up at the sound with a fierce light in his eyes; he made a
-step forward, but drew back again almost immediately.
-
-“The lass likes it,” he thought mournfully. “The lass likes it.”
-
-Yet he could not keep his eyes off the two.
-
-Anny pointed to the knife, which was hanging before her, and looked into
-the dark smiling face so near her own.
-
-“Put by thy knife, sir,” she said pettishly. “It fears me.”
-
-Once again Dick laughed.
-
-“Nay, ’tis a beautiful thing,” he said, holding it in the palm of his
-hand, the point toward her. “Think you not so?”
-
-The girl shrank away and he bent toward her. “You said you loved
-another, mistress,” he said suddenly, fiercely. “Is it truth?”
-
-Anny smiled at him fearlessly.
-
-“Ay, sir, truth!” she said quietly.
-
-The Spaniard’s smile returned, and the blue knife with the gold band on
-it seemed suddenly to have become part of his hand as with a deft
-movement he laid the bright steel against the girl’s bosom.
-
-Hal and Sue leaned forward to see this new foolery of the Captain’s,
-each thinking that his love-making was a little too open to be decent.
-
-“Oh! my sweet one, how fair my blade looks against thy white breast,”
-said Dick, his eyes holding Anny’s. “You gave me back my ring, but I am
-generous; see, I give it back to you.” With the last words the knife
-seemed suddenly to quicken and spring from his hand, and Anny staggered
-back from the table, her hand clasped to her breast.
-
-“Oh! how you hurt me, sir,” she said simply, the smile still on her lips
-and her cheeks still bright with the excitement of a moment before. Then
-her eyes closed and she dropped on to the floor, the little thud her
-body made on the stone flags echoing all round the kitchen like a
-thunder-clap, and the knife Black’erchief Dick held was red blood up to
-the hilt.
-
-He looked at it dazedly, a horrified expression on his usually
-inscrutable face.
-
-“Dead!” he said hoarsely, his voice sounding old and strained in the
-intense silence. “She is sure to be dead; we have never struck twice,
-but,” his voice sank to a whisper, “at last we have struck too soon.”
-
-He passed his hand over his forehead and gazed fixedly in front of him;
-some of the blood which had spurted off the knife on to his hand now
-smeared his forehead. Save for this, his face was ashy pale--then with
-slow, deliberate steps he walked to the door, opened it, and went out.
-
-For a second the kitchen was in perfect silence, and then a scream as
-high and despairing as a woman’s rang out loud and clear in the suddenly
-cold room, and Hal Grame his boyish face distorted with rage and horror,
-flung himself across the kitchen and out after the Spaniard.
-
-The night was an exceedingly dark one, and Nan Swayle stumbled once or
-twice over the loose stones in her path as she strode over the rough
-track which ran from her shanty to the Ship.
-
-Many strange thoughts came to her as she passed on through the darkness,
-her tall, gaunt figure straining against the wind and her ragged
-garments flying like streamers out behind her.
-
-The bitter memory of her last encounter with Pet Salt still rankled with
-her, and the thought of Anny’s enforced marriage to the Spaniard made
-her hate the other old woman more deeply than before. She had sworn to
-Anny that she would prevent her sailing with Dick, and it was to fulfil
-this promise that she was striding through the night.
-
-To prevent Dick from carrying off Anny!
-
-Nan had thought over her self-allotted task very carefully, and to her
-there seemed but one way to accomplish it. She had decided to take that
-way. And as she hastened on, her thin brown fingers gripped her long
-staff fiercely and from time to time she stopped to feel the heavy round
-stone which was bound to the top of it, making a once-harmless
-walking-stick a formidable weapon.
-
-On she went, her head held high, and her sharp eyes fixed ahead as if
-she were seeking to pierce the blackness which closed in all around her.
-
-“They do not sail till eleven,” she muttered, “and she would not go at
-once. I shall be in time to catch them as they come out of the yard.
-Ay, that is it, as they come out of the yard; it is dark there,” and,
-mumbling to herself, she clambered through a gap in the hedge and
-stumbled out into the Ship lane.
-
-She had now a very little way to go, and her grip on her staff tightened
-as she hurried on.
-
-A sharp bend in the road brought her in sight of the Ship. She could see
-the lights from the kitchen gleaming through the trees. She pressed on
-for a few more yards and then stopped suddenly and, holding her breath,
-stood rigid for a second, listening.
-
-There was silence everywhere and the old woman shifted uneasily.
-
-“No noise?” she muttered. “No noise? What has come to the Ship on
-sailing night that all should be so still?”
-
-Keeping her eyes fixed on the lighted window, she hastened on to the
-yard gates. There she paused again. The Ship was silent as before, and
-then, as she stood there watching, the door opened and a slim figure
-stood silhouetted against the bright background for a second and then
-staggered out toward her.
-
-Without further thought Nan strode forward, her staff upraised.
-
-Hardly had she moved, however, when Hal’s terrible scream rang out
-through the open doorway.
-
-The old woman sprang forward, a faint inkling of what had happened
-flashing through her mind.
-
-Dick did not see her until she was almost on top of him. He came across
-the yard dazed and horrified, conscious of one thing only--that in a fit
-of rage he had killed the one woman he had ever loved.
-
-The knife, still sticky and uncleaned, hung from his fingers, and the
-light from the window fell upon it as Nan came up to him.
-
-When he saw her dark form and shining eyes rising up before him out of
-the darkness, he started back, bringing his hands up before his face.
-
-Nan seized her opportunity and without a thought of the possible
-consequences dropped her staff and darting forward wrenched the knife
-out of his nerveless grasp and plunged at his throat.
-
-Nan was a strong woman, and the knife, glancing on the Spaniard’s
-collar-bone, turned and slipped down into his neck, cutting the jugular
-vein.
-
-A choking exclamation, “Doña Maria,” fell from his lips, a rush of blood
-stifled all other words, and he dropped on the dry stones as dead as the
-girl he had left in the Ship’s kitchen.
-
-Nan heard them and laughed bitterly.
-
-“Maria!” she muttered. “You may well call on her. Here, this is thine;
-take that with thee to hell, you slithering coward,” and bending down
-she slipped the twice-stained knife into the slim white fingers.
-
-Then she straightened her back and looking up, became aware of Hal
-Grame’s tall figure standing not two feet away, his eyes fixed upon her.
-
-They stood quite still for several seconds, neither speaking, and then
-Gilbot hurried out of the door. The shock had sobered him for once in
-his life.
-
-Seeing Hal, he broke out excitedly:
-
-“Have you seen him, lad? Have you caught him? Where is the ruffian?”
-
-Still Hal did not speak, but catching the old man by the arm he pointed
-silently to the still figure at their feet; the stream of light from the
-open doorway fell across the Spaniard’s face and the white hand which
-held the knife.
-
-Gilbot bent down for a moment, and when he looked up his face was even
-paler than the boy’s.
-
-“Who?---- What--what happened?” he whispered.
-
-Hal looked silently at Nan.
-
-The old woman faced him without flinching.
-
-“As I come up the road, I see him come out o’ the door waving his arms,
-and then suddenly drop like a sack; when I come up to him he was like
-this,” she said. “He killed hisself, I reckon,” she added carelessly.
-
-Old Gilbot looked down at the huddled form.
-
-“Twas just what I feared when I come to the door,” he muttered. “Lord!
-what things men do because o’ wenches--and in my house, too! What’s to
-happen now?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-
-Ten minutes later, Joe Pullen, who stood on the beach watching the
-_Anny’s_ red lantern swing to and fro in the sharp breeze, was startled
-by the sudden appearance of Hal at his elbow. The boy’s face showed
-livid in the faint light, and his eyes seemed to have turned dead and
-dull like those of a corpse. When he spoke, his voice was strangely high
-and uncontrolled.
-
-“Where’s Blueneck?” he said nervously, clutching the other man’s arm.
-
-Joe jerked his thumb over his shoulder to where a little group of men
-could just be distinguished in the darkness.
-
-Hal gasped with relief and turned to go to them, still keeping his hold
-on Joe’s arm.
-
-The elder man suffered himself to be dragged after the boy without a
-murmur. He saw that something had happened but, until Hal volunteered
-the information, he was not the one to enquire for it.
-
-Hal pushed unceremoniously through the little crowd, still pulling Joe
-behind him.
-
-“Master Blueneck, will ye come up to the Ship at once?” he said, tapping
-the Spanish sailor on the shoulder and speaking in a whisper. Something
-in his tone caused the man to back away from his fellows, and step aside
-with the boy, and after a few muttered words of conversation the three
-set off up the lane at a brisk run.
-
-A few seconds later they turned into the Ship yard; the door was still
-open, and a bright light shone from within the kitchen while all around
-was dark and very silent.
-
-Running all round the paved yard, which was long and very narrow, was a
-wider one of beaten earth, and, as the three men turned into the gate,
-they could just make out the form of a tall woman standing well on their
-left. She was digging.
-
-Old Gilbot met them in the doorway; he was very excited but quite sober.
-
-On seeing Blueneck, he seized him by the arm and dragged him into the
-room.
-
-Joe and Hal followed slowly.
-
-Inside the kitchen everything seemed dead and quiet; the atmosphere was
-cold and damp and smelt of stale rum; the fire had died down to a few
-smouldering embers, and the steady ticking of the clock was the only
-sound.
-
-Sue crouched in a corner shivering, her eyes wild with horror, and her
-teeth chattering. The two long tables had been dragged together, and on
-this rough bier Dick and Anny lay side by side, the knife between them.
-
-There had not been time to wash the tables even, had any one desired to
-do so, and the two lay among the dregs and sloppings of the night’s
-drinking.
-
-Blueneck walked across the kitchen and stood looking down at the bodies
-without uncovering.
-
-Gilbot followed nervously.
-
-“What are you going to do?” he whispered anxiously.
-
-The sailor said nothing for a moment or two but continued to stare down
-at the limp, blood-stained figure whose white fingers held the thin red
-knife.
-
-Gilbot stood trembling behind him, a picture of a wild crowd of
-captainless seamen sacking his inn rising up in his mind.
-
-A strange light began to break over the Spanish sailor’s face, and he
-stroked his ill-shaven chin thoughtfully.
-
-“Do?” he said slowly.
-
-Gilbot swallowed painfully, his fat, podgy knees shaking under him and
-his little reddened eyes shifting uneasily.
-
-“He killed hisself,” he muttered.
-
-Blueneck bent over the table for a second and with his finger and thumb
-lifted one of the dark eyelids. He appeared satisfied, and straightening
-his back looked at the two critically.
-
-“I knew it wasn’t no usual affair with him,” he said almost
-complacently. Then he turned to Gilbot. “She was a pretty wench,” he
-said, nodding at the little, white, still smiling face on the table.
-
-Gilbot did not speak, and the man went on: “I never thought he’d do for
-himself, though,” he muttered, “but it’s his stroke right enough,
-see”--he dragged the lace ruffles from the small gushing wound, “right
-over the collar-bone and down to the neck--he was a wonder with that
-knife of his; there wasn’t another man in the country who could try that
-stroke on himself and hit so clean.”
-
-Gilbot nodded.
-
-“Ay, he was a wonderful little fellow,” he said, “though I never took
-much notice of him. But what are you going to do, sir?”
-
-Blueneck faced the three men steadily, a smile breaking out on his lips.
-
-“Put to sea!” he said deliberately. “The men are a mangy lot, God knows,
-but if they’d sail under him they’ll sail under me, and be glad of the
-change.”
-
-He paused, and Gilbot heaved a sigh of relief, and Blueneck, seeing that
-his decision was approved of, added: “And if ever I come near this
-accursed, God-forsaken island again the devil scuttle my brig and carry
-off my canvas,” and so saying he turned on his heel and strode to the
-door. “Good-night, good people,” he said, turning on the threshold.
-
-Hal stepped forward and took the little knife from out the fingers that
-were still warm.
-
-“Will you take this?” he said, holding it out to the sailor. “It served
-him well and may you.”
-
-Blueneck drew back.
-
-“Nay!” he said hastily, “I’ll have none of it, and, mark my words, lad,
-you put it down; the thing is evil. The man there was harmless enough
-without it, but together, by God, they were devils. Put it down. Fare
-you well, my masters,” he added, and went out.
-
-They heard his footsteps die away down the road before any one spoke;
-then Gilbot wiped his beaded forehead and turned to the two friends.
-
-“You must get them out of here; get them buried,” he said jerkily,
-pointing to the table. “Sink them in the mud,” he added, an idea coming
-to him.
-
-Hal sprang suddenly forward, a light in his dulled eyes and his mouth
-half open--but his words died on his lips, for at that moment Nan
-Swayle, spade in hand, appeared in the open doorway.
-
-“It is done,” she said, her big booming voice sounding strangely hollow
-in the silent room. “Susan, are you ready? Come help me.”
-
-The frightened girl crept out of her corner and went toward the table;
-the old woman followed.
-
-Gilbot put his hand on her arm.
-
-“What are you doing, woman?” he said.
-
-“Burying my gran’daughter,” replied Nan laconically.
-
-“Not in my land,” said the old man quickly. “I’ll have no graves in my
-land.”
-
-Mother Swayle turned and looked at him steadily.
-
-“The lass shall be buried in good Island earth, near the only home she
-ever had,” she said determinedly, “and the grave is dug, and, thy land
-or no, Master Gilbot, there she shall lie.”
-
-The man hesitated for a moment, but little by little his wavering eyes
-dropped before Nan’s bright ones, and shrugging his shoulders he drew
-back to let her pass.
-
-Hal, who had stood motionless watching them, now stepped forward.
-
-“I--I’ll carry her for you, Mother,” he said without looking up.
-
-Nan stared contemptuously at him for a moment, her bright eyes growing
-suddenly hard.
-
-“Had you carried her off ere now all had been well,” she said abruptly.
-
-The boy winced, and something like a sob escaped him, but he turned and
-faced the old woman dry-eyed.
-
-“May I take her?” he said again.
-
-Nan made a gesture of impatience.
-
-“Ay, take her, take her, boy, take her,” she said bitterly. “None of
-your carelessness can hurt her now.”
-
-Joe, who had been watching the whole proceedings, now came forward and
-caught the old woman’s sleeve, and drew her away, then whispered:
-
-“The lad is wonderful over-wrought, witch; leave taunting him.”
-
-Nan looked at him fiercely, but she drew back, and the boy, stepping
-past her, picked up the light cold form of his love and, holding her in
-his arms, her blood-stained corsage pressed against his breast and her
-pretty head with its long black plaits lolling heavily on his shoulder,
-carried her quickly out of the room.
-
-Sue began to cry softly, and Nan stood leaning on her spade and looking
-down into the fast whitening embers in the open grate.
-
-In two or three minutes Hal came back; he was very pale and there was
-blood upon his hands and clothes. “I have left her to you, Mother,” he
-said rather unsteadily as he stood in the doorway looking across at the
-old woman.
-
-Nan turned from the fire without a word, and beckoning to Sue, who
-followed her, still weeping, she went out and shut the door behind her.
-
-Gilbot looked after her.
-
-“‘Tis a wonderful strange woman she is,” he said thoughtfully, “talking
-about granddaughters and such like, and her never having had a child.”
-
-He shook his head and then turned to the table. “We must get him out of
-here,” he said, suddenly growing nervous again, as he looked at the dead
-Spaniard.
-
-“Here, Hal, Joe, take him down to the mud. It will do the old place no
-good if folk get to know he’s lying here,” and he began to drag the limp
-mass on to the floor.
-
-Joe looked up at the clock.
-
-“Half-past twelve,” he said thoughtfully. “‘Twill be full dawn at five.”
-
-Then he turned to Hal.
-
-“In four hours I’ll risk going out with him, lad,” he said. “Will you
-wait till then?”
-
-Hal nodded.
-
-Gilbot looked up.
-
-“I had forgot,” he said. “I had forgot; it is a long time since I went
-out on the mud--ah, well! Hal, bring me some rum.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The sky was a pale gray in which two or three late stars still shone
-faintly, and there was a sharp twang of frost in the air, when two men,
-carrying the body of a third between them, four great weights slung over
-their shoulders, stumbled out of the old Ship’s kitchen, leaving behind
-them a girl asleep by the empty grate and an old man lying drunk
-upstairs.
-
-As they came out into the yard they both turned instinctively to a patch
-of newly disturbed earth on their right from the side of which rose a
-dark figure, who glided off into the grayness beyond.
-
-The shorter of the two men spoke gruffly.
-
-“The witch was fond enough of the lass,” he said. “I wonder she didn’t
-do more to save her.”
-
-The other answered him bitterly:
-
-“It wasn’t her place, Joe. ’Twas mine. And I did naught. God knows I--I
-thought she loved him,” he added, giving the slim little figure whose
-shoulders he held a violent shake.
-
-Pullen shook his head, and a drop of pure sentiment crept into his
-bright blue eyes.
-
-“‘Tis a wonderful pity,” he said slowly, “a wonderful pity--poor little
-lass--and him, too--he must have loved her, or he’d never have killed
-hisself.”
-
-The memory of Nan’s upstretched arm and fierce blow came clearly to Hal,
-and he opened his mouth to speak, but thought better of it, and they
-trudged on in silence.
-
-The mud looked very black, cold, and sinister when they at last reached
-the shore; the tide was well out, and the sea seemed a full mile the
-other side of the soft greenish belt.
-
-Joe dropped the Spaniard’s feet and stood staring in front of him for a
-moment; then he stooped down and lifted them again.
-
-“It’s a bit farther up,” he said shortly, and they went on.
-
-Presently he stopped again.
-
-“Here we are,” he remarked, as he sat down on the shingle, and, taking
-off his back a pair of boards specially cut for the purpose, he
-proceeded to tie them on to his feet.
-
-Hal did the like, and the two set out over the black, evil-smelling
-ooze.
-
-The boards prevented them from sinking more than a few inches at each
-step, but it was not easy going, for the limp body of the Spaniard,
-although not heavy, was yet not light.
-
-The two slipped often, sometimes almost falling.
-
-After some fifteen minutes of this Joe paused.
-
-“This’ll do,” he said, nodding to a circular patch of smooth grayish mud
-which lay just in front of them.
-
-Hal looked at it and at the white face of the Spaniard; then he
-shuddered.
-
-“It’s horrible,” he said.
-
-Joe grunted.
-
-“Give us them weights, lad,” he demanded, holding out his hand.
-
-Hal slung them over.
-
-Hastily, and with perfect calmness, Joe tied them to the Spaniard’s
-feet. He had to bend nearly double to do this, as to kneel with the
-boards on was impossible, and he straightened his back with some relief
-on finishing.
-
-“That’s enough; now in with him,” he said briskly, wiping his hands on
-his jersey. Then his eyes fell on the silver buttons on the black velvet
-coat and the rings on the white hands, and he pulled out his knife.
-
-“‘Twould be a pity to leave him these,” he said practically, bending
-down again.
-
-“Let be, Joe Pullen,” Hal’s voice rang out clear over the wind-swept
-flats. “We’ll have naught of his. Let the devil keep his own.” He drew
-from his belt the thin two-edged knife, now brown and clotted with dry
-blood, round which was still the flower-ring, and threw it into the
-centre of the gray circle. It sank almost immediately.
-
-Pullen watched him.
-
-“Ay, maybe the knife, but not the buttons; there’s no evil in them.”
-
-Hal shook his head.
-
-“Nay,” he said determinedly, “evil in everything he touched, everything
-he owned--sink it deep, Joe, sink it deep.”
-
-Pullen sighed and shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Maybe you’re right, lad,” he said, “maybe you’re right,” and added
-cheerfully, “and I don’t know who’d buy them, anyway. Come, then, heave
-him in.”
-
-Hal bent down and together they lifted the once so gallant little
-figure, still clad in all its bravery, and dropped it gently into the
-gray patch; the weights hit the mud first and sank quickly out of sight,
-dragging the silk-stockinged feet with them; the ooze clicked and
-chuckled to itself as it sucked down its prey. Farther and farther in
-sank the body of the great little captain, who twelve hours before was
-so gay, so sure of himself, so debonair.
-
-The dawn breeze came stealing across the sea, and a sea-gull screamed
-lazily near by, while a faint yellow light began to glow over the
-mainland the other side of the bay. Now the mud had reached the
-Spaniard’s breast; his head, still bound with his famous black kerchief,
-had fallen forward and his limp arms lay loosely on the soft slime.
-
-Joe looked at him critically.
-
-“I wonder now has he struck the hard?” he said thoughtfully, and leaning
-forward he put his foot on the black-coated shoulder and pushed
-vigorously. The mud sucked noisily and the body vanished rapidly. Now
-only the head and one arm were visible. Now the head was gone. The dark
-eyes, the terrible crooked smile, the white flashing teeth--the cold
-silent mud had them all. Now only a hand was left; it lay for a second
-on the gray background, white and shapely, and then it, too, vanished,
-leaving the gray circle as quiet and untroubled as before.
-
-Joe turned away.
-
-“Come,” he said slowly, “it’s all over now.”
-
-Hal looked up.
-
-“Ay,” he said, and his voice was heavy and toneless. “It is all
-over--Joe, all over in one night. Come.”
-
-And they toiled, slipped, and struggled back to their homes again.
-
-The yellow light over the mainland grew brighter and brighter, turned to
-gold, and then to crimson, and the sun rose once more over an Island as
-quiet and peaceful as if the Spaniard and his love had never been.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-
-One evening two or three years later, Big French and Sue, his wife,
-their young daughter, and little Red Farran, whom they had taken to live
-with them, sat round the fire in the Ship kitchen.
-
-Gilbot was dead. It was said in the village that he had died singing
-“Pretty Poll,” and he had left the old Inn to Hal Grame, who proved
-himself a very able landlord. He had grown very taciturn, however, since
-the affair of the Spaniard and the girl, which had by this time been
-almost forgotten by the easy-going Islanders, and he had taken to
-tobacco, with which Fen de Witt was well able to supply him at a cheap
-rate, and he sat now in a haze of smoke on the opposite side of the
-fireplace to French, his pipe in his mouth and his head thrown back as
-though in earnest contemplation of the rafters.
-
-Joe sat at his elbow drinking ale; they two were as friendly as ever,
-but Pullen had been known to aver that no word of Anny or the Spaniard
-had been exchanged between them since that cold September morning long
-ago when black mud had swallowed the last trace of the affair.
-
-It was late and all the other company had gone; the dips were beginning
-to die out one by one, and tall shadows began to creep over the
-oak-beamed ceiling and dark, rum-fumed walls.
-
-Presently French rose to his feet.
-
-“Ah, well,” he said, “I reckon we’ll go home, Sue. Good rest to you,
-Hal.”
-
-The landlord nodded.
-
-“Same to you, Master French, and you, too, mistress,” he said, without
-taking his pipe out of his mouth.
-
-Sue smiled and picked up her baby who was crawling on the long seat
-beside her.
-
-“Good-night, Hal,” she said, and then added, looking round the room
-affectionately: “It’s almost like the old days to be all here together
-again.”
-
-“All?” murmured Hal bitterly.
-
-Sue did not hear him but went on gaily.
-
-“Yet I would not change,” she said. “These days are happier, I with my
-man and my little one.”
-
-Hal winced, and French, who was watching, put an arm affectionately
-round his wife’s shoulders.
-
-“Come, lass, we stay too long a-talking,” he said, gently drawing her to
-him.
-
-Sue looked up at him, a smile on her lips. She was very proud of her
-handsome husband, and they went out together, little Red following, his
-hand clutching French’s big coat skirts.
-
-After they had gone there was silence in the room for a second or two,
-while Pullen helped himself to more ale from a pitcher at his elbow.
-
-Hal stared into the blazing fire.
-
-“Like the old days?” he said at last, half to himself. “Like the old
-days? My God!”
-
-Joe put down his tankard and wiped his lips.
-
-“I reckon I’ll be going home to Amy--damn her,” he said, getting up.
-
-Hal looked up, frowning.
-
-“Must ye so, mate?” he said wistfully.
-
-“No, no, er--no, lad, no need,” and Joe sat down again and re-filled his
-pot.
-
-The silence continued.
-
-Suddenly Hal rose and, standing on tiptoe, reached down one of the old
-cups on the high mantel shelf, and emptied its contents into his hand.
-
-Joe heard the clink of coins and looked up.
-
-His friend was leaning against the chimney-piece, his face half hidden,
-and in his hand which he held open before him were two little coins.
-
-Presently the younger man turned away from the fire and held out his
-hand to Pullen.
-
-“Do you remember these, mate?” he said rather abruptly.
-
-Joe looked at the money curiously.
-
-“Groats?” he said. “Well, now, I can’t say as I do, but----” He broke
-off suddenly. “That day we’d bin after fish?” he enquired.
-
-Hal nodded.
-
-Joe looked at him in astonishment.
-
-“Why, lad, you don’t go thinking o’ that now, surely?” he said.
-
-Hal clinked the coins together and looked round the kitchen ruefully.
-“I couldn’t give her aught then--but now--if only----” His voice trailed
-off and ceased.
-
-Joe shifted uneasily in his seat.
-
-“Don’t think on it, lad, don’t think on it,” he advised.
-
-Hal laughed bitterly.
-
-“You know not what you say, Joe Pullen,” he said, “I must think on it.
-’Tis all I have to think on,” and he puffed at his pipe almost fiercely.
-
-Joe did not speak, and after a while the other went on again; he spoke
-jerkily, and his voice was very low:
-
-“Sometimes I think I see her come in crying and him after her. That’s
-when I try to forget, but it’s no use, I can’t; she loved him, I reckon;
-I can’t forget that.”
-
-Joe cleared his throat noisily.
-
-“Why trouble yourself, lad?” he muttered. “She’s gone and he with her,
-and you’re here----”
-
-“More’s the pity,” interrupted the other. “I have naught to make me want
-to stay.”
-
-Joe leaned back and crossed his legs.
-
-“Oh! I don’t know,” he said, “there’s the Ship; she’s your
-love--after--after Anny.”
-
-Hal looked up quickly.
-
-“The Ship?” he repeated slowly. “The Ship my love after Anny? Ay, maybe
-you’re right, mate, maybe you’re right; I had forgot her--ay, the Ship.”
-A slow smile spread over his face and he forgot to smoke.
-
-“My love after Anny,” he kept repeating softly. “My love after Anny.”
-
-And after Joe had gone home he sat long, looking into the fire, the slow
-smile still on his lips, but later still, when his eyes fell again on
-the two groats, he picked them up tenderly and put them back in the
-cracked cup upon the mantel-shelf, and then after carefully bolting the
-door he took his candle and went up to bed.
-
-On their way home Big French and Sue had to pass Nan Swayle’s cabin,
-and, as they came toward it, Red noticed the red baleful eyes of Ben,
-the old tom-cat, peering at them from behind the shed.
-
-“Nan’s at home,” he said, hugging French’s hand. “And Ben’s bin whip’t.”
-
-The big man looked across at the lonely shanty.
-
-“God be wi’ ye, Nan,” he shouted; his voice resounded over the silent
-marshes and echoed round about the hut, but there was no reply.
-
-French went nearer and knocked at the door.
-
-“Are ye well, Nan?” he called.
-
-Nan’s big booming voice replied, and her usual greetings rang out
-through the door:
-
-“Ay, God be wi’ ye, good swine.”
-
-French laughed and they went on, and as they crossed the dark saltings
-to their home they heard her hail, expressing approval and friendliness,
-following them over the flats, loud, then soft, and finally trailing off
-into a long-drawn-out wail:
-
-“Rum, rum, rum--m--m.”
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Black'erchief Dick, by Margery Allingham
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLACK'ERCHIEF DICK ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62304-0.txt or 62304-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/3/0/62304/
-
-Produced by Chuck Greif, MWS and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-http://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at http://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit http://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/62304-0.zip b/old/62304-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index f52d369..0000000
--- a/old/62304-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62304-h.zip b/old/62304-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index db2553e..0000000
--- a/old/62304-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62304-h/62304-h.htm b/old/62304-h/62304-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 16a41b4..0000000
--- a/old/62304-h/62304-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10294 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en" xml:lang="en">
- <head> <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
-<title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of Black’erchief Dick, by Margery Allingham.
-</title>
-<style type="text/css">
- p {margin-top:.2em;text-align:justify;margin-bottom:.2em;text-indent:4%;}
-
-.c {text-align:center;text-indent:0%;}
-
-.cb {text-align:center;text-indent:0%;font-weight:bold;}
-
-.lftspc {margin-left:.25em;}
-
-.letra {font-size:275%;float:left;margin-top:-1.25%;}
- @media print, handheld
- { .letra
- {font-size:250%;padding:0%;}
- }
-
-.nind {text-indent:0%;}
-
-.r {text-align:right;margin-right: 5%;}
-
-small {font-size: 70%;}
-
-big {font-size: 130%;}
-
- h1 {margin-top:5%;text-align:center;clear:both;
-font-weight:400;color:#DA8150;}
-
- h2 {margin-top:4%;margin-bottom:2%;text-align:center;clear:both;
- font-size:110%;font-weight:normal;}
-
- hr {width:90%;margin:2em auto 2em auto;clear:both;color:black;}
-
- hr.full {width: 60%;margin:2% auto 2% auto;border-top:1px solid black;
-padding:.1em;border-bottom:1px solid black;border-left:none;border-right:none;}
-
- table {margin:2em auto 1em auto;border:4px double gray;max-width:50%;text-align:center;padding:.2em;font-variant:small-caps;font-size:100%;}
-
- body{margin-left:4%;margin-right:6%;background:#ffffff;color:black;font-family:"Times New Roman", serif;font-size:medium;}
-
-a:link {background-color:#ffffff;color:blue;text-decoration:none;}
-
- link {background-color:#ffffff;color:blue;text-decoration:none;}
-
-a:visited {background-color:#ffffff;color:purple;text-decoration:none;}
-
-a:hover {background-color:#ffffff;color:#FF0000;text-decoration:underline;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant:small-caps;font-size:100%;}
-
- img {border:none;}
-
-.blockquot {margin-top:2%;margin-bottom:2%;
-font-size:85%;}
-
-.blockquot1 {margin:2em 8em;}
-
-.bboxx {border:double 6px black;
-margin:3em auto 2em auto;
-max-width:30em;}
-
-div.poetry {text-align:center;}
-div.poem {font-size:90%;margin:auto auto;text-indent:0%;
-display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poem .stanza {margin-top: 1em;margin-bottom:1em;}
-.poem span.i0 {display: block; margin-left: 0em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i1 {display: block; margin-left: .45em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-.poem span.i2 {display: block; margin-left: 1em; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em;}
-
-.pagenum {font-style:normal;position:absolute;
-left:95%;font-size:55%;text-align:right;color:gray;
-background-color:#ffffff;font-variant:normal;font-style:normal;font-weight:normal;text-decoration:none;text-indent:0em;}
-@media print, handheld
-{.pagenum
- {display: none;}
- }
-</style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Black'erchief Dick, by Margery Allingham
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-
-Title: Black'erchief Dick
-
-Author: Margery Allingham
-
-Commentator: William McFee
-
-Release Date: June 2, 2020 [EBook #62304]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLACK'ERCHIEF DICK ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Chuck Greif, MWS and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<div class="c">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td><a href="#INTRODUCTION">Introduction</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td><a href="#CHAPTER_I">Black’erchief Dick</a><br />
-<a href="#CHAPTER_I">Chapter: I, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_II"> II, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_III"> III, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_IV"> IV, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_V"> V, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_VI"> VI, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_VII"> VII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_VIII"> VIII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_IX"> IX, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_X"> X, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XI"> XI, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XII"> XII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XIII"> XIII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XIV"> XIV, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XV"> XV, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XVI"> XVI, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XVII"> XVII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII"> XVIII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XIX"> XIX, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XX"> XX, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXI"> XXI, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXII"> XXII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII"> XXIII, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV"> XXIV, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXV"> XXV, </a>
-<a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI"> XXVI.</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_i" id="page_i">{i}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_ii" id="page_ii">{ii}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_iii" id="page_iii">{iii}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p class="c">BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK</p>
-
-<div class="bboxx">
-<h1>
-BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK</h1>
-
-<p class="cb">BY<br />
-MARGERY ALLINGHAM<br />
-<br /><small>
-WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY</small><br />
-WILLIAM McFEE<br />
-<br />
-<img src="images/colophon.jpg"
-width="100"
-alt=""
-/><br />
-<br />
-<br /><small>
-GARDEN CITY <span style="margin-left: 4em;">NEW YORK</span></small><br />
-DOUBLEDAY, PAGE &amp; COMPANY<br />
-1923<br />
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_iv" id="page_iv">{iv}</a></span><br />
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c"><small>
-COPYRIGHT, 1923, BY<br />
-MARGERY ALLINGHAM<br />
-ALL RIGHTS RESERVED, INCLUDING THAT OF TRANSLATION<br />
-INTO FOREIGN LANGUAGES, INCLUDING THE SCANDINAVIAN<br />
-<br />
-PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES<br />
-AT<br />
-THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS, GARDEN CITY, N. Y.<br />
-<br />
-<i>First Edition</i><br /></small></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_v" id="page_v">{v}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p class="c"><big>
-DEDICATED<br />
-TO<br />
-H A L &nbsp; G R A M E</big><br />
-</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot1"><p class="nind">IN THE HOPE THAT HE WILL BE SATISFIED THAT I HAVE DONE MY BEST TO
-FULFIL THE PROMISE I MADE TO HIM TO TELL THE STORY OF ANNY AND TO
-“TELL TRUE”</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_vi" id="page_vi">{vi}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_vii" id="page_vii">{vii}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<h2><a name="INTRODUCTION" id="INTRODUCTION"></a>INTRODUCTION</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">I</span>N THE sense of requiring elucidation or apology, this novel needs no
-introduction. The young lady who wrote it about two years ago, when she
-was eighteen, has already abandoned this work to publishers and other
-grown-ups, and with admirable professional good sense, is working upon
-fresh enterprises.</p>
-
-<p>In this, indeed, she is a genuine artist. Nothing is more clear from her
-correspondence with the writer of this introduction, than that she is,
-without ever becoming conscious of the fact, a genuine artist. Speaking
-of the intellectuals who occasionally impinge upon the family circle she
-says: “They have a horrid habit of&mdash;&mdash; oh, I can’t spell it, but it
-means pulling their minds to pieces and finding out how they are made,
-and they do that with their emotions, too.”</p>
-
-<p>Nothing of the sort is to be found in this tale of eastern England
-during the Restoration. And yet, while we may accept the unusual
-spectacle of a modern schoolgirl writing a red-blooded adventure story
-and privately poking fun at psychoanalysts and their dupes, we are
-justified in a certain curiosity as to the genesis of such a book. That
-curiosity the introduction is designed to assuage.</p>
-
-<p>Margery Allingham, whom the writer first met at<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_viii" id="page_viii">{viii}</a></span> the early age of two,
-comes of literary stock. Her grandparents were publishers in the days
-before the big combinations made an independent weekly paper a hopeless
-hazard. Her parents are journalists and writers of fiction. The business
-aspects of literature, the philosophy of art, and the technical problems
-of serial fiction have been commonplaces of the domestic atmosphere
-which the future novelist breathed during her childhood. It was as
-natural for Margery to sit down and “write a story” as for a
-shopkeeper’s child to play at keeping a shop. It was inevitable also
-that she should start a magazine. I remember it well. It was called <i>The
-Wag-tail</i>, and the founder was about eight years old. I was foreign
-correspondent, a rank imposed because of my being on a ship and so
-bringing news of distant shores. Margery herself, however, was mainly
-responsible for the publication. It was written in a penny exercise
-book, and editorial, short-story, serial, answers to correspondents and
-advertisements were entirely by the founder. Our collaboration on this
-long-defunct organ laid the foundation of an enduring friendship. When
-she was eleven, Margery was graciously pleased to accept the dedication
-of one of my novels, in the spirit in which it was offered. It was a
-gesture neither of condescension nor of derision, but rather a sincere
-and, let us hope, successful attempt on the part of a man a good way up
-the hill to give a friendly and affectionate signal to a child already
-breasting the lower reaches.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_ix" id="page_ix">{ix}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And as the years followed one another in that peculiar progression which
-is neither arithmetical nor geometrical, but rather telescopic, whereby
-the young close up upon us and make us uneasily aware of our own
-slothful deficiencies, it became increasingly evident that in spite of
-the secret discouragement of wise parents, who did their best to hold
-themselves up as Awful Warnings, Margery Allingham would sooner or later
-express herself in one of the arts. Which art she would choose seemed
-equally certain until the family circle learned that she proposed to “go
-in” for elocution.</p>
-
-<p>The present writer, hearing of this in foreign parts, was at first
-nonplussed. With the lack of intelligence that seems to distinguish so
-many grown-up males, he feared there would be “dirty work at the
-cross-roads” when his lady friend discovered the real nature of a
-theatrical career. He might have saved himself the trouble. The lady
-friend, gleefully reporting progress, was evidently too preoccupied with
-the spectacle of grown-ups in action to bother about the future at all.
-She regarded elocution as a means rather than an end. It was perfectly
-natural for her, when she failed to find pieces suitable for recitation,
-to write them herself. It was a simple step, it appears, when the class
-at the Polytechnic sought for a play in which to reveal their virtuosity
-to friends and parents, for Margery Allingham to write that play, to
-stage-manage it, to design the costumes, and to assume the principal
-rôle herself.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_x" id="page_x">{x}</a></span> It was, in short, the little old <i>Wag-tail</i> magazine upon
-a somewhat larger scale. One might be pardoned for supposing that the
-advice of a large and talented family circle would be invoked on behalf
-of a favourite daughter. On the contrary, they are pictured in many
-letters as standing around in helpless admiration while a
-seventeen-year-old maiden carries through her plans with the precision
-of an experienced and ruthless impresario. The play, a blank-verse
-tragedy entitled “Dido, Queen of Carthage”, is rehearsed and ultimately
-performed with such astonishing success that additional performances
-have to be scheduled and the public permitted to pay for admission.</p>
-
-<p>All this, even though it included illustrated interviews in the London
-press, was regarded by the chief protagonist as the inept reaction of
-grown-ups to a very ordinary achievement of modern youth. For it should
-be borne in mind that modern youth, while it is not particularly
-impressed with the performances or the philosophies of the preceding
-generation, is perfectly willing to abide by the rules of the economic
-game. The activities enumerated above were by no means the spectacular
-antics of a pampered parasite. Money was being earned in a highly
-diverting fashion. It appears that not only are films adapted from
-books, but books and stories are redistilled back from the films. Should
-money be necessary for scenery or costumes, it was Margery Allingham’s
-habit to witness a few pictures, trans<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xi" id="page_xi">{xi}</a></span>mute them into fiction and send
-them to the weekly journals that publish such stories. The picture
-evoked by a series of engaging letters written over the past three years
-is that of a shrewd and competent being from another world struggling
-with the stupidities and prejudices of a crowd of tottering half-wits
-upon the verge of dissolution. Youth seems to be having a tough time of
-it in England, as well as in America. There is nothing new about this,
-according to our novelist. “The modern girl is simply Miss 1840 without
-her petticoats,” is her definition, based on an attentive study of Jane
-Austen’s heroines. The trouble lies, not with youth, but with middle
-age, whose intellect tends to ossify more rapidly than of yore. It is an
-interesting theory, though evidently not designed to placate either
-publishers or the writers of introductions.</p>
-
-<p>To come to grips with the question of the origin of this particular
-novel, however, is a delicate matter. We find ourselves on enchanted
-ground. When a young lady of eighteen writes a novel in four months and
-calmly asserts that the story came to her out of the air, as it were,
-communicated by so-called automatic writing, the average grown-up
-hesitates. He has a foolish predilection for sober realities, and is
-reluctant to admit familiar spirits, as it were, to the family circle.
-Modern youth, dragging her family after her, calls up the ghosts of
-departed rapscallions, witches, and serving-wenches, and forthwith sits
-down to fashion a stirring tale.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xii" id="page_xii">{xii}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The novel, then, is a story within a story. The latter has for me a
-peculiar fascination. Knowing the characters who sat round that table in
-the house on Mersea Island, knowing the Island itself and the
-surrounding fenland, I wanted to write a story about them. I have
-repressed this desire, contenting myself with recounting to occasional
-groups of friends the amazing facts. Now that the novel has been
-written, and published in England and America by people who know little
-and care nothing about its origins, judging it merely as a piece of
-fiction commercially available, the opportunity arrives to reveal
-briefly the unusual circumstances out of which the tale was born.</p>
-
-<p>That part of England called East Anglia has preserved through many
-centuries the salient features of the landscape. As Charles Dickens said
-of the French-Flemish country, it is neither bold nor diversified, being
-in fact a sort of continuation of that country on the other side of the
-shallow and recent North Sea. And indeed what Dickens went on to say of
-his Flemish-French country, that it was three parts Flemish and one part
-French, might be paraphrased for East Anglia as three parts English and
-one part Low Country, or three parts land and one part water. The shores
-emerge imperceptibly from the gray waste of the North Sea, with
-stretches of low-tide mud that shine with a metallic lustre beyond the
-dunes. The sea is loth to retreat, winding in and out among the fields,
-so that one is startled,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xiii" id="page_xiii">{xiii}</a></span> driving along the road from Colchester towards
-Mersea, to see a huge brown wherry aground behind the dikes, many miles
-from the sea-lanes outside. And from Canvey Island, which is fairly in
-the Thames Estuary below Tilbury, to Aldeburgh, on the Suffolk Coast,
-the sea interpenetrates the land so deeply and with so many loops and
-backwaters, that the whole coast, to high tide, is compacted of lonely
-islands, with here and there a house and the square tower of an ancient
-little Saxon church showing above some weather-worn trees on the
-landward side. Bleak and perishing cold in the winter, there is a quiet
-loveliness in the summers there appealing strongly to unfashionable folk
-who seek the elemental sanctuaries of remote harbours and salt winds
-driving the thick white clouds athwart a sky of palest azure.</p>
-
-<p>In such surroundings and with a practicable house for sleep, you come
-close to England. In such surroundings, on a fare of beef and cheese and
-beer, an English family might conceivably become so homogeneously
-identified with the spirit of the place that they could move at will up
-and down the centuries, assuming the thoughts and memories of any
-disembodied intelligences still anchored to their earthly haunts. So at
-least it emerges, reading the sober evidence before us, as those four
-set it down, signing it with their several names and styles, and
-asserting their right as truthful subjects to be believed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xiv" id="page_xiv">{xiv}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And what they say is this: In August, 1920, being in their cottage on
-Mersea Island, on an evening that had turned to rain, the time hung
-heavily and it was suggested they pass an hour with the glass. The
-ordinary materials were soon provided, being no more than the alphabet
-on paper slips, arranged in a circle on the table with a common tumbler,
-from which ale is drunk in those parts, inverted in the middle. Nothing
-remained save to select some feasible subject.</p>
-
-<p>One lay to their hand. While none of the company had practised the
-historical method in their fictions, since they lacked the special
-knowledge of bygone ways and speech such work demands, they had often
-discussed a legend persisting in the island, that a near-by tavern, long
-since destroyed, had been the scene of a tragedy. Old people in the
-village said they had seen the ghost, which haunted a house known as The
-Myth. “Let us,” said someone, “call up the landlord of the Ship Inn.
-Perhaps,” they added amidst some laughter, “he will reply.”</p>
-
-<p>He did! Amid great yet repressed excitement, the mysterious glass slid
-to and fro, spelling out a name. As far as can be ascertained, for once
-the exact requirements of time and place and method came together, and
-some sort of communication was established across the “gateless barrier”
-that separates us from the souls who linger near the scenes of their
-earthly existence, loth to wander far from their native air. Night after
-night, for long hours, these<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xv" id="page_xv">{xv}</a></span> inexperienced folk sat round their table
-holding converse with the spirits that syllable men’s names, piecing
-together the fragments, evoking new witnesses to check up obscure
-allusions, puzzling over the illiterate and archaic words and phrases
-which none of them, by any possible chance, could have heard before.</p>
-
-<p>No provision, however, is made in modern publishing for works produced
-by authors after they are dead. It is absolutely necessary, when it
-comes to publishing, to have some representative this side of the grave,
-and Margery Allingham, whose mortal hand wrote the following novel, is
-compelled by the hidebound rules of a material and grown-up world to
-assume the authorship. Publishers, it seems, from an inspection of our
-correspondence, are grown-ups.</p>
-
-<p>It cannot be said that they have, in this particular case, failed in
-their obligations to the public. There is one notable feature about this
-novel, which the present writer did not read until it had been accepted
-for publication, and that is the clean and workmanlike characterization.
-Here is no fine writing, no groping for “style.” With crisp hammer-blows
-the tale is told. A realistic romance, if you please, in the sense that
-no one stands between us and the characters of <i>Black’erchief Dick</i>. It
-is the realism of Defoe’s <i>Captain Singleton</i> and the <i>Plague Year</i>,
-where the author achieves a magical invisibility. So far from leading
-his characters forward and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xvi" id="page_xvi">{xvi}</a></span> leaving them to speak, and so revealing
-themselves as the children of his brain, the realistic romanticist never
-appears at all. Unlike the romantic realist, who passes everything
-through the spectrum of his own personality, his story must stand by its
-own inherent quality. There are some who would deny him the rank of
-artist, claiming that title exclusively for the introspective
-specialists. The present writer cannot subscribe to that narrow creed.
-He can even imagine a votary of introspection casting envious eyes upon
-this stirring tale of love and piracy in seventeenth-century England,
-and wondering whether something may not be said for the objective method
-after all, where you begin at the beginning and end at the end, where
-something is allowed for the picturesque, and the artist works within
-the ancient and honourable conventions that are accepted, and loved, and
-comprehended by the crowd.</p>
-
-<p class="r">
-<span class="smcap">William McFee.</span><br /></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xvii" id="page_xvii">{xvii}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xviii" id="page_xviii">{xviii}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_1" id="page_1">{1}</a></span>&nbsp; </p>
-
-<h1><a name="CHAPTER_I" id="CHAPTER_I"></a>BLACK’ERCHIEF DICK</h1>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER I</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“D</span>ANGEROUS! Why, there’s no trade from here to the Indies more dangerous
-than ours. I’ve been about a bit, and mind you I know.”</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby shifted his large body to a position of greater ease, tilted
-slightly the rum cask on which he was sitting, and leaned back against
-the fully rigged mast, balancing himself carefully in accordance with
-the gentle roll of the ship.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I don’t know about that, Mat,” remarked a wiry, black-bearded man,
-who squatted on a coil of rope some six feet away. “I’ve been on this
-ship two years now, and how many fights have I had with the Preventative
-folk? Three! How many hands did we lose in the lot? Eleven! That’s not
-danger!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said the other, wisely nodding his head, “maybe, maybe, Blueneck,
-but it’s some nine months since we last went foul them coastguards and
-since then we’ve been coming and going as though the damned old Channel
-belonged to us. Such scatter-brained tricks don’t pay in the end.”</p>
-
-<p>“You be careful what you’re saying, Mat Turnby,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_2" id="page_2">{2}</a></span>” piped a shivering,
-miserable, little man, who was trying to protect himself from the
-cutting February wind with a ragged, parti-coloured blanket which he
-continually wrapped and unwrapped about his skeleton-like shoulders,
-“you be careful what you’re saying. All kinds o’ things on this ship
-have ears,” and he nodded once or twice significantly.</p>
-
-<p>The big man moved uneasily on his unstable seat, but he answered boldly
-enough:</p>
-
-<p>“I saying? Here, you mind what you’re saying, you snivelling rat!
-Saying? I’m not saying aught as I am ashamed of&mdash;I say these daring
-tricks don’t pay in the end&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;they don’t,” he finished
-abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s not for the likes o’ us to talk about what the Captain does,”
-said the little man whiningly. He snuffled noisily and unwrapped and
-wrapped his blanket again. “Not for the likes o’ us,” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s saying aught of the Cap’n?” roared Mat, bringing the cask to the
-deck with a thud. “Who’s saying aught of the Cap’n?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! no one, no one at all,” said the shiverer, considerably startled.
-Then he added, as the big man slid back against the mast once more: “But
-if no one did&mdash;that’s all right, ain’t it? If no one did, I say.”</p>
-
-<p>Mat swore a round of obscene oaths under his breath and there was
-silence for a minute or two.</p>
-
-<p>They were nearly at the end of the trip. Indeed, another two hours or so
-would see them safely at<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_3" id="page_3">{3}</a></span> anchor in the safest of all smugglers’
-havens&mdash;the mouth of the River Blackwater, and their cargo easily and
-openly landed on Mersea Marsh Island.</p>
-
-<p>The shivering little man smiled to himself at the thought of it. The
-warm kitchen at the Victory Inn, the smoking rum-cup, and the pleasant
-sallies of the fair Eliza appealed to his present mood, and he sniffled
-again and rearranged his blanket.</p>
-
-<p>The green, white-splashed water lapped against the boat and a big
-saddle-backed gull flew over, screaming plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>Mat began to talk again.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder why we do it,” he said slowly. “There ain’t anything in him&mdash;a
-weak, ugly little Spaniard, no&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck interrupted sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“Hush,” he said. “No good ever comes of talking about Black’erchief
-Dick, whatever is said.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who said I was talking of the Cap’n?” said Mat quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked uncomfortable, but he replied steadily: “Ah! Mat Turnby,
-you be careful!”</p>
-
-<p>Mat laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon you’ve got enough to do lookin’ after yerself&mdash;wi’out worrying
-about me, master Spaniard,” he said good-naturedly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shifted his position slightly.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon we git paid more than most sea-faring folk,” he said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_4" id="page_4">{4}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mat snorted.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes!” he growled, “paid! We’re paid, all right, but how are we
-treated?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck grinned.</p>
-
-<p>“Like princes of the blood on the island,” he laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! yes, on the island,” Mat’s voice rose, “but I say&mdash;on the brig? How
-then? Like dogs, men&mdash;like dirty, heathen, black-skinned dogs! And what
-I ask is, why do we do it? Are we men to be afraid of a brown-skinned,
-drunken little pirate of a Spaniard? Just because he owns a brig or two
-and smuggles as much rum in a year as any other man in the trade? What
-has he got about him that we should turn wenches and follow him, like
-the scum he thinks us? Save that he has a mighty plaguey way of turning
-fine words and&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“The knife!”</p>
-
-<p>The little man who had spoken huddled his blanket closer and shuddered
-again. The wind dropped for a moment and a tremor ran through the full
-sails, as though they also had shivered.</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby laughed, albeit somewhat uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“The knife?” he said. “Lord, what’s a knife to a man who holds one of
-these?” He pulled a heavy flintlock pistol out of a pocket in the
-voluminous skirts of the sleeveless and brightly coloured coat which he
-wore over a rough homespun guernsey and held it on the palm of his open
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck smiled grimly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_5" id="page_5">{5}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“A precious great deal when the hand that holds the knife is
-Black’erchief Dick’s,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby laughed again contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you flesh and good red blood, or mud and pond slime, that you fear
-the foolish word of a Spanish sot? I tell you no knife held in a mortal
-hand can stand against a bullet from this.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, in a mortal hand,” said he of the blanket, fearfully looking behind
-him.</p>
-
-<p>The big sailor swore.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord,” he said, “I knew not that I had come aboard a ship manned with a
-crew of beldames. I tell you this great captain of yours would be laid
-as flat as Mersea mud with one little lead ball from this.”</p>
-
-<p>He stroked the pistol lovingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe,” said Blueneck stubbornly. “But whoever fired that shot would
-die by&mdash;the knife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! that’s tremendous likely,” sneered the other; “him on his back with
-a good ounce of lead in that wicked head of his.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“You can laugh now, Mat Turnby,” he said, “but you won’t always laugh at
-what I tell you. No, not by a long way, that you won’t.”</p>
-
-<p>He hugged his knees to his chin, and let the heavy lids fall over his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>This apparent indifference seemed to irritate Mat more than words for,
-bringing his hand down on his knee with a mighty slap, he swore loudly
-for several<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_6" id="page_6">{6}</a></span> seconds. Then suddenly breaking off short he burst into a
-short, sharp laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Well!” he said. “It’s time the Spanish swine knew that there’s someone
-aboard who ain’t afraid of him, no, neither him nor his knife. S’truth!
-am I to cower down to a Spaniard?”</p>
-
-<p>He stretched his huge limbs and showed his large yellow teeth as he
-smiled rather sourly.</p>
-
-<p>“No, by the Lord, not I,” he went on. “Let him cross me if he dare, and
-he’ll see good <i>Suffolk</i> blood is a match for thin Spanish sap any day.
-Ho! ho! ho! let him cross me if he dare. Ho! ho!”</p>
-
-<p>The laugh died away on his lips as from just behind his ear came
-another. It was soft, rich, musical, and wholly unpleasant.</p>
-
-<p>At the first sound of it the three men sat rigid, and when it had ceased
-there was no sound for several seconds save for the water lapping
-against the side and the scream of the gulls overhead.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck was the first of the sailors to recover. He lifted his eyes
-cautiously to the direction from which the laugh had come.</p>
-
-<p>He saw what he feared and expected. Up against the other side of the
-mast, directly behind Mat Turnby, stood a slight figure dressed
-extravagantly in the French style of the day, a dandy from the Brussels
-frill at his throat to the great silver buckles of rich workmanship
-which adorned his tanned shoes. But it was not these things which
-stopped the three sailors so suddenly in their talk and caused them to
-sit aghast.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_7" id="page_7">{7}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The most remarkable thing about the newcomer was his face&mdash;long, lean,
-brown, and unhandsome, it yet had a character at once interesting and
-repulsive. The finely marked eyebrows met across the low, well-tanned
-brow in an almost straight line, and the hair&mdash;oiled and curled&mdash;showed
-as black as the silk kerchief which covered the greater part of head and
-neck. The eyes beneath the lids, fringed with heavy lashes, smiled and
-glittered disconcertingly. The whole face was smiling now, viciously,
-almost fiendishly, but yet smiling and with some enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck’s eyes dropped before that terrible smile and, as they
-travelled slowly downward, suddenly dilated, and he shivered as though a
-snake had touched him.</p>
-
-<p>The figure by the mast had moved a little more round and his hand was
-visible. It was at this that Blueneck stared.</p>
-
-<p>Among the small, white, much-beringed fingers, and round the slender
-wrist from which the lace ruffle had been pushed back a little, slid the
-thin blue blade of a Spanish stiletto. Through the thumb and first
-finger it slipped, over the blue vein of the white forearm, mingled its
-brightness with the flashing jewels on the third and fourth fingers&mdash;and
-so round again, all without any apparent effort or even movement of the
-hand. It was an exhibition to be admired and praised, yet Blueneck and
-the shivering little man at his side shuddered and looked away.</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby, on the other hand, had not seen any<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_8" id="page_8">{8}</a></span>thing. He sat quite
-still, the pistol lying idly in the palm of his great hand, staring
-fixedly in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>A hand, white and slender, slid over his left shoulder and away
-again&mdash;the pistol vanished. Still Mat did not move.</p>
-
-<p>“A very pretty toy, and a useful, my friend,” said the same soft voice,
-just behind Mat’s ear.</p>
-
-<p>The big sailor pulled himself together with an effort, stood up, then
-turned toward his captain.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck and the little man in the blanket also rose.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick had not changed his position. The big pistol and the
-slender knife lay side by side on his small white palm, and he still
-smiled as he spoke again:</p>
-
-<p>“Now my noble son of an ox,” he began pleasantly, his white teeth
-shining, “if it so happened that this day you had to die&mdash;&mdash;” A hasty
-flush spread over the giant’s face, but otherwise he made no sign.
-Black’erchief Dick continued, “If, I say,” he repeated, “that this day
-you had to die, which of these beautiful toys would you choose as a
-means to death?”</p>
-
-<p>He held his open hand a little nearer to the sailor.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stared at him, fascinated, and the little man with the blanket
-sniffed audibly.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick’s eyes left Mat Turnby for a moment and rested on the
-shivering little creature. “Sniff thy way aft, Habakkuk Coot,” he said
-quietly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_9" id="page_9">{9}</a></span> The little man stared at him, shivered, sniffed again, and
-seemed unable to move.</p>
-
-<p>Slowly the Spaniard’s arm lifted the pistol in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk sniffed again and his eyes dilated with terror; a white finger
-raised crooked round the trigger, and pressed. There was an explosion.
-Habakkuk remained standing for a second, then fled down the hatchway, a
-jagged hole through his blanket.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick smiled and, turning to Mat, continued: “As I said,
-Matthew Turnby, if this day thou hadst to die, which of these weapons
-wouldst thou choose? Thou seest I know the manner of either,” he added,
-and, suddenly darting out his hand, he plunged the knife between the big
-sailor’s arm and body, so that the sleeve of the man’s guernsey was
-skewered to the body of his coat. Still Mat Turnby neither moved nor
-spoke. Laughing slightly, the Spaniard drew out the knife and resumed
-the one-sided conversation.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, Matthew Turnby, you do but jest in keeping the thin Spanish sap in
-my veins so long waiting for an answer,” he said with a sneer and a
-smile. The sailor swallowed noisily, but said nothing.</p>
-
-<p>“The drunken sot of a pirate must be taught not to cross thee, Matthew,”
-went on the Captain, and his smile had vanished, leaving only a weary
-expression on the lean features. “Lord! man, if thou wilt not choose,
-faith, I must for thee.”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely, Capt’n&mdash;you jest&mdash;surely.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_10" id="page_10">{10}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The words came like a flood from the big man’s open mouth.</p>
-
-<p>An expression of surprise spread over the Spaniard’s face. “I jest?” he
-said. “Nay, faith, good Matthew, I jest?” he repeated. “Lord, man, when
-didst thou get that into thy ass’s pate&mdash;nay, nay, of a certainty I do
-not jest&mdash;which wilt thou have?”</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby’s face grew purple, but he did not speak; his tongue
-protruded slightly from his lips.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick looked at the weapons critically as they lay side by
-side in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” he said at last, holding the pistol in his left hand. “This we
-see, Matthew, is discharged. I beg thy pardon, señor, for pressing a
-choice I could not give thee. As it is, you see, but the knife remains,”
-and he dropped the pistol into a capacious pocket.</p>
-
-<p>Mat Turnby’s hand clutched at his throat and he stepped back a pace or
-two.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick followed him, the knife swinging lightly between his
-thumb and forefinger. Blueneck stood watching, his eyes fixed on the
-Spaniard in unholy fascination. Farther and farther back stepped the big
-sailor, Dick keeping always the same distance from him, until he reached
-the side of the boat. There he stayed, breathless with fear. Slowly the
-Spaniard came nearer and nearer to him, and the thin blue blade ceased
-to swing.</p>
-
-<p>“So thou wouldst teach that ‘drunken pirate’ that all men are not afraid
-of him? Eh? Is that so?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_11" id="page_11">{11}</a></span> The voice seemed to grow more caressing at
-every word and the big sailor’s eyes shut. Suddenly they opened again
-and looked down.</p>
-
-<p>“Look!” Dick was saying. “Look, Matthew, son of <i>Suffolk</i> clay, see how
-fair my blade looks against thy fur-grown hide.” He tore at the guernsey
-and pulled it open, showing the great hairy chest beneath. The terrified
-sailor made one lunge forward, as though to grasp the lean brown throat,
-but he was too late. Swift as lightning the small white hand shot back
-and then forward, and the thin blue blade vanished in the wretched man’s
-body just over the collar-bone, cutting the jugular vein. The great body
-stiffened and then, gradually relaxing, dropped at the Spaniard’s feet.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stifled a cry and stepped forward.</p>
-
-<p>Slowly the Spaniard pulled out the steel, wiped it carefully on the
-brightly coloured sleeveless coat, then slipped it into his belt.</p>
-
-<p>“Over with the dog,” he said shortly to Blueneck, as he walked off
-quietly up the deck.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck hailed one of the frightened crew who had watched the scene
-from the deck-house roof, and in silence the two lifted up all that was
-left of the great sailor and pushed it over the side. The body splashed
-in the green water and somewhere near a cormorant shrieked to his kind
-the news of fresh prey, and the ship, her sails bellying out to the
-wind, sped on toward the island.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_12" id="page_12">{12}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_II" id="CHAPTER_II"></a>CHAPTER II</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“A</span>NNY.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you love me, lass?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! now why will you keep plaguing me, Hal? How many times have I told
-you so on this same wall? You know I do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Can I kiss you again, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>There was silence for a minute or so, and the gulls fishing for eels in
-the soft black mud came in closer to the shingle-strewn strip of beach,
-taking no notice of the two figures on the sea wall, so still they
-stood.</p>
-
-<p>“When we get married, lass”&mdash;the young voice sounded clearly in the
-quietness and the gulls flew screaming&mdash;“we might keep the Ship
-ourselves.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl at his side cut him short with a bitter little laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Hal,” she said sadly, “when we get married&mdash;that’s a tremendous
-long way off, I’m thinking.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy put his arm round her waist unchecked.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” he said, and his voice sounded hopeful, “I don’t know,
-lass. Gilbot’s leaving the place in my hands more than ever, and who
-knows<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_13" id="page_13">{13}</a></span> but what some day he’ll be handing it over to me altogether.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny joined in his laugh and her hand slid up and caressed his broad,
-scarlet-shirted shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, and then I’ll be serving our own rum, and you and Captain Fen de
-Witt will settle the price yourselves&mdash;&mdash; Oh, Hal! lad, that’ll be
-happiness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Anny, girl, ain’t you happy now? Gilbot’s been more than good to
-both of us. It isn’t every landlord who’d bring up a couple of orphans
-in his inn and look after them the way he has us.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl pouted her full red lips.</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t as if we didn’t work for him,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Anny!”&mdash;Hal’s honest blue eyes clouded for a moment&mdash;“you didn’t
-serve the liquor till you were fourteen, you know, and he even let me
-study a bit before I started to help.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, may be, but your folk left some money to him, didn’t they?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, lass. They died aboard Fen de Witt’s schooner, the <i>Dark Blood</i>,
-coming down from the North. You know that; I’ve told you so some twenty
-times.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, you have, but I like to hear you praise Gilbot, Hal, your eyes
-shine so, and you seem almost angry with me&mdash;I like you angry, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Saucy minion! When we are married you will not wish me angry. Faith,
-lass, you would not make another Ben Farran of me&mdash;surely?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_14" id="page_14">{14}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The girl shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“Peace, prithee,” she said. “I do not like to hear you jest so. Oh, that
-he had died with my father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, sweetheart, fie upon thee speaking of thy grandsire so,” Hal
-laughed merrily.</p>
-
-<p>The girl looked about her uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“Hush!” she said. “I would not have him hear us.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s laugh rang out again and he bent as he kissed her, although
-her height was unusual in the island, for he was very tall.</p>
-
-<p>“Look, Anny, lass,” he said laughingly. “See how far we are from the
-<i>Pet</i>,” and he pointed ahead of them to where an old mastless hull lay
-moored in a little bay about a quarter of a mile from where they stood.</p>
-
-<p>Anny glanced up at him and he stopped to look at her. Although they had
-lived in the same house since they could remember, he was never tired of
-gazing at that wonderful face of hers, and praising it till it reddened
-to the colour of the rough canvas shirt to which he pressed it.</p>
-
-<p>It was plump and oval in shape, white, but delicately touched with a
-colour in the cheeks, and her hair, of that intense blackness which
-seems to absorb the light, curled over her low forehead. But her eyes
-were wonderful. Of a deep sea-green, they caught light and shadow from
-her surroundings. The girl was certainly a beauty and of no common
-type.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_15" id="page_15">{15}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hal caught his breath.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny,” he said, his young eyes regarding her solemnly, “you are as
-beautiful as the sea at five o’clock on a summer’s morning. Look,
-sweetheart, over there, see&mdash;your eyes are as green as that sea, and
-your hair black as yon breakwater that starts out of it.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl laughed, well pleased, but she looked over at the old hull
-again quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Will we go back now?” she asked at last.</p>
-
-<p>The boy looked at her, astonished.</p>
-
-<p>“Go back!” he said. “Why, what for&mdash;art not tired, surely?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” she said, “but&mdash;&mdash;” She stopped and looked at the hull again.</p>
-
-<p>Hal followed the direction of her eyes before he spoke again. Then he
-laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Anny, you are afraid to pass your grandsire’s boat.”</p>
-
-<p>Then, as she did not speak, he took her little chin in his brown hand
-and raised her face to his.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you feared of when I am with you, sweetheart?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>The girl shivered slightly.</p>
-
-<p>“They say,” she began hesitatingly, “that Pet Salt is a witch.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal’s face became grave.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “they do say so, but, Lord,” and he smiled, “they said
-the same of Nan Swayle.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_16" id="page_16">{16}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! but that’s a lie,” said the girl hotly.</p>
-
-<p>Hal laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “and maybe so is the tale of Pet Salt. Anyway, thy
-grandsire seems to thrive beneath her care, be she witch or no. Fie,
-Anny, for shame,” he added, “you would not haste back yet. Master French
-will not thank us if we get in so soon, stopping his love-talk with
-Mistress Sue.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny wrapped her shawl a little closer about her head and shoulders, and
-slipped her arm through the boy’s, and they walked on for a while
-without speaking.</p>
-
-<p>About three hundred yards from the old hull Anny stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“Look!” she said, “he’s on deck.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked in the direction in which she pointed and saw the stubby
-figure of old Ben Farran, a long telescope to his eye, leaning against
-the remnant of what had once been a neat deck-house. Lumber of different
-kinds&mdash;mostly empty rum kegs&mdash;lay strewn all round him, while from the
-shattered stump of the main-mast to the painted ear of the fearsome
-green-and-red dragon, which served as a figurehead, was stretched a
-clothes-line, on which a few rags leaped and fought in the cold breeze.</p>
-
-<p>Hal studied him critically for a few moments.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s not so deep in liquor as usual,” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! poor Pet Salt!” exclaimed the girl involuntarily. “I wonder where
-she is?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_17" id="page_17">{17}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>“Stowed away safely under hatches, I reckon,” said Hal, with a laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“You should not jest, Hal. I have not known him able to stand so these
-three months. I fear he may have kilt her. He would if she could beg him
-no more rum.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! what a soft heart it is,” said the boy gently. “How long ago was it
-that thou shivered when I spoke her name, and now you fear for her.
-Shall we go back?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl hesitated for a moment, then she said: “Nay, she may have need
-of help, poor soul. Come with me, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come with thee, lass! Think you I’d let you go alone&mdash;thy grandsire
-sobered?” His voice rose in indignation as he put his arm about her
-shoulders protectingly.</p>
-
-<p>They came within twenty yards of the boat before the swaying figure on
-the deck became aware of them. Then, however, to their extreme surprise
-he hailed them affably and called to Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Hey, you boy there, be your eyes good?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, none so bad, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I doubt it. Come up here, will ’ee, and see if you can make out
-this craft.” Then, his eyes falling on the girl, “Is it that slut Anny
-you have with you?”</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis Anny Farren, sir,” she said, speaking for herself.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! you run down to Pet Salt, girl, she may need thee.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_18" id="page_18">{18}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Anny climbed up the rope ladder which dangled over the side, and Hal
-after her.</p>
-
-<p>“Is Pet Salt sick, Grandsire?” she ventured timidly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny had been a serving-maid at the Ship Tavern some three years and her
-acquaintance with profane language was not limited, but she quailed
-visibly and the red blood mounted from her throat to the ebony curls on
-her forehead before the stream of abuse levelled at the head of the
-unfortunate woman in the hold. She fled down the hatchway, and Hal stood
-looking after her, undecided whether to follow his love and protect her
-from the aged witch below deck, or to remain and attempt to pacify the
-wrathful man by the deck-house.</p>
-
-<p>Ben decided for him.</p>
-
-<p>“Here you are,” he said fiercely, “take this telescope. Now”&mdash;as Hal
-took it from the old man’s unsteady fingers&mdash;“what do you see?”</p>
-
-<p>The young Norseman, his yellow hair curling over his ears and one dark
-blue eye screwed to the rim, swept the glass to and fro once or twice,
-then he held it still.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a brig,” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” assented the old man.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked again. “Light’s very bad,” he remarked.</p>
-
-<p>“I could ha’ told you that&mdash;here, give me the thing.” Ben regained
-possession of the glass and, unable to hold it steady, broke into
-another flood of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_19" id="page_19">{19}</a></span> profane language, cursing the woman, Pet Salt, again
-and again.</p>
-
-<p>“She has vexed thee, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>The young man put the question timidly.</p>
-
-<p>“The ronyon burnt my rum-cup,” Ben Farran gulped with rage. “Oh, lad!
-the defiling of good, Heaven-sent rum with burnt eggs and honey!”</p>
-
-<p>He spat on the deck at the thought of it.</p>
-
-<p>The boy grinned, but he said nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Once again the old man handed him the telescope.</p>
-
-<p>“Now look! Be she Captain Fen de Witt’s <i>Dark Blood</i>?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal began to understand the old drunkard’s interest in the brig. If this
-was the <i>Dark Blood</i>, the whole of the east end of the Island would run
-rum for a night or so, and, as he guessed, Ben’s stock was getting low.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said at last, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis not she. Why, Master Farran, Captain Fen
-de Witt, isn’t expected for a week or more.”</p>
-
-<p>The old man mumbled curses for a while before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! but who be she?” he said, pointing out to the horizon.</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” said the boy in some surprise, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis someone making for the
-West.”</p>
-
-<p>The old man seized the glass.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis impossible, with the tide out like this,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Hal strained his eyes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_20" id="page_20">{20}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “but she’s trying it.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I tell thee, lad,” Ben’s voice rose shrilly, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis impossible. Why,
-down there in the fleet there ain’t no more ’an four feet o’ water when
-the tide’s like this.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” said Hal. “I know there ain’t, but she’s trying it,” he added
-stubbornly.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, so she be.” Ben Farran put the glass at last safely to his eye and
-spoke in amazement. “But she won’t do it,” he added with a certain
-enjoyment. “She can’t do it. There’s only one man as I’ve heard of who’d
-try it,” he continued, “and it ain’t likely to be him at this time o’
-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said Hal, “and who’s that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Dick Delfazio&mdash;him as they call Black’erchief Dick&mdash;but it ain’t likely
-to be him, as I said.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve heard of him,” he said. “Lands his stuff at the Victory, don’t
-he?”</p>
-
-<p>The old man grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know that,” he said. “All I know is I don’t see any of it.
-Lord,” he added, as he had another look through the glass, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis the
-<i>Coldlight</i>, though&mdash;sithering fool. He’ll lead the Preventative men on
-the Island after him one o’ these days.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’ll never get down to the fleet with the tide like this, whoever he
-is,” said the boy, staring out curiously at the white-sailed craft.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! you’re right there,” said Ben. “Curse the fool, he’ll get her stuck
-fast in the mud and have to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_21" id="page_21">{21}</a></span> stay all night. Lord!” he added, “when
-these wars be over there’ll be a deal more care taken in the trade, take
-my word for it. Why, this ain’t smuggling, it’s free trading.”</p>
-
-<p>But the boy was not listening to him; his eyes were fixed on the
-<i>Coldlight</i>, now well in view.</p>
-
-<p>“Look!” he said suddenly, “look, she’s turning.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? What? Eh? So she is!” ejaculated the old man in a frenzy of
-excitement. “Do ’ee think she be coming here&mdash;eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal spoke slowly, his eyes on the brig.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “you’re right, she’s making for East&mdash;who did you say she
-was?”</p>
-
-<p>“The <i>Coldlight</i>&mdash;the <i>Coldlight</i>, lad, commanded by the finest man in
-the trade&mdash;oh, my boy, the Island will swim in good Jamaica this night,”
-and he dropped the telescope, which fell clattering to the boards.</p>
-
-<p>Hal picked it up and turned to give it to the old man, but he was off,
-tottering to the hatchway. There, kneeling on the deck and poking his
-head down, he called whiningly, “Pet! Pet! my own, will you come up and
-hear what I have to tell you? Great&mdash;great news, Pet.” Receiving no
-answer he tried again while the boy stood looking at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty old Pet, queen of my heart, Pet, my Pet, come up.”</p>
-
-<p>Still no answer, save for the patter of raindrops on the boat.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry I beat you, Pet&mdash;although I’m damned<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_22" id="page_22">{22}</a></span> if I am, the ronyon!”
-he added to himself. Still all beneath the hatches was silent as the
-grave.</p>
-
-<p>Swearing softly, the old man crawled over to the ladder and began to
-descend.</p>
-
-<p>Hal heard him reach the bottom and stumble off.</p>
-
-<p>The boy looked out to sea, where the brig was making slowly for the
-Eastern Creek. He stood looking at her for a second or two and then
-sprang round suddenly as though someone had called him.</p>
-
-<p>Where was Anny? In the excitement of watching the brig he had forgotten
-her. His face flushing with remorse he raced to the hatchway and was
-just in time to help his sweetheart, pale and frightened, up on to the
-deck.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Hal, how he has beaten her!” she said, as she moved quickly over to
-the rope ladder and climbed hastily down without once looking behind.</p>
-
-<p>“Could she speak to thee?” he asked as he slid to the ground after her.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” she nodded her head fearfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Did she curse thee much?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” she nodded again.</p>
-
-<p>Hal smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Art afraid?” he enquired tenderly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up at him before she pulled his arm about her waist.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” she said, “not while I have thee, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>He kissed her before he spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose Ben was plaguing her to meet the <i>Coldlight</i> and beg a keg?”
-he said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_23" id="page_23">{23}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny nodded again. Then she said quickly: “Come, lad, we must back to
-the Ship if company be expected.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wouldst rather serve rum to the company than walk to the shore with me,
-lass?”</p>
-
-<p>The grip round her waist tightened and she laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“If thou wert a wench, Hal, thou wouldst be a jade,” she said. “Come,
-Master Gilbot will be scuttering this way and that, and Mistress Sue,
-loath to leave Big French, will have the skin flayed off everyone in the
-place if we’re not there to help her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thou’rt a great lass, Anny,” said the boy, smiling. “When we are
-married there’ll not be an inn in the country to equal ours.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl laughed happily.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, when we are married, Hal,” she said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_24" id="page_24">{24}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_III" id="CHAPTER_III"></a>CHAPTER III</h2>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“Oh, I called her Mary Loo,<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">And she shwore that she’d be true,<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">Until I took to rum and went to shea;<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">Then she goed along wi’ he,<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">And forgot all love for me,<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea,<br /></span>
-<span class="i1">Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea.”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">G</span>ILBOT, landlord of the Ship, sat before a roaring fire in his
-comfortable kitchen, singing in a quavering, tipsy voice, and beating
-out the accompaniment with an empty pot on one podgy knee.</p>
-
-<p>It was six o’clock in the evening, and already the tallow dips had been
-lighted. They cast a flickering, friendly glow over the scene, the long,
-low room, stone-flagged and small-windowed, the ale barrels and rum kegs
-neatly arranged side by side on a form which ran nearly all the way
-round the wall, and the two long, trestled tables, flanked with
-high-backed seats which were now unoccupied, but were presently to be
-filled with the best company that the east of the Island could provide.</p>
-
-<p>Besides Gilbot, who appeared happily oblivious of all around him, four
-other persons sat in the Ship kitchen: two old men threw dice for pence
-in one<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_25" id="page_25">{25}</a></span> corner, while in another, between two rum kegs, sat a girl. She
-was about twenty-three years of age, and, although her appearance was
-not of that uncommon type so marked in Anny Farran, yet she had a
-certain quiet comeliness and gentle expression which made her almost
-beautiful. At least the handsome young giant who lounged near her in an
-ecstasy of shyness appeared to think so, for he eyed her so intently,
-his mouth partly open, that she was forced to pay more attention to the
-garment she was patching than was strictly necessary. They sat in
-perfect silence for some ten minutes before the young man plucked up
-courage to speak. When he did, his voice came uncomfortably from his
-throat, and he reddened to the roots of his hair.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon I’ll be going up west now, Mistress Sue,” he said, as he half
-rose to his feet and looked toward the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!”&mdash;there was a note of real regret in the girl’s voice&mdash;“must you go
-so early, Master French?”</p>
-
-<p>Big French sat down again quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said shortly, and there was silence again for another minute
-or so.</p>
-
-<p>She stitched busily the while.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it great business you have in the west, Master French?” she said at
-last, her eyes still on her work.</p>
-
-<p>French discovered suddenly that it was easier to talk to her if she was
-not looking at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said. “Black’erchief Dick will get in to-morrow.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_26" id="page_26">{26}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Sue sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” she said, “you have a fine life, Master French, travelling to and
-fro the way you do.”</p>
-
-<p>Big French beamed delightedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “a fine life, but dangerous,” he added quickly, “very
-dangerous.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl looked at him appraisingly.</p>
-
-<p>“But you are so strong, Master French, what have you to fear from
-footpads&mdash;you’re in more danger from pretty wenches, I warrant,” she
-said, as she shot a sidelong glance at him.</p>
-
-<p>French reddened and smiled sheepishly; then he suddenly grew grave and
-his gray eyes regarded her earnestly.</p>
-
-<p>“Wenches? Mistress Sue,” he said, “nay! One wench&mdash;that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>It was Sue’s turn to redden now and she did so very charmingly, and
-French, noting her confusion, immediately bethought him of his own, and
-he sat fidgeting, his eyes on the tips of his untanned leather boots.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be forth to Tiptree market this week if Black’erchief Dick’s
-brought aught but rum from Brest,” he said at last, “and if there be
-aught you may be wanting from thence, Mistress&mdash;&mdash;?” His voice trailed
-off on the question as he studied his boot-toe attentively.</p>
-
-<p>She smiled as she laid a brown hand on his arm, thereby causing him much
-nervous disquietude.</p>
-
-<p>“Come back before you go&mdash;er&mdash;Ezekiel”&mdash;Big<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_27" id="page_27">{27}</a></span> French started pleasurably
-at the sound of his Christian name&mdash;“and if I have bethought me of aught
-we need from Tiptree, I will be glad if you will get it for me,” she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>Big French took the hand that was resting on his sleeve in one big fist
-and his other arm slid round the girl’s waist unhindered.</p>
-
-<p>“Sue,” he said softly, “will ye&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Sho I stayed wi’ me rum and me shea</i>,”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nind">sang Gilbot, suddenly waking up from the doze he had fallen into.
-“Shue,” he called, “more rum, lass.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl jumped up to obey him, and Big French swore softly under his
-breath.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three seamen entered the kitchen at this moment, and, after
-saluting Gilbot, called for drinks and settled themselves in the
-high-backed seats on either side of the fire. They began to talk noisily
-of their own affairs.</p>
-
-<p>Sue opened an inner door and called for more lights. Gilbot, happy with
-his rum, continued to sing.</p>
-
-<p>Big French rose slowly to his feet. He was an enormous figure, some six
-feet five inches tall and proportionately broad; his face as the light
-from the dripping candles fell on it showed clearly cut and very
-handsome. He wore his hair long and his chin had never been shaved, so
-that his beard was as silky as his hair, curly and of the colour of
-clear honey. He walked over to the door after exchanging greetings<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_28" id="page_28">{28}</a></span> with
-the rowdy crew at the fireside, and lifted the latch. On the threshold
-he was met by Hal and Anny.</p>
-
-<p>They had walked briskly, and the cool air had brought the colour to the
-girl’s face and, as she stood there, the men at the fireside, instead of
-clamouring for the door to be shut and the draught stayed, sat looking
-at her in silent admiration.</p>
-
-<p>Hal Grame, standing just behind her, was the first to speak. He stepped
-forward, shutting the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p>“Black’erchief Dick, aboard the <i>Coldlight</i>, will be putting into the
-Creek inside of an hour,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Big French looked at him for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Black’erchief Dick coming here?” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>Sue came forward to listen, and several men left the fireplace and
-joined the little group near the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” said Hal, “he couldn’t get down the fleet with the tide like
-this.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said French.</p>
-
-<p>“He couldn’t rest in the Channel for twelve hours or so, now could he?”
-continued Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you’re right there, lad,” said one of the men, pressing forward.
-“Black’erchief Dick would risk most things, but he’s no fool.”</p>
-
-<p>Big French scratched his head thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” he said slowly, “he’s no fool, that’s right enough.” Then he
-looked at Sue furtively out of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_29" id="page_29">{29}</a></span> the corner of his eye. “He’ll be coming
-up here I reckon,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” she said, “we’ve rum enough for any foreigner, and, if we ain’t
-as fine as the Victory, our liquor’s as good.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh, what’s that?” Old Gilbot pricked up his ears, the pewter-pot
-halfway to his lips. “Not as fine as the Victory, lass? Who says we
-ain’t as fine as the Victory, any day? Eh? Anywaysh,” he added, his face
-hidden in the nearly empty tankard, “anywaysh, we’ve prettier wenches.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right, host&mdash;here, rum all round and drink to the wenches.” Big
-French, his hand in his breeches pocket, spoke loudly and the coins
-jingled as he planked them down on the table, and the two girls hastened
-to draw the rum.</p>
-
-<p>“The wenches!” shouted French, one big foot on the form and his tankard
-held high above his head.</p>
-
-<p>“The wenches!” roared the company.</p>
-
-<p>“The wenches!” piped Gilbot happily from his corner.</p>
-
-<p>This pleasant ceremony took some minutes, and Sue and Anny stood
-together smiling at each other, neither giving a thought to the little
-dark-skinned, white-handed Spaniard who was sailing under full canvas
-toward their home.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go down to the hard to meet Black’erchief,” said French at last,
-wiping his beard with a green handkerchief.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_30" id="page_30">{30}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll with you.” “And I.” “And I.” Most of the company rose and followed
-the young Goliath to the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Goo’-bye,” said Gilbot, waving his pot. “Come back soon.”</p>
-
-<p>The men laughed and promised.</p>
-
-<p>“The owd devil,” said one man to another as he shut the door behind
-them. “The owd devil hasn’t been sober these four years.” And they went
-off laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“What manner of fellow is that they call Black’erchief Dick’?” said
-Anny, as she collected the empty tankards from the tables.</p>
-
-<p>“A devil,” said one of the men at the fireside.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Anny was not impressed. She had met many strangers who had been
-described to her as devils, and not one to her mind had lived up to the
-description.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Hal, as he piled fresh logs in the open grate. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis only a
-foreigner, some Spanish dog or other.”</p>
-
-<p>The man who had spoken before shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you be careful, lad. Dick ain’t the chap to make a foe of in a
-hurry,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny paused for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Is he a big man, sir?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>Sue interposed quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Not as big as Master French, I reckon,” she said defiantly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_31" id="page_31">{31}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The man laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Big as French?” he said. “Lord! he ain’t no bigger than you, Anny.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” the two girls looked at one another and laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, I reckon he’s a devil without horns then, Master Granger,” said
-Sue.</p>
-
-<p>Granger spat before he spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know about horns, Mistress,” he said, “but I reckon his knife
-is good enough for him&mdash;ah, and for me, too, for that matter,” he added.</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed again.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Twould not be enough for me anyway,” she said, fixing a stray curl
-over her ear as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>Sue looked at her strangely. It was impossible not to like this
-beautiful wild little creature, in whom her uncle, Gilbot, had taken
-such an interest. Yet she could not help wishing that the younger girl
-had been more careful. She was so young, so very beautiful, and the
-company which came to the Ship was not the best in the world.</p>
-
-<p>Sue shrugged her shoulders. It was not her business, she told herself,
-but her eyes followed Anny almost pityingly as the little maid moved
-across the room to speak to Gilbot.</p>
-
-<p>“Master Gilbot,” Anny said, “should we prepare a bedchamber for the
-gentleman?”</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot looked at her over the rim of the tankard; then he took one
-of her hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou art a pretty wench, Anny,” he observed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_32" id="page_32">{32}</a></span> solemnly. “Will ’ee fetch
-me another stoup of liquor, lass?” he added, brightening up in
-anticipation.</p>
-
-<p>Anny did as she was told and then repeated her question.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? Bedchamber? Eh? What?” said the old man, his brows screwed into
-knotted lines, and he seemed troubled; after a few minutes, however,
-“Oh! ashk Hal,” he said, his face clearing. “Ashk Hal everything.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked across at the boy affectionately.</p>
-
-<p>“Shly dog,” he murmured, “keepsh me in liquor all day long sho he can
-get the Ship. Ho-ho-ho!” he laughed, shaking all over. “Shly dog&mdash;shly
-dog.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal laughed with him and then discussed with Anny and Sue the various
-arrangements for the reception of the visitors. Having settled
-everything to their satisfaction they joined the group about the fire,
-where the talk was still running on the Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>“Wonderful fighter,” one man was saying. “Oh, a wonderful fighter, take
-my word for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you’re right,” said another. “I saw him kill a man with a knife
-throw one time. From right the other side of the room it was. That was
-in a house in Brest, in ’59,” he added reminiscently.</p>
-
-<p>“How old do you reckon him?” said the first man curiously. “I’ve not
-known him more’n a year or so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” the other man’s tone was dubious. “He says he’s thirty and I
-shouldn’t say more. No, I shouldn’t say so much&mdash;though it’s wonderful
-the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_33" id="page_33">{33}</a></span> way he manages them foreign dogs he mans his brig with.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal joined in the conversation.</p>
-
-<p>“They’re a rough lot, I expect,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The men round the fire laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right there, lad,” said one. “Keep your eye on the rum and
-lasses to-night. Wonderful rough lot they are,” he added. “Oh, wonderful
-rough!”</p>
-
-<p>Hal flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon the lasses can look after theirselves,” he said gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny put her hand on his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” she said, “maybe we can, but where’s the need of us troubling when
-you’re by?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bravo, Anny, lass. The girl has wit as well as beauty,” said the man
-addressed as Granger from his seat in the chimney corner, whence he had
-moved to make room for Sue.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, a fine wench,” said Gilbot, waking for a moment; the others laughed
-and the talk continued cheerily.</p>
-
-<p>“Evening to you all.” The speaker was a man dressed in the usual
-fisherman’s guernsey and breeches. He stood in the doorway, looking in
-on the company round the fire and smiling affably.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up quickly and seeing who it was rose at once to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>“Evening, Joe,” he said cheerily. “Come, sit down; what’ll you drink?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_34" id="page_34">{34}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Joseph Pullen smiled and took the seat offered him, and named his
-choice.</p>
-
-<p>Anny was up in a moment to serve him, and his eyes followed her as she
-flitted hither and thither, with a smile for one and a jest for another,
-laughing happily the while. He looked across at Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you’re a lucky one, mate,” he observed in a hoarse whisper.</p>
-
-<p>The boy smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Amy been at you again?” he enquired.</p>
-
-<p>It was well known that Joe and his wife, Amy, were not a happy couple.</p>
-
-<p>The other looked round him.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s a shrew and no mistake, Hal,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>Hal laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right,” he said. “But cheer thyself,” he added, as Anny brought
-a tankard. “Look’ee, Joe, did ever you set eyes on a man called
-Black’erchief Dick?”</p>
-
-<p>“I did that”&mdash;Joe’s face appeared red above the pot&mdash;“and I set eyes on
-one of his mange-struck crew as well,” he said fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, and who might that be?” Granger inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“A black-bearded old Spanish villain called Blueneck. Yes, and what’s
-more, I set eyes on him kissing my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>A roar of laughter greeted this outburst, and Joe looked discomforted.</p>
-
-<p>“I stopped it, of course,” he remarked.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_35" id="page_35">{35}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Another roar shook the building. Joe reddened again.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why you’re a-laughing,” he said gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>The men round the fire laughed again.</p>
-
-<p>“I can manage my wife better nor any man here and I’m willing to prove
-it with these,” he said, putting up two bony fists.</p>
-
-<p>The laughter died away and no one spoke for a moment or so. Then Joe,
-all his anger vanished as suddenly as it had come, remarked,
-“Black’erchief Dick, eh? Where did you hear of him? I didn’t know he
-ever came up east.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor don’t he as a rule,” said Hal, “but he has had to put in here owing
-to the tide. I reckon he’ll be up here soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, will he now?” Joe’s eyebrows rose expressively, then he put down
-his mug. “Did you say he was putting in here&mdash;crew and all?” he asked,
-wiping his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” said Hal, “I reckon so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” said Joe again, “I’ll be going back to home,” he announced
-suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>Then, as some knowing smiles appeared on the faces in the firelight, he
-added, “Ah, you can laugh, but take my word for it, you keep your
-wenches clear of Spaniards. They have wonderful ways with women.” He
-walked to the door. “See you afore the night’s over, Hal,” he called
-cheerily as he went out.</p>
-
-<p>Under cover of the laughter which burst out as he<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_36" id="page_36">{36}</a></span> shut the door behind
-him, Anny whispered to Hal, who was making up the fire, “I would not
-change thee for the King o’ the Spaniards, lad,” and he, turning
-suddenly to look at her, knew that she spoke truth.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_37" id="page_37">{37}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IV" id="CHAPTER_IV"></a>CHAPTER IV</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“M</span>ARRY! Fortune favours her lovers! Greetings, Master French. Damn my
-knife! there is not another on the Island I would rather see than thee
-at this moment.”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick stepped out of the open rowboat which had conveyed
-him from the <i>Coldlight</i> and gave a small white hand to Big French, who
-assisted him on to the board pathway which was laid over the soft mud.</p>
-
-<p>“Greetings to you, Captain,” said the young man, and then added slowly,
-“you’re somewhat before your time, ain’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick broke into a storm of curses.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said at last, “ay, too early for the tide and so forsooth
-compelled&mdash;I, Dick Delfazio, compelled, mark you&mdash;to put in at this
-God-forsaken corner”&mdash;he took in the marshland with a comprehensive wave
-of a graceful arm, and continued sneering&mdash;“which is as flat and empty
-as a new-washed platter.”</p>
-
-<p>The big man at his side smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, prithee, Captain,” he said, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis none so bad.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_38" id="page_38">{38}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard turned to him fiercely, but Big French went on quietly: “If
-you be a wanting to stay the brig here for the next tide,” he said,
-“best to take her up the Pyfleet round to the back o’ the Ship&mdash;plenty
-o’ water up there,” he added.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“The Pyfleet?” he said. “Surely that is Captain Fen de Witt’s haven? I
-would not take advantage of his hiding-place.”</p>
-
-<p>The smile on the big man’s face vanished.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord, Captain!” he said quickly, “you cannot leave the brig in open
-channel all the night. The Preventative folk may not be very spry
-hereabouts, but they ain’t all dead yet&mdash;no, not by a long way they
-ain’t.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard replied with another shrug.</p>
-
-<p>“As you wish,” he said, and then with a smile, his teeth flashing in the
-dusk, he added: “But that I need thee to-night, Master Hercules, I would
-not so easily have yielded.”</p>
-
-<p>Big French flushed but he spoke quietly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, and what will you be wanting to-night, Captain?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Passage in thy cart to the Victory, friend,” replied the Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Big French spoke dubiously. “Why do you not rest at the Ship?” he
-enquired.</p>
-
-<p>“The Ship?” the thin lips curled in contempt. “Dick Delfazio stay at a
-wayside tavern? This moon hath made thee mad, friend French.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_39" id="page_39">{39}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Big French sighed involuntarily and the Spaniard laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“A wench?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” the blood suffused the young man’s handsome face and he spoke
-shortly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, take me to the Victory,” repeated the Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>An anxious snuff sounded at his elbow as he spoke. He turned quickly
-just in time to seize Habakkuk Coot by the neck of his guernsey.</p>
-
-<p>“You evil-smelling son of a rat,” he began slowly, giving the little man
-a shake at every word, “get thee back to the brig and tell Blueneck I
-would speak to him.”</p>
-
-<p>With the final word he jerked the wretch off the board pathway and
-watched him flounder in the deep oozing mud.</p>
-
-<p>“Haste thee, dog,” he said, touching him lightly with the blade of his
-knife.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk screamed and floundered on for the rowboat, where he was hauled
-in by several of his comrades. The boat then pushed off for the brig.</p>
-
-<p>“You have a wonderful way with your crew, Captain,” said French, looking
-after the boat.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, of a truth,” the Spaniard laughed. “Cannot Dick Delfazio rule a
-pack of mangy dogs?”</p>
-
-<p>French looked at him narrowly, and then took up the conversation where
-he had left it.</p>
-
-<p>“The Ship is no wayside tavern,” he said. “The folk be simple but the
-liquor good and the wenches<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_40" id="page_40">{40}</a></span> pretty, and they are waiting for you to
-come&mdash;the maids in their best caps, and the canary warming on the
-hearth.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at him for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Master French,” he said, keeping his glittering eyes on the other’s
-face. “Master French, ’tis strange that thou should’st be in this part
-of the Island so ready for my coming, Master French,” he added, his
-voice assuming the soft caressing quality for which it was so
-remarkable. “Dare I suppose that it was not to meet me that thou camest
-to the East? That it was to the Ship thou camest, eh, Master French?”</p>
-
-<p>Once again the big man blushed to his ears but he laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Captain,” he said, “you are right there. ’Twas not to meet you I
-came to the East. Prithee tell your men to take the brig down the
-Pyfleet and come with me to the Ship.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard laughed strangely.</p>
-
-<p>“Friend French,” he said, “are thy horses lame?”</p>
-
-<p>The young man looked at him for a moment before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said at last. “Wonderful lame.”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick threw back his head and laughed heartily.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou art a brave man, French,” he said, but continued quickly: “There
-is such a lameness as can be cured to-morrow for a trip to Tiptree, eh,
-friend?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said the big man, nodding his head sagely, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis a wonderful
-strange lameness that they have.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_41" id="page_41">{41}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Dick nodded.</p>
-
-<p>By this time the rowboat had once more come to the plank across the mud.
-Blueneck, a shadowy figure in the darkness, stepped out and came toward
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Dick gave his orders briefly.</p>
-
-<p>“Take the brig up the Pyfleet,” he said. “Any of these fellows will
-pilot thee,” he added, pointing to the group of Mersea men on the wall.
-Then as an afterthought, “and bring five kegs from the hold to me at the
-Ship Tavern.”</p>
-
-<p>A certain amount of enthusiasm among the volunteer pilots was noticeable
-after this last remark, and Blueneck smiled as he replied, “Ay, ay,
-Cap’n.”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick and his friend Big French, the smuggler’s carter,
-turned, climbed the wall, and walked together down the lonely road to
-the Ship Tavern without speaking.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry!” said Dick, stopping after they had walked for some five
-minutes, his hand feeling for his knife. “What’s that?”</p>
-
-<p>Big French stopped also and, standing side by side in the middle of the
-road, they listened intently. Apparently just behind the hedge on their
-right a human voice, deep and throaty, said clearly,
-“Rum&mdash;rum&mdash;rum&mdash;rum,” the sound trailing off weirdly on the last word.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard crossed himself, but his hand was steady.</p>
-
-<p>“Is’t a spirit?” he said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_42" id="page_42">{42}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” Big French’s voice came stifled from his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard drew his knife. “Then I’ll have at it,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Once again the stifled monosyllable broke from the younger man’s lips.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick looked at his guide quickly. By the faint light of
-the winter moon he saw the man’s face was distorted strangely&mdash;once
-again the ghostly voice behind the hedge said distinctly,
-“Rum&mdash;rum&mdash;ru&mdash;&mdash;.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! ho! ho!” roared French, his laughter suddenly breaking forth.
-“Peace, Mother Swayle,” he shouted, “by our lakin! you had us well-nigh
-feared with your greeting.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard sheathed his knife.</p>
-
-<p>“If ’tis a friend of thine, Master French,” he said, shrugging his
-shoulders, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis of no offence to me. Though by my faith,” he added, as
-a dark figure in flowing garments bounded over the hedge and stood by
-the roadside, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis strange company you keep.”</p>
-
-<p>The tall gaunt woman addressed as Mother Swayle shrank back into the
-hedge.</p>
-
-<p>“Who is it with thee, Big French?” she said in her deep, tired voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Black’erchief Dick, new landed by the wall,” said French.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! I know naught of him&mdash;Peace, good swine&mdash;farewell, Rum!”</p>
-
-<p>There was a note of finality in the last word and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_43" id="page_43">{43}</a></span> Big French started to
-walk on. “Rum,” he said over his shoulder, and added to Dick in an
-undertone, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis only a poor crone&mdash;peace to her&mdash;her wit’s diseased.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” the Spaniard felt the pocket of his coat and pulled out a silver
-dollar. “Here, mother of sin,” he said as he tossed it to her, “buy
-thyself rum withal. Almsgiving is a noble virtue,” he added piously to
-French as they prepared to walk on. Hardly had the words left his lips
-when his silver dollar hit him on the back of the head with considerable
-force.</p>
-
-<p>“May you burn, you mange-struck ronyon,” the deep voice grew shrill in
-its intensity. “All men are villains and you are a king among them.”</p>
-
-<p>With a foreign oath the Spaniard turned about.</p>
-
-<p>“Rum&mdash;rum&mdash;r-u-m,” the voice faded away and they heard the patter of
-feet down the road.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick laughed sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“It is well for Mother Swayle that she lives in the East,” he said, his
-eyes glittering. “Were she in the West she would take my bounty, if
-not&mdash;&mdash;” He laughed unpleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>Big French looked at him anxiously, uncertain how the fiery Spaniard had
-taken the old woman’s vagaries.</p>
-
-<p>“The old one was ducked as a witch in the merrymaking at the Restoring
-of the King,” he said at last. “She was not quite drowned,” he
-continued, “so the folk&mdash;wenches mostly&mdash;look up to her and as I said,
-Captain, her wit’s diseased.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_44" id="page_44">{44}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Dick shrugged his silken-coated shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis no matter,” he said with a wave of his hand.</p>
-
-<p>Big French sighed in relief and they walked on in silence for a minute
-or so. They were now some four hundred yards from the Ship. The high
-building with its great thatch showed a dark outline against the cold
-starlight, but all the uncurtained lower windows showed the warm glow
-within and from the partly open door the sound of singing came out to
-them on the cold breeze.</p>
-
-<p>The two unconsciously hastened their steps. When they reached the gate
-of the courtyard the words of the song could be heard clearly above the
-noise of laughter and banging of pewter.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Pretty Poll she loved a sailor</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nind">Gilbot’s voice was piping a little in advance of the rest.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>And well she loved he,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>But he sailed to the mouth</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Of a stream in the South</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And was losht in the rolling sea.</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And was losht in the rolling sea.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Dick straightened his lace ruffles at his throat.</p>
-
-<p>“The dogs seem merry,” he observed as he kicked open the door and
-stepped into the candle-lit kitchen of the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>All eyes were immediately turned on him, and he<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_45" id="page_45">{45}</a></span> stood perfectly still
-for some seconds enjoying to the full the impression he was making.</p>
-
-<p>The Ship’s company was used to the simple finery of Captain Fen de Witt
-and his men, and most of them had been to the western end of the Island
-and had seen strangers who had come, it was whispered, from London
-itself, but Dick’s magnificence was wholly new to most of them, while
-even those who had seen him before were surprised at the contrast which
-his glistening figure made with the sombre background of the Ship
-kitchen’s smoke-blackened walls.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stood staring at him as long as any of the others, and Mistress Sue
-let the rum she was drawing fill up one of the great pewter tankards and
-spill over on to the stones before she noticed it, so intently did she
-look at the stranger in the doorway.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot alone took no notice of the visitor. He sat happily in his place
-by the fireside, his head thrown back a little and his eyes closed,
-beating time to imaginary singing with his empty pot.</p>
-
-<p>Joe Pullen was the first to speak. He had just entered by a side door
-and apparently was entirely unimpressed by the Spaniard or any one else.</p>
-
-<p>“Evening,” he remarked, as he walked over to the most comfortable seat
-in the chimney-corner and sat down. “Evening to you too, sir,” he said,
-noticing Dick for the first time&mdash;and then he added, peering out of the
-fireplace, “Mistress Sue, a rum if you please.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_46" id="page_46">{46}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick, noting that the spell was broken, swaggered forward
-into the firelight.</p>
-
-<p>“Greeting, friends,” he said courteously, and then after looking round
-curiously his eyes rested on Gilbot. “Is this mine host?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot’s eyes opened slowly and his jaw dropped as he saw for the first
-time the splendidly garbed figure.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” he said at last. “Washt?” He tried to rise but gave it up as an
-impossibility, his brow clouded, and he turned his tankard upside down
-on his knee.</p>
-
-<p>Dick stood looking at him, a slight smile hovering round his mouth and
-twitching the sides of his big Jewish nose.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot’s face cleared as suddenly as it had clouded.</p>
-
-<p>“Ashk Hal,” he said triumphantly, and leaning back once more he closed
-his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“You mistress?” he said, turning to Sue who dropped a curtsey. “Can I
-have a bedchamber here this night?”</p>
-
-<p>Sue replied that all was ready for him, and Dick, having assured himself
-that everything was to his liking, put his hand into his pocket and
-drawing out a handful of gold and silver coins tossed them lightly on
-the table.</p>
-
-<p>“Drinks all round, I pray you, mistress,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>There was a slight stir among the company, and the Spaniard was regarded
-with still more respect.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_47" id="page_47">{47}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Sue stood looking at the coins, her hands on her hips. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis much too
-much,” she murmured.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry! Then, mistress, ’twill do for the next lot. I pray thee haste,
-my throat is parched,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue, her eyes round with admiration, curtseyed again and ran to the
-inner door.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, lass, come hither I prithee,” she called, and then hastened to
-obey the Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>Anny stepped in unnoticed a moment or two later, and busied herself with
-the tankards.</p>
-
-<p>Dick was sitting with his back toward her and she did not see him.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, lass,” said Sue, seeing her, “the foreigner would drink
-sack&mdash;wilt get it for him?”</p>
-
-<p>There was not much call for Canary sack at the Ship, so Anny was some
-minutes finding and tapping a cask. When she returned from the cellar, a
-flagon in her hand, the talk had become more animated and one or two
-lively spirits had started a song, but above the noise a voice
-penetrating although musical was saying loudly, “Marry, Master French,
-do you never drink aught but rum in the East that a gentleman is kept
-waiting ten minutes for a cup of sack?”</p>
-
-<p>French’s deep tones replied slowly:</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, Captain, very little else but rum; sack be only for gentlefolk.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny hastened forward.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s for you, sir,” she said briskly, and then<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_48" id="page_48">{48}</a></span> stopped, awe-struck
-before the Spaniard, dazzled by his appearance.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick stretched out a white jewelled hand for the tankard
-without looking at the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank thee, mistress,” he said carelessly, lifting it to his lips.</p>
-
-<p>Still Anny did not move and Hal Grame, looking up from the rum keg which
-he was tapping, cursed the Spaniard’s clothes with that honest venom
-which is only known to youth.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, a good draught!” The Spaniard put down the pot and touched his lips
-with a lace-edged handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, another by your leave,” he said suddenly. Then his gaze, too,
-became fixed, his dark eyes taking in every detail of her face.</p>
-
-<p>“God’s Fool!” he exclaimed. “Mistress, you are wondrous fair.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed and, her senses returning to her, she curtseyed and taking
-up the empty tankard tripped off with a gentle&mdash;“As you wish,” as she
-went.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick stared after her for a second or two before he turned
-to French.</p>
-
-<p>“By my faith, Master French, you have no poor skill in choosing a
-wench,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Big French laughed and reddened.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” he said carelessly. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis not she but the other I would have
-favour from.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard darted a look of misbelief at his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_49" id="page_49">{49}</a></span> big companion, but he
-said nothing, for Anny had returned and was standing before him, a
-brimming tankard in her hand.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick took the wine and set it by untasted, but retained
-the brown hand which was even smaller than his own and held it firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress,” he said, and Anny thought she had never seen such bright
-merry eyes, “would you deem it an offence if I asked you your name?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled and curtseyed as she pulled away her hand.</p>
-
-<p>“There be no more offence in asking my name than in holding my hand,
-sir,” she said. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis Anny Farren, an you please so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, a good name and a simple,” said the Spaniard, choosing to ignore
-the first remark. “Now tell me, fair Anny,” he continued, “hast ever
-been told how beautiful thou art?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl looked round. No one in the noisy company round the fire was
-listening to them and a gleam of mischief twinkled in her eyes before
-she dropped them as she turned again to the Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, sir,” she said. “Neither has my mirror.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then ’tis a right vile and lying thing, mistress,” said Dick, “for by
-my knife”&mdash;here he drew the slender thing from his chased silver belt
-and held it up to the light&mdash;“I never saw a comelier lass than thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at the knife curiously.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_50" id="page_50">{50}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a pretty weapon you have, sir,” she said innocently.</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty!” he said. “Ah, fair Anny, I would not send the blood from those
-bright cheeks of thine by telling thee what this same dagger and this
-right hand have together accomplished.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, never mind the wenches, Captain, let’s have the story,” said one of
-the group at the fire, the company’s attention having been drawn to the
-Spaniard on the appearance of the knife. Black’erchief Dick stood up.</p>
-
-<p>“Sack for everyone,” he said grandiloquently as he threw another handful
-of coins on the tressled table. And then as the tankards were passed
-round, “To the fairest wench on the Island, Fair Anny of the Ship,” he
-said, lifting his tankard above his head.</p>
-
-<p>The toast was given with a will. The Spaniard was in a fair way to win
-popularity.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a fine gentleman, Hal,” whispered Anny to her sweetheart under
-cover of the general hub-bub.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, a deal too fine,” replied the boy, putting a pot down with such
-violence that all the others rattled and clinked against one another
-with the shock.</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou art very foolish, O Hal o’ mine,” she said softly.</p>
-
-<p>“There be more tales to tell o’ this dagger than will suffice for one
-evening.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_51" id="page_51">{51}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard’s voice was once more raised in a flaunting tone. “Let it
-be enough,” he continued, “to say that it hath some ninety lives to
-answer for.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a general gasp at this information and a slow smile spread
-over Black’erchief Dick’s face as he noted their amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“It will be wonderful old I reckon?” Joe Pullen put the question
-quietly, but as though he expected an answer in the affirmative.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” the Spaniard smiled again, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>twas of my own killings I was
-talking,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Joe Pullen leant back and closed his eyes as though bored with the
-conversation.</p>
-
-<p>This procedure seemed to irritate the Spaniard, for he said suddenly,
-“Look, friend, ’tis a fair weapon,” and he threw the glittering thing at
-the man in the high-backed seat with a seemingly careless jerk of the
-wrist. The dagger shot through the air, a streak of glistening steel,
-and fastened itself in the wood half an inch above Joe’s head.</p>
-
-<p>Sue shrieked, but there was a murmur of admiration at the feat from the
-men looking on.</p>
-
-<p>Lazily Joe Pullen sat up and wrenched the blade out of the soft wood; he
-studied the dagger carefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” he said at last, an expression of polite interest on his face, “a
-wonderful fine throw that, sir,” and then added, the knife poised
-delicately between a clumsy thumb and forefinger, “I wonder now could<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_52" id="page_52">{52}</a></span> I
-do that?” He raised his hand and appeared to be taking aim directly at
-the Spaniard’s head.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>And was losht in the rolling sea</i>,”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nind">murmured Gilbot, his head fell forward on his chest and his pot,
-slipping off his knee, fell clattering on the stones. The noise woke
-him, and he looked up just in time to see Pullen, knife in hand,
-standing in the middle of the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? eh?” the old man’s voice had the remnant of a note of authority in
-it. “Put down t’ knife, lad. Ain’t no good in knives.” His head fell
-forward on his chest again. “Why not shing happy shong?” he mumbled.</p>
-
-<p>Joe grinned. “Ah,” he said slowly, “maybe the old’n’s right.” He handed
-the knife to the Spaniard who took it without a word. “I might have hit
-you&mdash;I ain’t a very good hand wi’ knives,” he said pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard smiled graciously. “Doubtless you will learn,” he said, his
-jauntiness returning, and then continuing, “Fair Mistress Anny, will you
-see these tapped?” and he pointed to five rum kegs which Blueneck,
-Habakkuk Coot, and one or two others of the <i>Coldlight’s</i> crew had just
-brought in. “Rum all round,” he said, “and the charge to me.”</p>
-
-<p>By the time his last command had been obeyed, the company in the Ship
-was more noisy than before, and, answering to the call for a song, old
-Gilbot, having been assisted to his feet, leaned his back<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_53" id="page_53">{53}</a></span> against the
-nearest ale barrel and quavered forth in a voice which evidently had
-once been very tuneful:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Oh, no one remembers poor Will</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Who shtayed by hish mate at the mill;</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>He ground up more bonesh</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Than barley or stonesh,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And more than old Rowley could kill.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“More bones, more bones,” roared the company as the rum flowed more
-freely.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>More bones! more bones!</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And more than old Rowley could kill.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Ah, ha, may the Lord bless ye, fine gentlemen, and could ye spare a
-drop o’ rum for a poor woman to take to her man who’s dying o’ the
-cold?”</p>
-
-<p>This request, uttered in a high-pitched whining voice coming from just
-behind the half-opened door, startled the revellers and they paused to
-listen, all eyes being fastened on the door. They watched it open a
-little farther, and round it just below the latch appeared the head of
-an old woman. The face, red and coarse, smiled leeringly, and the gray
-elf locks above it were matted and ill-kempt.</p>
-
-<p>Anny, who was standing near Black’erchief Dick, caught her breath.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord! ’Tis Pet Salt,” she whispered as she shrank against the table.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard dropped a hand over hers unnoticed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_54" id="page_54">{54}</a></span> by any one save
-Hal&mdash;“Why shudderest thou, wench?” he said softly. Anny slipped her hand
-away.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis naught,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Will ’ee spare a little rum, fair gentlemen?”</p>
-
-<p>The old woman came a little farther into the room, disclosing a body so
-bent and twisted as to be hardly human. She came nearer, the firelight
-flickered on her, and a murmur rose from the company, she was so ragged
-and scarred. The Spaniard looked at her critically, then he turned to
-French.</p>
-
-<p>“You have strange crones up this part of the Island, friend,” he
-observed.</p>
-
-<p>French laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, this one won’t treat your almsgiving the way Nan Swayle did,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>At the sound of the name, Nan Swayle, an extraordinary change came over
-the terrible old figure in the firelight. She straightened herself with
-a fearful effort and, her small eyes blazing with fury, broke forth into
-such a stream of horrible epithets that the rough company of the Ship
-looked at one another shamefacedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Peace, hag,” the Spaniard strode out from the crowd and touched the old
-woman with the tip of his forefinger.</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt stopped, and, seeing the gaudy figure in front of her, fell on
-her knees and holding up a fat, begrimed hand recommenced her whining.</p>
-
-<p>Dick stood there for a second or two, and then<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_55" id="page_55">{55}</a></span> turned his head.
-“Blueneck,” he said, “bring out a small rum keg.”</p>
-
-<p>The old woman fell snivelling at his feet.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard kicked her gently.</p>
-
-<p>“O mother of many evils,” he said, “get thee out of this room with thy
-keg, methinks the air stinks with thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stepped forward, jerked the woman to her feet, and put the rum
-on the floor beside her. Mumbling blessings, thanks, and curses, she
-stumbled out of the open door, the keg clasped in her arms.</p>
-
-<p>Dick watched her go and then turning to Sue: “Mistress, I would wash my
-hands,” he said, looking at the tip of his forefinger.</p>
-
-<p>Sue ran to get water and the company began to break up for the night.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-night to ’ee,” shouted Hal, as Joe Pullen went out, “may thy wife
-be sleeping sound.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would she were sleeping with a heavenly soundness, mate,” replied the
-other as he shut the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p>The crew of the <i>Coldlight</i> went off in a body to their ship, rolling
-and singing happily.</p>
-
-<p>Sue and Hal assisted the old landlord to his room, a nightly duty of
-theirs, and Anny flitted about getting candles for the visitors.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at Big French as they stood for a moment alone together
-before the dying fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks thy horses will not have recovered from their lameness by
-to-morrow, friend French,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_56" id="page_56">{56}</a></span>” he said, as Anny, two lighted candles in her
-hand, appeared at an inner doorway.</p>
-
-<p>French followed the direction of the other’s eyes, then he shrugged his
-broad shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“As you wish, Captain,” he said carelessly, and wondered why the
-Spaniard should laugh so triumphantly at his answer.</p>
-
-<p>Some minutes later all was still in the Ship Tavern. Hal Grame alone
-stood before the fast-graying embers in the kitchen, thinking miserably.
-For the first time since he could remember, his childhood’s sweetheart
-had forgotten to kiss him as she bade him good-night.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_57" id="page_57">{57}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_V" id="CHAPTER_V"></a>CHAPTER V</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“A</span>N EXCELLENT repast, fair mistress, and one I warrant you well
-appreciated.”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick pushed the empty platter from before him, leaned back
-in his seat, and looked round the room with approval.</p>
-
-<p>It was six o’clock in the morning; and although only a faint grayish
-light was beginning to steal in the windows and the air was cool and
-slightly rum-tainted, the kitchen in the old Ship Inn presented a
-cheerful and lively scene of domestic bustle. The fire, though newly
-lighted, blazed brightly and the logs, some with the hoar-frost still
-glittering on them, crackled and spat merrily.</p>
-
-<p>Hal, his boyish face glowing after a hasty splash at the well-nigh
-frozen pump, hastened to and fro from the scullery to the kitchen,
-bearing great trays of newly washed tankards, while Sue, a little paler
-than on the preceding night, but all the same retaining most of her
-usual good humour, her sleeves rolled high above her elbows and a
-sail-cloth apron tied about her waist, appeared from time to time in the
-open doorway between the kitchen and the back scullery, whence the
-pleasant smell of cooking emerged.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_58" id="page_58">{58}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Gilbot was yet abed but his seat with its old hay-stuffed cushions was
-put in readiness for his coming, in his favourite corner by the
-fireplace.</p>
-
-<p>One of the long tressle-tables had been pulled out into the wider part
-of the room clear of the high-backed seats and it was here, one at
-either end of the table, that Black’erchief Dick and Big French sat in
-tall, wooden, box-like chairs, finishing the first meal of the day.</p>
-
-<p>Anny waited on them.</p>
-
-<p>This morning she was more beautiful than on the evening before. At least
-so thought the Spaniard as he watched her trip to and fro with a wooden
-platter or an earthen pitcher of home-brewed ale in her hands. Her
-cheeks seemed to him to have more colour in them, her little bare feet,
-as they pattered over the stones, more elasticity and lightness of
-touch, and her wonderful, shadowed green eyes, more mirth and gaiety
-than he had noticed before. As she moved about she sang little snatches
-of old songs in a lulling, childish voice, tuneful and sweet.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>My father’s gone a-roving&mdash;a-roving&mdash;a-roving,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>My father’s gone a-roving across the raging sea,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>With a feather in his stocking cap,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>A new son on his rocking lap,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>My father’s gone a-roving and never thinks o’ me.</i>”<br /></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_59" id="page_59">{59}</a></span></div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Spaniard’s white fingers kept time to the simple refrain almost
-without his knowing it; he caught himself silently repeating the words
-after her, and he laughed abruptly and then looked round him so fiercely
-that none dared ask the jest.</p>
-
-<p>It was absurd, he told himself, he, Black’erchief Dick, smuggler, chief
-of all the Eastern coast, Captain of the <i>Coldlight</i>, and owner of six
-other good sailing-vessels in the trade, to waste his time humming tunes
-after a serving-wench, a pretty lass of some seventeen years, who served
-rum to a pack of greasy fishermen in a wayside tavern on the almost
-uninhabited end of a mud island, when there were women in France, in
-Spain&mdash;he shrugged his shoulders, and to take his thoughts off the girl
-he ran his mind over the events of the preceding night.</p>
-
-<p>“Friend,” he said suddenly, wiping his lips with a dainty handkerchief,
-“that same woman who so vilely returned my alms yesternight, what say’st
-thou is her name?”</p>
-
-<p>Big French sat up and yawned.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” he said, “that was Nan Swayle.”</p>
-
-<p>At the sound of his voice Anny, who had been attending to the fire on
-the other side of the room, came forward and stood at the end of the
-table, looking at the pair with wide-open, serious eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Nan Swayle,” the Spaniard rolled the name round his tongue
-thoughtfully. “Ah, didst say she had been ducked as a witch?”</p>
-
-<p>Big French laughed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_60" id="page_60">{60}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “at the Restoration of the King, and a mirthful figure
-she made, Captain, her thumbs and great toes tied crossways&mdash;so,” and he
-chuckled at the thought of it.</p>
-
-<p>Anny leant forward, her face flushed and her eyes bright. “A cruel jest,
-Master French, to so ill-treat a poor woman as far from being a witch as
-you an angel.”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick regarded her excited little form and earnest eyes
-with open admiration.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, Mistress,” he said, “what a friend thou art to Mother Swayle!
-May I ask what she has done for thee?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny dropped her eyes before the Spaniard’s smile.</p>
-
-<p>“She was ever good to me, sir,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Big French grinned.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Anny,” he said, “Nan Swayle’s good will is about all which thy
-grandsire has ever given you, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl flushed and Sue and Hal stepped forward to listen.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“Thy grandsire, Mistress?” he enquired.</p>
-
-<p>Anny reddened again.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis an old story, sir,” she murmured.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee, Master French,” the Spaniard turned lazily and looked at the
-young man. “Prithee tell it.”</p>
-
-<p>French shrugged his shoulders.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_61" id="page_61">{61}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis naught,” he said carelessly, “save that in their youth old Ben
-Farran&mdash;the lass’s grandsire&mdash;and Nan Swayle, a sweet wench they say she
-was then&mdash;’tis strange what the rum will do to a woman’s face&mdash;well,
-Captain, they were&mdash;as you might say, sweethearts.”</p>
-
-<p>He raised his eyes to Sue at the last word, but she was engrossed in the
-Spaniard, and looking away again he went on: “Well, Captain&mdash;Ben was a
-sailor&mdash;on the <i>Eliza</i> he was&mdash;and there he got the taste for rum pretty
-bad, and Nan, she couldn’t get the stuff for him so when Pet Salt came
-along&mdash;Pet o’ the Saltings she was then&mdash;with her begging tricks, the
-old devil left the one for the other. That’s all,” he concluded.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” the Spaniard smiled, “a pretty story,” and then turning to Anny,
-“And so, Mistress, Nan Swayle hath a soft heart for thee, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, sir, she is very good to Red and me,” Anny said demurely.</p>
-
-<p>“Red? And who might Red be?” The Spaniard looked up quickly. “A lover?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed again.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, sir, my little brother,” she said softly. “He lives with Mother
-Swayle.”</p>
-
-<p>“So!” The thin, straight eyebrows on the olive brow rose in two arches.
-“I thought thy mother died when thou wast born?”</p>
-
-<p>Big French broke in quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “she did. The lad, Red, a fine<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_62" id="page_62">{62}</a></span> child and one I love, was
-brought home from the South by young Ruddy, the wench’s father, the trip
-before his last&mdash;drowned he was, peace to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” the eyebrows straightened themselves. Black’erchief Dick turned
-once more to Anny. “And so my little beauty hath only Nan Swayle to take
-care of her,” he said, smiling at her kindly as though she had been a
-child.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay!” The word escaped from Hal Grame’s lips before he had time to stop
-it. Immediately the Spaniard’s glittering black eyes were turned on the
-young Norseman. They took in every detail of his appearance, the coarse
-scarlet homespun shirt, the white throat, and girlish pink and white
-face crowned with golden-yellow elf locks, and the deep blue eyes which
-faltered and fell before the Spaniard’s as they bent on the boy in an
-amused stare.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, sir, and who else?” Black’erchief Dick spoke negligently, the
-smile still on his lips.</p>
-
-<p>The boy blushed and would not meet the other’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“We look after our wenches at the Ship,” he said gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course you do, O knight of the Spigot,” he said genially. “Believe
-me, sir, I had no meaning to cast a slur upon the fame of your house.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, ’tis well, then,” and without looking up Hal<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_63" id="page_63">{63}</a></span> began to clear away
-the delf from the now dismantled table.</p>
-
-<p>Dick watched him march off with a tray of dirty crockery in his hands,
-then he shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, what a joskin!” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>Anny opened her mouth to speak but checked herself and laughed instead.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked up at her.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress,” he said, “might I beg thee to hie to the gate and tell me if
-thou see’st aught of my rapscallion mate, Master Blueneck?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny was halfway to the door when Sue ran after her.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll with thee,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked after them.</p>
-
-<p>“A marvellous pretty wench but wondrous evilly clothed,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“What, Sue?” Big French spoke in great surprise. The Spaniard smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Cunning dog!” he said under his breath. “Nay, ’twas the other I meant,”
-he said quietly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Big French laughed. “The lass has to wear her mistress’s
-cast-off,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed. Her mistress? Is Sue then mistress of the Ship?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress Sue,” said French, laying stress on the first word, “is niece
-to Master Gilbot.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? eh? What’s that?” said Gilbot, who had<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_64" id="page_64">{64}</a></span> just come in, looking up at
-the sound of his name. “Plague on you all disturbing me,” And then
-looking round, “Where’s Hal?”</p>
-
-<p>“You are out of humour this morning, host,” observed the Spaniard
-good-humouredly.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” Gilbot’s voice quavered more than ever. “Ain’t had time to get
-happy yet, that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Dick looked up, his eyes twinkling merrily. “Will you drink a
-stoup of sack with me, mine host?”</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot brightened visibly.</p>
-
-<p>“Be happy to,” he said quickly and then called loudly for Hal, who
-presently came in flushed and still a little sulky.</p>
-
-<p>Dick gave the order, and the boy obeyed sullenly, slopping a good gill
-of the wine over the side of the tankard as he handed it to the
-Spaniard. Then suddenly, as though realizing the absurdity of his
-childishness, he drew it back, and, mumbling something about not quite
-the full measure, filled it up again, wiped the pewter with the skirt of
-his sacking apron before he once more offered it to the Spaniard, who
-stood looking through the open door without apparently having noticed
-the boy at all. Now, however, he took the tankard, drained it at a
-draught and threw down a silver coin by way of payment.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, master tapster,” he said approvingly, “I do not look to find a
-sweeter cup of sack any place from here to the New World&mdash;another, I
-prithee,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_65" id="page_65">{65}</a></span>” and added, as Hal set it before him, “An I grow this
-partiality for sweet sack, Hal, methinks I shall needs have to borrow
-the belt of that merry knight, John Falstaff, whom I saw in a foolish
-piece at the playhouse when last I visited London, that city of evil
-stenches.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal did not follow the jest, but in spite of this and his present
-ill-humour, he was forced to laugh with the spry little Spaniard who
-chuckled so mirthfully, and whose bright sparkling eyes were dancing as
-they glanced at him over the tankard’s rim.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment Anny entered the kitchen and Dick, seeing her, raised his
-rumkin.</p>
-
-<p>“To the health of Mother Swayle’s charge,” he said, smiling.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot looked up suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother Swayle?” he said in surprise, and then added confidentially to
-Dick, “Terrible old woman&mdash;in liquor nearly all the day&mdash;oh,
-disgusting.” He finished his draught, smacked his lips, and wiped them
-with the back of his hand. “Ah, you’re right, sir, wonderful sack we
-sells,” he remarked.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard suggested that he should take another and Gilbot cheerfully
-accepted.</p>
-
-<p>“Master Blueneck is coming up the road, an it please you, sir,” said
-Sue, coming in from the courtyard.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I thank thee, Mistress,” said the Spaniard courteously as he turned
-to help Anny lift an unusually heavy log on to the cracking fire, but
-Sue<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_66" id="page_66">{66}</a></span> curtseyed and blushed as though he had looked at her with the same
-fire in his glance as lurked in the one which he bestowed on the younger
-girl, and her lip trembled as he turned away. All this which he saw and
-a great deal more which he thought he saw made Master Ezekiel French
-bite his honey-coloured beard and swear many oaths and curses against
-the slim white-handed little foreigner who chatted so gallantly with the
-wenches of the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck, entering at this moment, was surprised to see his master
-talking so earnestly with a chit of a child who as he rightly guessed
-had not more than seventeen years to her credit.</p>
-
-<p>“The brig is due to start in five minutes if we mean to catch the tide,
-Captain,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Master Blueneck,” the Spaniard turned affably, “and if we missed
-the tide what terrible mishap would that be?”</p>
-
-<p>The sailor shuffled uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re merry, Captain,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, Blueneck, I am, indeed, so merry that I cannot abear to have a man
-with a face as long as the yard-arm about me. Here, my young host,” he
-hailed Hal from the fireplace. “Give this dog some of thy famous sack,
-make him light-hearted as I,” and he turned once more to the two girls
-and Big French.</p>
-
-<p>“Master French,” he said, “I trust to meet thee at the Victory this
-even, with thy three horses in the courtyard, and a trip to Tiptree in
-thy mind.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_67" id="page_67">{67}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>French looked pleased and would have entered into business details with
-the Captain, but the other cut him short.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, Master French,” the Spaniard’s tone was reproachful, “you would
-not pester me with tales of rum kegs and silk bales when I have but
-three minutes to bid farewell to two fair beauties even though it be but
-for three days?”</p>
-
-<p>“Three days?” Sue spoke in pleasure, French in surprise, and Blueneck in
-genuine alarm.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said carelessly, “methinks this eastern end of the Island more
-suited to my needs than the west. In three days’ time I shall return,
-and rest me at the sign of the Ship for a while.”</p>
-
-<p>Big French looked at him in amazement and Blueneck swore under his
-breath at his master’s eccentricities.</p>
-
-<p>Sue smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“All will be ready for you, sir,” she said. “I thank you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard bowed, sweeping the floor with his big hat. “Farewell,
-Mistresses,” he said gallantly as they curtseyed, rather abashed at his
-Spanish courtesy.</p>
-
-<p>“And now Master French,” he continued, “if thou wilt accompany me to the
-wall we will discuss that little matter of a trip to Tiptree.”</p>
-
-<p>French looked at the debonair little figure half-irritated by the
-underlying note of command in his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_68" id="page_68">{68}</a></span> voice, but on the other hand half
-charmed by an indescribable air of perfect freedom which seemed to be
-exhaled from him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m coming, Captain,” he said, and nodded to the girls before he turned
-to follow Black’erchief Dick, who with another bow marched out of the
-open door, Blueneck after him.</p>
-
-<p>Sue went to the door and watched them going down the road; Big French, a
-handsome figure in his blue coat, strode beside the slight, gaudily clad
-little Spaniard whose head hardly reached a foot above the carter’s
-belt, while Blueneck trudged alone behind. “Ah,” said she, her eyes
-fixed on the small, almost insignificant figure in the distance, “what a
-gallant gentleman!”</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe,” she said, “but I don’t hold with gentlefolk,” and she walked
-across the room to where Hal was adding up the yesterday’s reckonings.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal,” she said as she sat down beside him, “I did not kiss thee last
-night when you bade me good-night.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal kept his eyes fixed on the slate in front of him, but he ceased to
-take any account of the figures thereon.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal,” said Anny again coaxingly. “Thou didst not kiss me when I said
-good-night to thee.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy did not raise his eyes and the girl moved a little closer to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal,” she said plaintively. Still he did not move.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_69" id="page_69">{69}</a></span> “Hal,” said Anny
-again. “O, very well,” she added, a catch in her voice, “if thou wilt
-not&mdash;&mdash;” And she rose to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you want, maid?” said Hal gruffly, albeit somewhat hastily.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat down again.</p>
-
-<p>“I owe you a kiss, Hal,” she said softly, twisting her fingers together
-as they lay on her lap.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” Hal’s tone was still gruff.</p>
-
-<p>“You owe me a kiss, Hal,” she said without looking at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” the boy drew crosses and rings round the side of the slate.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“You were adding the reckonings, Hal, and I want to pay mine,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry I doubted thee, Anny, but the Spaniard is so fine,” said Hal,
-a moment or two later, all debts having been squared.</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed happily.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis not you but Big French who should be afeared of the Spaniard,” she
-said, looking over toward Sue, who was still staring through the open
-door. As though aware that she was being spoken of the girl turned
-round.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, lass,” she called. “Come, I would talk to thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny rose.</p>
-
-<p>“Foolish one,” she whispered to Hal as her lips brushed his ear.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_70" id="page_70">{70}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hal watched her go lightly across the room and then returned to his
-reckoning much comforted, but he reflected as he worked that whether she
-had paid him back or not Anny Farren had certainly forgotten to kiss him
-on the night that Dick Delfazio, the Spaniard, first came to the Ship
-Inn.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Sue and Anny stood together in the doorway deep in talk.</p>
-
-<p>“But, Anny,” Sue was saying, as she held out the skirt of her gown for
-the other’s inspection, “think you ’twill serve another winter?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at it for a moment; then she displayed her own. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis much
-better than mine, Mistress Sue,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! but you need not look so neat as I,” Sue spoke quickly and without
-thinking. But, seeing the other girl’s lip tremble, she put an arm round
-her slim shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, I did not mean to speak so,” she said kindly. “I was thinking but
-of myself; see, lass, when Master French next goes to Tiptree he shall
-bring me a new length of flannel from the market, and I will give thee
-this gown, for, truly, thine is very old.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up and smiled; the gift of one of Sue’s old gowns was an
-event for her.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank thee kindly, mistress,” she said, as Sue shook out the folds of
-the faded purple homespun frock and tightened the lacing of the corsage.
-“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis not so bad,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at it with pleasure and she laughed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_71" id="page_71">{71}</a></span> happily. “Nay,” she
-said, “it will suit me well, I thank you, mistress.”</p>
-
-<p>Sue bent and kissed her.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a good wench, Anny,” she said, “in spite of yourself.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_72" id="page_72">{72}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VI" id="CHAPTER_VI"></a>CHAPTER VI</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“S</span>IT where you are, Joseph Pullen, and hold your peace, and be thankful
-you have a wife who knows your mind without you for ever speaking of
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Amy Pullen, her kirtle hitched up at one side to give her
-greater freedom in the discharge of her household duties, strode across
-her small kitchen, an earthenware bowl of cold fatty broth in her hands
-and two small children hanging at her petticoats.</p>
-
-<p>The kitchen, which was very small, served also as a general living room
-for the Pullen family, and this evening, four or five days after Captain
-Dick had first left the Ship Inn, it was crowded. Joe, debarred from his
-favourite seat by his wife, who liked the whole of the fire to cook at,
-sat in a corner on a heap of miscellaneous lumber, a net which he was
-mending spread around him. In addition to the two little mites who hung
-on to their mother as though life itself depended on it, three other
-children were in the room, one baby of a year or so was nursed by
-another, a pretty fair-haired little girl of eight or nine, who sat on a
-roughly made-up bed built into the wall opposite the fireplace. She
-amused the child by making quaint shadows on the wall with her<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_73" id="page_73">{73}</a></span> hand in
-the flickering firelight, and save for the clatter of the cooking, the
-baby’s happy gurgles and half-spoken words of delight were the only
-sounds in the warm little room. The third child, a boy of ten, even now
-remarkably like his father, sat on the lowest rung of a wide wooden
-ladder which led to two little rooms above the kitchen, with a skep of
-small onions at his side and a knife in his hand. As he peeled the
-onions the tears ran down his cheeks and he sniffed at intervals.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked up over his net at the boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Tant, hold thy peace,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The child sniffed again.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t hold it, ’tis these,” he said, wiping his eyes on his jersey
-sleeve, and indicating the skep with one dirty little foot. Joe grunted,
-and the child went on peeling, his tears falling faster and his sniffs
-becoming more and more frequent. At last Joe looked up again.</p>
-
-<p>“Put down the knife, lad, and leave the onions if you can’t peel them
-without setting up a snort like a hog every other second.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy, only too glad to be relieved of his task, obeyed with alacrity,
-and got up looking lovingly at the unlatched door that led out on to the
-road. He had not made a step in that direction, however, before his
-mother, who had been listening, turned from the fire. “Tant, sit down
-and finish them onions,” she said sharply, and then turning to her
-husband who was assiduously attending to his net, she said,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_74" id="page_74">{74}</a></span> “Isn’t it
-enough, Joe Pullen, for me to wear myself to skin and bone feeding you,
-looking after your children, cleaning your home? Isn’t it enough, I say,
-for me to do everything for you, to work like a common drudge, to keep
-you idle, without you forbidding my son to help me?”</p>
-
-<p>Her voice grew more and more shrill and her words came faster and faster
-until her speech became almost unintelligible.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked up cautiously from his work.</p>
-
-<p>“O peace with ye, Amy,” he said impatiently, the easily called colour
-mounting up to his fair hair and his blue eyes growing darker.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, that’s it.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen was a tall, well-made woman, and her eyes screwed
-themselves into slits of fury as she swung round, platter in hand,
-upsetting both children at her skirts, who began at once to whimper with
-fear.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, that’s it, I must hold my peace! I, who slave day and night to make
-you happy, must hold my peace! Hold my peace forsooth!” she continued,
-breaking into a sharp laugh. “Look you, Joe Pullen, where would you and
-your children be without me? Tell me that. Oh! you sithering rat, you
-ungrateful mass of rum-sodden food, where would you be without me?”</p>
-
-<p>Joe vouchsafed no answer and the good lady, her wrath abating as
-suddenly as it had arisen, contented herself with a few muttered
-questions as to the possi<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_75" id="page_75">{75}</a></span>bility of Joe and his family remaining for an
-instant on the earth without her, turned again to the fire, shaking off
-the yelping little ones who tried to clasp her knees.</p>
-
-<p>Tant continued to sniff over his onion peeling unmolested.</p>
-
-<p>Called by her mother, the little fair-haired girl, who played so happily
-with the baby, left her game and, placing her charge carefully on the
-bed, set out six earthen bowls on the plain boarded table, which took up
-most of the space in the middle of the little room, and summoned the
-family to supper. Not until everyone was seated did Mistress Pullen lift
-the great iron pot off the hook on the chimney beam and, resting it on
-the edge of the table, dole out to each person an allowance, which
-varied in quantity according to age. In the same way she distributed
-chunks of coarse home-made bread, and then seeing everyone served,
-finally she sat down to her own meal.</p>
-
-<p>The Pullens ate without speaking, quickly, noisily, and with evident
-relish, dipping the bread in the broth and eating the sodden lumps with
-their fingers. Mistress Amy held the baby on her lap, feeding the little
-creature with sops from her own bowl.</p>
-
-<p>When all the broth had been disposed of, more bread and an earthen jar
-of honey were brought out and the meal continued.</p>
-
-<p>Inside the little kitchen all was warm, one might almost say stuffy,
-for, in spite of the big fire and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_76" id="page_76">{76}</a></span> number of people inside, the door
-was shut fast and the one little window which the room possessed was not
-made to open. However, the noise that the rain, swiftly driven over the
-marshlands by a fierce wind, made on the glass, and the hissing drops
-that descended the wide chimney, all helped to make the kitchen as
-desirable as it could be.</p>
-
-<p>“Joan Bellamie was a-saying that the Captain of the <i>Coldlight</i> hath
-come back to the Ship, Joseph. Have ye heard aught of it?” Mistress
-Pullen looked across the table at her husband as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>Joe dropped his eyes before her gaze.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” he said casually.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, indeed!” Amy’s voice rose again, “and ye did not think to tell
-me, did ye? Here I work the live-long day, and you so surly that you
-will not tell me the common gossip of the Island! I’d like to meet
-another woman who’d rest with ye.” Then she added more quietly. “Did any
-of his crew return with him, perchance?”</p>
-
-<p>Joe shifted uneasily in his chair, and reached out for another piece of
-bread before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“They did not,” he said shortly.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen took a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p>“And to think I have lived with a liar fit for the burning all these
-years!” she exclaimed. “For it was only this very day that I saw Master
-Coot (and if ever there was a snivelling sucking-pig ’tis he)&mdash;with my
-very own eyes and he told me that the brig was that minute moored in the
-Pyfleet, and every<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_77" id="page_77">{77}</a></span> man of her crew aboard. A’m ashamed of ye, Joseph,
-to lie before the children the way you do.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, well, my girl,” he said significantly, “as far as we’re concerned
-they ain’t on the Island, see?” And he rose to his feet and stepped
-across to the fireplace.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen opened her mouth to reply, but at this moment a violent
-knocking at the door interrupted her.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked across at his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“Whoever will it be?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“If you had any sense at all you’d go and see instead of standing like a
-sheep thunderstruck,” said the lady, getting up from her seat, her baby
-on her arm. Striding over to the door, she opened it wide and then
-stepped back in astonishment, letting a blast of cold wind and rain into
-the over-heated room.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, come in, whatever you are,” she said at last to someone outside
-as she held the door wide open to let them pass. “If you’re not welcome
-ye can always go again.”</p>
-
-<p>A strange bedraggled little figure stepped into the candle-lit room. He
-was about nine years old, scantily clothed in a pair of sail-cloth
-breeches so large for him that the waist was fastened about his neck
-with a coarse string, and the knee-latchets flapped loosely over his
-little bare muddy feet, which were torn and scratched with thorns, and
-blue with cold. Round his shoulders he hugged what appeared to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_78" id="page_78">{78}</a></span> the
-remains of a woman’s kirtle, the ragged hem hanging down to his knees
-and little rivulets of water dripping off the frayed ends on to the
-bricks. His face was like his feet, blue and muddy, but two sparkling
-blue eyes and a shock of red hair gave a certain charm to an otherwise
-insignificant countenance.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen shut the door behind him before she turned to look at
-her visitor. As soon as she had done so, however, she whisked her baby
-over to the other side of the room, exclaiming as she did so: “Mother of
-Heaven! ’Tis Red Farren, the Witch’s brat. Out of the house with him. He
-can’t stay here bewitching the whole of us.”</p>
-
-<p>The little creature looked up at her, his face puckering. “Not a witch’s
-brat,” he said, and then putting his grimy little fists to his eyes
-began to cry bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>Joe Pullen’s fair-haired daughter made a step toward the pitiful little
-figure, but her father’s hand on her arm restrained her.</p>
-
-<p>“You stay still, Alice, unless you want to wake up one day and find
-yourself a gray girl or a coney,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Alice, rather frightened, obeyed, and Tant stood by her, his arm round
-her, while the two smaller children hung as usual to their mother’s
-skirts. The whole Pullen family entrenched behind the table stood
-looking at the weeping little stranger for some seconds before any one
-spoke again. At last Joe, his natural kindliness overcoming his
-superstitious fears,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_79" id="page_79">{79}</a></span> stepped round the table and took the child by the
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Why did ye leave Nan’s cabin this time o’ night, lad?” he asked him.</p>
-
-<p>The boy looked fearfully behind him, and Joe, noting the movement,
-himself turned round in some apprehension. However, nothing untoward
-being there, Red began to speak through his sobs.</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt and Nan is fightin’ horrid,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen, her curiosity getting the better of her discretion,
-came a little nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt?” she said. “How did Pet Salt come to be up there?”</p>
-
-<p>“She comed to beg some meal cake,” the child began. “She said she wanted
-it for Ben.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Mistress Pullen sniffed and looked at her husband significantly.
-“And wasn’t it for Ben, manikin?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>The child looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said eagerly. “No, that’s why they is fighting, mistress,
-because ’twas not for my grandsire. No, Nan saw the old ronyon eating it
-herself.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe threw back his head and began to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! ho! and did you run away because the two crones were fighting,
-lad?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The child nodded, and his tears began to flow again. “And they’s hurt
-Win!” he blurted out.</p>
-
-<p>“Win? Who’s Win?” said Joe curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, peace with you worrying the brat,” said<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_80" id="page_80">{80}</a></span> Amy. “Prithee, child, did
-Nan Swayle lay hands on Pet Salt because she had eaten the meal-cake Nan
-had made for thy grandsire?” she questioned eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>The child shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“No mistress, ’twas was not made for Grandsire, ’twas all we had left,
-but Nan said that if Ben wanted it he must have it and we go hungry. So
-she was vexed at the ronyon’s eating of it herself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! art hungry now?” The question escaped Joe’s lips before he had time
-to stop it.</p>
-
-<p>The child looked up eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, his eyes straying to the remains of the food on the
-table. “Ay, will ye give me some?”</p>
-
-<p>Joe immediately stretched his hand for the remnant of the loaf of bread
-and the child’s face brightened with expectation, but Mistress Pullen
-stepped forward.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother of Saints! have I wedded a loon? Would ye have the household
-entirely bewitched, Joseph Pullen, that you’d feed a witch-child under
-our very roof?” she said, as she snatched the bread from his hand and
-replaced it on the table.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked sheepish and little Red began to cry again. Mistress Pullen
-reddened and sniffed fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“If he hungers he better go to his sister at the Ship,” she said tartly.
-“Heaven knows what with her Captain and her other men she ought to glean
-enough to look after her brother.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe turned on his wife in honest indignation.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_81" id="page_81">{81}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Amy! how dare ye speak so of Hal Grame’s lass?” he said. “I’m not going
-to have my mate’s sweetheart spoke of so.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe you like the lass yourself,” she sneered, and then added
-fiercely, “anyway, you ought to be ashamed of yourself letting a witch’s
-brat stay in the room with your own children. Out of the house with him,
-you loony.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at the forlorn little boy and then at his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe I better go with the child,” he suggested casually.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen turned on him, withering contempt in her glance.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” she said, “maybe you had. Lord, what an unnatural beast you are,
-preferring to go to a rum-shop in the company of a bastard brat than to
-rest in peace at your own fireside. Oh, go by all means, and the devil
-with you. You fool, do you think Nan Swayle has forgiven the ducking you
-gave her at the Restoring of the King?”</p>
-
-<p>And with this parting shaft, Mistress Pullen, baby on arm, strode across
-the kitchen and climbed up the wide ladder to the rooms above.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked about him undecidedly. Then his glance fell on the boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s Win?” he asked, suddenly remembering his question of a minute or
-two before.</p>
-
-<p>The little boy began to cry again and opening his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_82" id="page_82">{82}</a></span> kirtle-cloak
-disclosed to the fisherman’s astounded eyes a little black kitten nearly
-dead with fright and drenched with rain.</p>
-
-<p>“This is Win,” said Red. “Him’s hurt!”</p>
-
-<p>Joe stepped back in horror.</p>
-
-<p>“The witch’s cat,” he ejaculated.</p>
-
-<p>Red looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“No!” he said, “only a little one, look, only a very little one.” He
-held it up for Joe’s inspection. It certainly looked a very small, and
-young, harmless animal. It was much too frightened to move, and the wet
-fur clung closely to its emaciated body.</p>
-
-<p>Joe came a little nearer and then reached for his coat and cap which
-hung behind the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, lad,” he said gruffly, “we must get on to the Ship.”</p>
-
-<p>The child looked round the warm, bright room longingly, but he followed
-Joe out into the rain without a word.</p>
-
-<p>The man carefully latched the door behind him, and they walked on in
-silence for a minute or so, fighting their way against the storm.</p>
-
-<p>It was bitterly cold and Joe looked down at his little companion
-anxiously; the child was stumbling along, the kitten tightly clasped in
-his arms; once or twice he nearly fell.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked round him cautiously, although had there been any one by they
-could not have been seen, then he bent down.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll not tell Nan if I carry ye a bit, lad?” he<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_83" id="page_83">{83}</a></span> asked. The child
-promised eagerly, and Joe swung him up in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>“Here,” he said, pressing a soft lump into the child’s hands. “Even if
-you’re a witch’s brat ye mustn’t be hungered.”</p>
-
-<p>Red bit into the bread that Joe had slipped into his pocket in his
-wife’s absence, and hugged the well-nigh suffocated kitten a little
-closer to his breast, while Joe, his head bent before the wind and rain,
-pushed on to the Ship.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_84" id="page_84">{84}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VII" id="CHAPTER_VII"></a>CHAPTER VII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">A</span> LITTLE more than an hour after Joe Pullen and little Red Farren left
-the cottage, Mistress Amy sat by the fireside, sewing. The five children
-were asleep upstairs and everything was quiet. Opposite her in the
-chimney corner, his heavy rain-sodden boots smoking in the heat, sat
-Blueneck, his unshaven chin resting in his hands. On the table lay the
-woollen cap and heavy coat which he had thrown off on entering. The
-water which dripped off the skirts of the coat made a little puddle on
-the clean red and yellow bricks of the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a kind man, Master Blueneck, to come trudging all this way in
-the soaking rain to cheer a poor woman whose husband is too surly to
-tell her of the doings of the Island,” said the lady, looking up from
-her mending, after a silence of a few minutes.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, señora.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen blushed with pleasure at the sound of the foreign
-address.</p>
-
-<p>“Where on the Island is better company than yourself?” said the sailor
-gallantly, leaning a little forward so that the firelight played on the
-brass earrings that shone amongst the short oily curls hanging down the
-sides of his face.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_85" id="page_85">{85}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen giggled and applied herself industriously to her
-needlework.</p>
-
-<p>“I warrant me you’re not so well served at the Ship as you were at the
-Victory, Master Blueneck?” she said without looking up.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck laughed bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right, mistress,” he said, forgetting the “señora” to Amy’s
-disappointment. “The Ship is none so bad a tavern, as taverns are
-nowadays, but ’tis of a truth much inferior to the Victory.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder that the Captain rests him there then?” said Mistress Amy,
-glancing under her lashes at her visitor.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, so do I.” Blueneck’s tone was almost querulous. “Why look you,
-mistress,” he added, “is it not bad for our trade for us to tarry so
-long at one place, ay, more especially when ’tis here in the East where
-the creeks are as unknown to us as to the excise men themselves?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of a truth ’tis bad indeed,” Mistress Pullen spoke with conviction. “I
-wonder the Captain has it so,” she remarked again glancing sideways at
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked into the fire for a moment before he spoke. “Methinks
-the Captain is bewitched,” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Bewitched!” Mistress Amy, her thoughts flying at once to her other
-visitor of the evening, spoke in some alarm.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_86" id="page_86">{86}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Anyway, I never saw him so before,” he said, “and I’ve sailed aboard
-his ship these ten years.”</p>
-
-<p>“But whoever would bewitch him?” asked Mistress Pullen, looking up
-innocently, as though no hint of the affairs of the Ship had reached
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“A marvellous pretty wench,” said Blueneck, and then he added hastily,
-“but of no comparison with thee, señora.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Amy laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a flatterer you are,” she said, “but I never heard of a pretty
-wench of the Ship, Master Blueneck; will she be one of the Island
-girls?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis a lass called Anny Farran.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Mistress Pullen’s eyebrows rose, and she pursed up her lips. “That
-child!”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked at her curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Hast heard aught against the lass?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Amy looked about her carefully, then leaning a little forward opened her
-mouth as though to speak, but as though another thought had crossed her
-mind she drew back and, shaking her head, said piously, “But who am I to
-take away a poor slut’s character? ’Tis not my nature, and I pray you,
-Master Blueneck, that you will not urge me, for my very conscience
-revolts against it.” She paused. “Though, mind you, I could an I would,”
-she went on, “but then, as I said, the story will do the lass no good.”</p>
-
-<p>“You make me curious, señora,” said the sailor in his best manner.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_87" id="page_87">{87}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But Mistress Pullen for a very good reason, namely, that she could not
-think of a convincing story on the spot, was not to be prevailed on, and
-the conversation flagged for a time. At last she broke the silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Then the Captain of the <i>Coldlight</i> is much attracted by this&mdash;this,
-this wench?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Attracted!” Blueneck looked up excitedly. “I tell you, mistress, I
-never saw him so before&mdash;of course, you will understand, señora, there
-have been other women&mdash;how could there not be? But never has it been so
-that he has lost his delight in the trade. No,” he added, “it has not
-been like this these last ten years, and before then he was but a lad.
-Without doubt the maid has bewitched him.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen began to be interested.</p>
-
-<p>“Have there been very many other women who loved the gallant Captain?”
-she said, her respect for the Spaniard growing at every word.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck threw up his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“So many, mistress, I could not name them all.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Amy thrilled with interest, but her face fell at her next
-thought.</p>
-
-<p>“And now he is enamoured with an Island wench?” she said, feeling that
-the Captain had somehow lowered his standard of romance.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” said Blueneck, “but ’tis a new affair this time; before, it was
-the wenches who sighed for the Captain and the Captain who laughed and
-was merry, but this time it is the wench who is merry and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_88" id="page_88">{88}</a></span> the
-Captain”&mdash;he laughed&mdash;“oh, the Captain is bewitched,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed!” Mistress Pullen looked surprised. “I wonder that Mistress Sue
-would brook the affair in her uncle’s house.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! ho! ho!” Blueneck laughed, his earrings glittering in the
-firelight. “Mistress Sue? Why, Mistress Amy, that lass would give her
-ears to get a fair look from Black’erchief Dick. I warrant you Master
-French is well-nigh mad at her neglect.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen sighed at the waywardness of youth and went on with her
-sewing.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, and that’s another thing,” said Blueneck. “Did you know that Master
-French was prevented from going to Tiptree last Tuesday?”</p>
-
-<p>“Prevented! Were there excise men on the Stroud?” Mistress Amy spoke
-quickly, voicing the fear of all the Island smugglers.</p>
-
-<p>The Stroud, a narrow, bridge-like road across the mud, was the one
-connection the Island had with the mainland, and once the officers of
-the law held it, there was no telling what dangers would be involved.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said, “they will be as foolish as ever they were. Nay, there
-was some talk about the goods, and the Captain swore that he would not
-rest another night at the Victory, and that if Master French wanted
-aught from him he must come to the Ship and fetch it. So he had to
-return.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, and when will he be going again, Master<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_89" id="page_89">{89}</a></span> Blueneck, for I was
-wishing to get me a piece of ribbon for my new kirtle-top?” said
-Mistress Pullen, her interest reviving.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard looked at her, smiling. “Would you allow me to get it for
-you, señora?” he said in as exact imitation as he could manage of the
-Captain’s manner.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Amy looked at him in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, surely you’re not going to Tiptree, Master Blueneck, are you?” she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>“I would go to London, if you wished aught from thence, mistress,” said
-the sailor loftily.</p>
-
-<p>Amy looked at him in admiration. “If only Joe would speak so,” she
-reflected.</p>
-
-<p>The sailor, seeing the impression he had made, rose to his feet,
-narrowly escaping the chimney beam.</p>
-
-<p>“To-morrow,” he said, “I shall ride to Tiptree and bring the fairest
-dame in the Island a ribbon.” He reached for his cap and coat, and
-buttoning them on, made for the door.</p>
-
-<p>Amy followed him, thanking him. They exchanged farewells, Mistress
-Pullen blushingly consenting to a kiss, and parted.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as his footsteps had died away, Mistress Pullen slipped a cloak
-over her head and moved to the window, through which she could see a
-faint patch of light about two hundred yards away.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” she said to herself, “Joan Bellamie will be yet awake, what a deal
-I have to tell the ronyon.” And she slipped out, shutting the door
-behind her.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_90" id="page_90">{90}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_VIII" id="CHAPTER_VIII"></a>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“A</span>NNY, lass, I would speak with thee; wilt harken?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal put the question timidly as he looked across at his sweetheart.</p>
-
-<p>They were alone in the Ship’s kitchen; Hal re-sanded the floor while
-Anny sat on the window-ledge cleaning a pair of old brass candlesticks.
-It was four o’clock in the afternoon, and the cold, watery sun shot a
-few last rays of yellow light over the Island before it sank down behind
-the mainland. Inside the kitchen it was warm and beginning to get dark,
-for the fire had been allowed to die down to a few smouldering red and
-white embers, and it was yet too early to light the dips. Outside in the
-yard Anny could see her little brother talking to old Gilbot, who had
-wrapped himself up in a seaman’s jacket, and had stepped out to taste
-the air.</p>
-
-<p>The old man was fond of children, and Anny sighed with relief as she saw
-the strange pair&mdash;Red still wore his costume of the night before&mdash;take
-hands and after some animated talk walk off together down the road in
-the direction of the sea, laughing as they went.</p>
-
-<p>Hal made up the fire with logs which he had been<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_91" id="page_91">{91}</a></span> drying on the hearth,
-and crossed the room and stood beside the window-ledge just in front of
-the girl, before he spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you harken to me?” he repeated.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up, smiling. “Harken to thee, Hal?” she said. “Why, certes,
-thou needst not look so solemnly; why should I not harken to thee?”</p>
-
-<p>The boy did not speak for a moment but stood fidgeting before her.</p>
-
-<p>Anny put down the candlestick which she was cleaning, and slipping off
-the window-ledge led him over to the fireplace, where she sat down on
-one of the long, high-backed seats and pulled him down beside her.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you want to tell me you don’t want to marry me?” she asked half
-jestingly, half anxiously, as she leaned her little round head with its
-long black plaits on his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Hal turned to her in great astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, lass! How can ye be so cruel as to judge me so?” he said. “Of
-course not!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the saints be praised for that,” said the girl quaintly. “Lord, how
-you fear’d me, Hal,” she added, kneeling up on the seat to kiss him.</p>
-
-<p>The boy put his arm round her.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny,” he said quietly, his face grave and old for one of his years,
-“you’re terrible young yet, seventeen ain’t you?” The girl nodded,
-uncertain as to what was coming yet. “Ah, well, you ain’t had time to
-grow wise, have you?” he continued, still holding her on the seat beside
-him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_92" id="page_92">{92}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I reckon you ain’t had much more, Hal,” she said, laughing. “You’re but
-eighteen, ain’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal blushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, maybe,” he said. “But I know what I’m telling you.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny kissed him lightly on the forehead.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m harkening,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Hal opened his mouth to speak and then shut it again; then he withdrew
-his arm from about her waist and stood up.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him in astonishment not unmixed with fear.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, what in the world is the matter with ye, lad?” she said. “You
-don’t want to go for a sailor, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>The boy shook his head violently, and Anny began to feel alarmed.</p>
-
-<p>“Whatever will you be worrying about next?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stepped toward her, and putting a hand on her forehead pushed her
-head back until she looked into his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“You&mdash;you&mdash;you’re not loving the Spaniard, lass?” he blurted out,
-ashamed of the words as soon as he had spoken them.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him for a moment, uncertain whether to be offended or to
-laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal, I’m ashamed that you should be such a child,” she said, a little
-smile hovering round her mouth. “Why should I love any one but you?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_93" id="page_93">{93}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The boy appeared to be satisfied, for he laughed and kissed her, but
-then he added, “I don’t like the Spaniard, lass. I wish you wouldn’t
-hark to his swaggerings.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny turned round.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal, you wouldn’t have me ill-tempered to the customers?” she said as
-she picked up the half-cleaned candlestick and set to work on it again.</p>
-
-<p>Hal thrust his hands into his pockets and shifted his weight from one
-foot to the other.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, lass, of course not. I would not bid you be uncivil, but, truth, I
-thought you liked the foreigner’s big talk and notice of you. I&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“He is a pleasant gentleman,” said the girl, “but, Lord! I mark not half
-he says.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’d not let him kiss you, Anny?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal spoke sharply and Anny looked up in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother of Grace,” she ejaculated, “for what do you take me?”</p>
-
-<p>The boy was beside her in a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Forgive me, lass,” he said, “I did but want ye to promise to have no
-dealings with the foreigner&mdash;I&mdash;love you so, see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Anny, laughing as she straightened her hair after his
-embrace. “No one would suspect you of kissing a lass before, Hal. You
-can’t be knowing how strong you are.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s as may be, but will you promise to have no truck with the
-Spaniard?” the boy persisted.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_94" id="page_94">{94}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ay, of course I promise,” Anny sighed at his distrust as she spoke. Hal
-kissed her again, then walked over to the fireplace and stood for some
-moments, resting his head on the wooden ledge below the chimney-piece
-and staring down into the smoky crackling fire.</p>
-
-<p>He felt that he had appeared ridiculous in Anny’s eyes, and his young
-blood revolted at the thought. In vain he tried to comfort himself with
-the thought that it was only his love for her which made him so anxious,
-but the idea that she must think him merely jealous would force itself
-on his mind, making him uncomfortable. However, he knew that the Captain
-might be a formidable rival so he said nothing else at the time.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat on the window-ledge, rubbing the candlestick with more energy
-than was necessary.</p>
-
-<p>She was hurt that Hal should think her such a light-o’-love, but all the
-same she thrilled with pleasure to think that he was jealous of anybody
-because of her. It gave her such a pleasant feeling of ownership and, as
-she reflected happily, she was very fond of him.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she paused to listen. Coming down the road she could hear the
-scrunching of heavy wagon wheels. She looked up at the old horologe on
-the chimney-piece.</p>
-
-<p>“That won’t be Master French yet awhile, will it?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” Hal pushed his hand over his forehead and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_95" id="page_95">{95}</a></span> turned to her. “I don’t
-hear any one,” he said, “and it wouldn’t be him yet; the roads ain’t
-safe before dark nowadays.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat still for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“There is someone,” she cried, as a tumbril drawn by a piebald gelding
-turned into the yard.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stepped across to the window and looked out over the girl’s head.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! ’tis Cip de Musset,” he said, as the man in the tumbril climbed out
-and pushed back the oiled flaps of his head-covering from his face. “I
-warrant he brings the rum from the brig.” He opened the door and went
-out bare-headed into the yard.</p>
-
-<p>Anny watched him through the window, saw him greet the man heartily, and
-then look into the cart at the other’s invitation.</p>
-
-<p>“Right!” she heard him say, “six of rum and three of Canary. Here, John
-Pattern.”</p>
-
-<p>A man came out of one of the stables. Hal said something to him which
-she could not catch. The man nodded and led the horse into a corner of
-the yard, where he proceeded to unload the cart.</p>
-
-<p>The man of whom Hal had spoken as Cip de Musset was tall, long-legged,
-and loosely built, with a black beard which curled down onto his chest.
-He stepped up to the inner door with Hal, and then stopped and went back
-to the cart as though he had forgotten something. After groping under
-the sacking coverings for a while he pulled out a fair-sized bundle tied
-up in a piece of sail-cloth, and with this under his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_96" id="page_96">{96}</a></span> arm, came back to
-the door where Hal was waiting for him. As he crossed the yard he caught
-sight of Anny peering through the window and smiled at her, showing a
-set of enormous yellow teeth.</p>
-
-<p>Anny tossed her head and turned away from the window, and picking up the
-two candlesticks carried them off to the first guest-chamber where they
-belonged.</p>
-
-<p>When she returned, the sail-cloth bundle was lying on the table, and Hal
-and Cip de Musset were sitting together by the fire, the latter drinking
-hot rum.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morrow, fair one,” grinned the visitor as he looked up, “there’s
-somewhat on the table for thee.”</p>
-
-<p>His clothes proclaimed him a sailor, and his manners were free and easy.</p>
-
-<p>“For me?” Anny looked first at the bundle and then over at Hal who was
-watching her covertly.</p>
-
-<p>“And&mdash;er&mdash;and who will it be sent from, Master de Musset?” she said at
-last.</p>
-
-<p>Cip de Musset laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Open it, lassie,” he said, “open it and see.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny, nothing loath, pulled at the knots, and pushed back the
-sail-cloth; underneath was a white linen covering.</p>
-
-<p>Hal rose to his feet and in spite of himself craned his neck to see.</p>
-
-<p>The other man got up and stood beside the girl, looking down at the
-bundle. The arrival of a parcel was an unusual occurrence at the Ship.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_97" id="page_97">{97}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny fingered the linen for a moment, and then with a deft movement of
-her little brown hand switched it off. She gave a gasp of surprise, and
-putting out her hands held up a piece of Lyons silk. It was of a pale
-honey colour and of a texture not unlike taffeta. She shook out the
-glistening sheet and held the piece high up to her chin. The effect made
-even Hal gasp. Cip de Musset put his tankard down on the table and
-stepped back a few paces to look at her.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right, lassie, just a bit nearer the window,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny obeyed, as proud as a snake of its new skin, and stood so that the
-little remaining light might fall upon her.</p>
-
-<p>Cip rested his huge hairy hands on his hips and leant back a little, his
-head on one side, and one eye shut.</p>
-
-<p>“By the Lord, but you’re as fair as a new figurehead, lass,” he said
-approvingly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked down and laughed with delight. She had never seen such stuff
-before, and the blood rushed to her face as she saw Hal’s expression of
-amazed admiration as he stared at her. With a little sigh she folded up
-the silk and returned to the bundle. It contained a letter, a piece of
-green frieze, and a little carved box. Anny laid aside the letter and
-the box, and looked at the frieze; there seemed to be a great deal of
-it.</p>
-
-<p>Cip stepped forward to help her, and taking one<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_98" id="page_98">{98}</a></span> end walked over to the
-door, while she, holding her side, went to the fireplace, yet the strip
-sagged in the middle to the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“Two new kirtles and a pair of galligaskins for Red,” thought the girl,
-as she wound up the cloth, and turned her attention to the box.</p>
-
-<p>Cip de Musset nudged Hal, and jerked his thumb in her direction.</p>
-
-<p>“Look how the lassie plays with new toys,” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>Hal turned away sharply, frowning angrily.</p>
-
-<p>Cip stared at him in amazement and then, shrugging his shoulders, looked
-across at the girl.</p>
-
-<p>Anny had not noticed Hal’s expression, and Cip’s face broke into smiles
-again as he watched her. She was trying to open the little wooden box,
-her face was flushed, and she was breathing quickly with childish
-excitement. At last she gave it up, and, turning to Cip, offered it for
-him to open. The sailor wiped his hands carefully on his
-green-and-yellow neckerchief before he took the box gingerly between his
-thumb and forefinger. After turning it over once or twice he tried his
-strength on the tightly fitting lid and jerked it off, and held it out
-to the girl.</p>
-
-<p>Anny took it eagerly and gave a little cry of delight as she examined
-the contents.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry! Hal, I prithee, see!” she laughed as she pulled out a long
-string of polished amber beads and put them over her head. “And, oh,
-look you! look you!” she exclaimed, holding out a brooch about the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_99" id="page_99">{99}</a></span> size
-of a large oyster, which was of painted porcelain with a silver border
-studded with brilliants. “Oh, and see! Look, look, Hal! why don’t you
-look?” she went on as she pulled first one trinket after another out of
-the little wooden box and held it up for their inspection. Suddenly she
-paused, and putting in her hand very carefully brought out a little
-carved-wood elephant, brought no doubt from the East by some traveller.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what a mannikin,” she exclaimed, fingering the exquisite
-workmanship in wonderment. “Look ’ee, Hal, whatever will it be?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked down at the little figure as she stood before him, the carved
-bauble lying in the palm of her small brown hand, and sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” he said, as he picked up the elephant and looked at it
-quizzically. “I reckon ’tis some heathen image.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny snatched it away from him and held it tightly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! nay,” she said almost pleadingly, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis not, indeed, or anyway ’tis
-marvellous dainty.”</p>
-
-<p>Cip stepped forward heavily and looked over her shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! nay,” he said at last, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis not a heathen image; ’tis a moulding
-of a beast.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked pleased.</p>
-
-<p>“What fine little beasts they must be,” she observed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, yes,” said Cip, nodding his head sagely, “wonderful fine little
-beasts.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_100" id="page_100">{100}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed happily, and turned to the silk-and trinket-strewn table.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, won’t I be fine!” she exclaimed, flinging out her arms as though to
-embrace the table’s load.</p>
-
-<p>Hal grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“Hadn’t you better look at the sealed paper?” he said sulkily.</p>
-
-<p>But Anny was too overjoyed to notice his tone.</p>
-
-<p>“O marry! I forgot,” she exclaimed with a little excited giggle, as she
-picked up the square envelope and broke open the red seal.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said she, as she studied the large flourishing script within.</p>
-
-<p>Cip shot a covert glance at Hal and then hid his smile in his tankard.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said Anny again, turning the paper over.</p>
-
-<p>Hal became impatient.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, lass?” he said, rising.</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed, and then thrust the paper in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Thou knowest I cannot read, Hal?” she said. “Wilt decipher it for me?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal took it willingly, although with some show of indifference, and
-holding the paper at arms’ length, read it carefully through to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Plague upon it all!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“What does it say?” she said, looking over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Hal flushed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_101" id="page_101">{101}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll not tell thee,” he said angrily.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Anny’s tone expressed disappointment, and old Cip de Musset, who
-had been preparing himself to hear another man’s letter, looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! nay, lad, nay,” he said solemnly, “tell the lass her own letter.
-Ay, marry, now you must, to be honest.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal frowned.</p>
-
-<p>“To be honest?” he said, puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, to be honest.” Cip was emphatic. “For if you don’t, lad, you alone
-will know the matter in the letter, which, look you, is not yours but
-the lass’s. Taking is taking whether it be goods or fine phrases,” he
-concluded, wagging his head sagely.</p>
-
-<p>Hal shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then, harken,” he said, and began to read sulkily and at a great
-pace:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot"><p>“Into the lap of the fair lady who holdeth the whole heart of a
-great sailor in her sweet keeping, these fineries and divers other
-useful objects are munificently poured.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee deck thyself, wench, for the delight of thy noble and
-honourable admirer&mdash;Dick Delfazio, Captain of the <i>Coldlight</i>.”</p></div>
-
-<p>“Did ever you hear such sithering foolishness?” he concluded.</p>
-
-<p>But neither Anny nor Cip was looking at him; at the last words of the
-letter they had turned to each other in mutual surprise and admiration.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said old Cip, leaning back on his bench. “Wonderful way he has wi’
-words and wenches.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_102" id="page_102">{102}</a></span> Damn me if they two don’t go pretty well together,”
-he added thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed with delight and turned to Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! isn’t it a fine letter,” she exclaimed happily. “Will I have to
-write one back?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up, and the expression on his boyish face made her pause in
-her happiness, and turn to him anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny Farran, what are you making of yourself?” he began slowly, his
-young imagination magnifying the occasion until he felt himself the
-injured lover leading his frail betrothed away from the pretty walks of
-folly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him in wonderment and he went on:</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, are you tending to accept these&mdash;these fripperies, like a common
-serving-wench, and worse?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed and started; then she looked from her lover to the table
-and back again.</p>
-
-<p>“Not take them?” she said, her mouth drooping a little at the corners
-and her eyes growing larger and very bright.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not!”</p>
-
-<p>Wrapped in the blanket of his youthful virtue the boy felt no sympathy
-for the despairing glance which the pathetic little girl in front of him
-cast at her shabby, much-stained kirtle and well-mended bodice.</p>
-
-<p>Anny swallowed something in her throat and blinked her eyes once or
-twice, her long dark lashes becoming spiky and blacker than before. Then
-she<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_103" id="page_103">{103}</a></span> laughed a little unnaturally and rubbed her hand awkwardly down the
-sides of her skirt.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, of course not,” she said, laughing still on a strange high pitch,
-as she gathered up the finery and put it carefully back into the
-sail-cloth covering. “Of course not,” she repeated mechanically, never
-allowing her fingers to stray over the smooth soft surface of the silk
-or to play amongst the amber beads or ivory ornaments. “There,” she said
-at last as the last trinket was slipped into the little box, and she
-looked round, the bright colour still in her cheeks and the forced smile
-on her lips. “Oh! and the little beast?” she said half questioningly,
-half agreeing, as she picked up the little carved elephant and looked at
-it wistfully.</p>
-
-<p>“And the little beast,” said Hal firmly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed and slipped it in with the others, then tied up the
-sail-cloth with a firm hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Master de Musset,” she said a little unsteadily, “would you be kind
-enough to&mdash;to take this back to the Captain and say I can’t accept it?
-Say&mdash;say of course not,” she added.</p>
-
-<p>Cip de Musset rose to his feet, bewilderment on his face as he looked
-from one to the other of the two young people.</p>
-
-<p>“Say you sent it back?” he said at last, turning to the girl. “Nay, say
-he sent it back,” he added, jerking his thumb in Hal’s direction.</p>
-
-<p>Anny stepped forward quickly and laid her hand on his arm, anxiety
-written in her very posture.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_104" id="page_104">{104}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, nay! I pray you, Master de Musset, say I sent it back,” she said
-eagerly. “I beg of you to tell my message rightly.”</p>
-
-<p>Cip looked into her earnest little face and smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, lassie,” he said. “But,” he added, his voice and face
-becoming suddenly grave, “you have a care how you anger Black’erchief
-Dick. You young ones&mdash;you’re sweethearts, too, ain’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but you won’t say,” Anny spoke quickly and Cip shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” he said, grinning. “I won’t say. I be going.”</p>
-
-<p>He moved over to the window and looked out.</p>
-
-<p>“Here be Ezekiel French just drove up,” he remarked.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up at the clock.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother o’ Grace!” she ejaculated, “I have forgot to call Mistress Sue,”
-and she ran out of the door and up the stairs to the little room which
-she and Sue shared.</p>
-
-<p>Hal picked up the sail-cloth bundle and handed it to Cip, who took it
-without a word and went out into the yard. He stood talking to French
-some minutes and then walked over to his cart.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little lassie,” he muttered as he climbed into the tumbril and
-turned the piebald gelding out of the gate. “Poor little lassie,” he
-repeated. “Lord, ain’t we particular when we’re young.” He looked at the
-bundle on the floor behind him and shrugged<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_105" id="page_105">{105}</a></span> his shoulders. “This here
-Black’erchief Dick and all,” he concluded, sighing and whipping up his
-horse.</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Big French stood in the Ship yard talking to Hal and old John Pattern,
-the ostler. He leaned lazily against the shaft of his wagon, an arm
-stretched out over the back of one of the horses. The wagon was half
-full of mysterious sacking-covered bales and little round casks, the
-first containing silk and the other tobacco.</p>
-
-<p>“Have ye got them ten trusses’ straw I bespoke, Hal?” French was saying,
-the barley stalk he was chewing moving up and down in his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, in the barn; that on the right is yourn,” Hal replied readily.</p>
-
-<p>Big French looked at John Pattern enquiringly. The old man grinned.
-“That’ll be all right, sir,” he said, pocketing the coin which the big
-man had given him.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll cover the stuff well up?” French enquired. “Undo the first five
-truss and spread it over the stuff and then put the rest, bound up,
-atop, you know how.”</p>
-
-<p>The man nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“Ain’t been on the Island for sixty-seven years for nothing,” he said,
-winking one bright blue eye.</p>
-
-<p>French laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe,” he said, “but you never can tell when the roads will get
-dangerous again. What with foot<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_106" id="page_106">{106}</a></span>pads whom I fear not and excise folk
-whom I do&mdash;you never know,” and he shrugged his shoulders, and soon
-added, a smile breaking over his handsome face, “but, Lord, it’s all in
-the trade, so what’s the use of talking?”</p>
-
-<p>He turned away with Hal, and John touching his cap went off to the
-barn&mdash;a long low building on the left of the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m taking that dog Blueneck and his mate Coot along wi’ me,” French
-remarked, as he and Hal neared the kitchen door. “You ain’t seen them up
-here yet, I suppose?”</p>
-
-<p>Hal shook his head as he lifted the latch.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said, “but they’ll come, don’t you fear, the sniffling Spanish
-rats.”</p>
-
-<p>French laughed and was about to reply, but as his eyes fell upon
-Mistress Sue who had stepped to the door to meet them, the words died on
-his lips, and he grinned sheepishly.</p>
-
-<p>In the kitchen the dips had been lighted, the fire had got up, and all
-round the hearth was bright and cheerful.</p>
-
-<p>Sue followed and stood in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat in her usual place at the window. She was sewing the buttons on
-an old coat of Gilbot’s, and several times she pricked her fingers, and
-then hastily dashed the back of her hand across her eyes, but otherwise
-she was very still and no one else in the room noticed her.</p>
-
-<p>Hal went to draw a noggin of rum for French, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_107" id="page_107">{107}</a></span> while he was away, the
-door opened, and Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot came in.</p>
-
-<p>French, who had just formed a complete sentence to open conversation
-with Sue, scowled at the intruders, turned his back on the astonished
-girl, and stared into the fire. Perhaps it was the wisest thing he could
-have done, for Sue, as she bustled off to attend to the two sailors,
-began to think about him, a thing she had not done seriously since that
-evening when Black’erchief Dick first came to the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>It was strange, she thought. Usually Big French seemed so pleased to see
-her, so ready to laugh with her, so childishly shy when she spoke
-directly to him, and she found herself thinking with pleasure of that
-evening when Gilbot had interrupted him in a most important question.
-She laughed to herself. Ah! that was before the advent of the Spaniard.
-Ah! the Spaniard! she sighed, and then flushed hotly at her own
-thoughts. What was the Spaniard to her? A man who was not even
-interested in her. She tossed her head, but all the same she sighed
-again before she put the tankards down before the two shipmates of the
-<i>Coldlight</i>, and returned once more to the young giant at the fireside.</p>
-
-<p>“Master French,” she said, planting herself before him, “would you get
-me a thing or two at the market?”</p>
-
-<p>French beamed at her.</p>
-
-<p>“Anything,” he said jerkily, as though the word<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_108" id="page_108">{108}</a></span> had been released from
-captivity, “or everything,” he added suddenly and earnestly.</p>
-
-<p>Sue did not understand him and she looked down in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Everything?” she repeated.</p>
-
-<p>French blushed, opened his mouth, shut it again, then he cleared his
-throat noisily. “Everything you wish, mistress,” he said finally,
-inwardly cursing his shyness.</p>
-
-<p>Sue perched herself on the table in front of him and enumerated the odds
-and ends that the Ship required.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at the pair shyly from out her corner.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! but how much of the flannel, mistress?” French was saying.</p>
-
-<p>“Six ells an it pleases you,” Sue replied.</p>
-
-<p>Anny gulped and applied herself industriously to her sewing.</p>
-
-<p>Just then the door opened and John Pattern put in his smiling head.</p>
-
-<p>“Master French,” he called.</p>
-
-<p>French, who had just begun to enjoy himself, looked up with another
-scowl.</p>
-
-<p>“All’s ready,” said John, “and, if you’s going to get to Tiptree afore
-eleven, ye better start.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right!” French rose to his feet with a sigh and walked to the door.
-“Come on,” he said to the two sailors who were looking round anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk sniffed noisily and happily, his pale, bilious little face
-positively shining with excitement<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_109" id="page_109">{109}</a></span> as he got up hastily and trotted to
-the door, Blueneck following.</p>
-
-<p>The rest of the company followed out into the yard to see the
-adventurers safely off the premises.</p>
-
-<p>It was a sharply cold, clear frosty night, with a mist hanging low over
-the marshes. There was no wind and the place was very silent. The sky
-was clear and thickly sprinkled with stars and the moon, nearly full,
-shed a white ghostly glow over the countryside.</p>
-
-<p>Old John Pattern, a large box lantern in his hand, hovered hither and
-thither like some old and bluff will-o’-the-wisp.</p>
-
-<p>French walked round the wagon to make sure that everything was in order.
-Then he climbed up on to the shaft and perched himself on the
-driving-seat, which consisted of a board nailed flat on the front of the
-wagon.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, if you are coming at all,” he called to Blueneck, who
-scrambled into the one remaining seat beside him.</p>
-
-<p>“Hi, where shall I go?” said Habakkuk, sniffing and hopping about in his
-anxiety.</p>
-
-<p>French shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Best get up on to the straw atop,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk climbed on to the hub of the wheel and with Hal’s help got
-safely on to the straw where he lay quite still.</p>
-
-<p>“Ready?” said French, and then turned the horses about without waiting
-for an answer, and drove out of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_110" id="page_110">{110}</a></span> the gate amidst the jests and farewells
-of the onlookers.</p>
-
-<p>“You won’t forget the flannel?” Sue called after him.</p>
-
-<p>French’s deep, pleasant voice rang back through the thin, cold air:
-“Rather would I forget the wagon, mistress.”</p>
-
-<p>Sue laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a new gown on the way,” she said with a sigh of satisfaction as
-she went back to the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Anny gulped and Hal, turning at that moment, saw her disappointed little
-face in the moonlight. She looked at him so sorrowfully without
-speaking, and then went into the Inn.</p>
-
-<p>He was about to follow her but checked himself; he began to realize a
-little how much she cared for pretty things and what she had given up
-with the sail-cloth bundle. Pushing his hands into his pockets he walked
-out of the gate and down the road to the sea, his chin on his breast. He
-had not gone very far before he met old Gilbot stumping along alone.</p>
-
-<p>The old man hailed him cheerily and bade him go down to fetch little Red
-who, he averred, was scooning stones on the clear sea. “No one obeys
-me,” he concluded with a chuckle. “I can’t make the young one come. Go
-fetch him, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>He waddled off, smiling and talking to himself.</p>
-
-<p>Hal walked on in deep thought, kicking the stones in the road with his
-clogs.</p>
-
-<p>Anny was fond of pretty fripperies and ornaments;<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_111" id="page_111">{111}</a></span> she liked to be
-admired and looked at, and would have kept the sail-cloth bundle for its
-own worth, without a thought for the giver.</p>
-
-<p>Hal kicked at a stone savagely, and swore loudly. He was eighteen and as
-bitter against the world as it is possible to be at that age. He
-remembered Anny’s little white face in the moonlight as Big French drove
-off, Sue’s request in his ears, and her disappointed, sorrowful glance
-at him before she returned to the kitchen. He had reached the sea by
-this time and he stood for a moment peering out over the mist-ridden
-water. “If only I had money,” he thought. “Lord!”</p>
-
-<p>Staring out into the white moonlit vapour he saw Anny in her
-honey-coloured silk, her eyes bright and her lips a little parted, just
-as he had seen her that afternoon. Then he saw himself beside her, no
-longer a deputy landlord and everybody’s errand boy, but a man of
-importance in a new blue cloth coat with silver buttons and a ruffle in
-the sleeves. He was holding her hand and they were married.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! if only I had money!” the words escaped from his mouth like a
-groan, and he shivered involuntarily, almost afraid of his own voice;
-everything around him was so shadowy and unreal.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal Grame, is that you? Oh! how you frightened me.” The voice seemed to
-start from the pebbles at his feet and he sprang back in alarm, crossing
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s there?” he said sharply.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_112" id="page_112">{112}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Only me and Win.” Red Farran got up from the bank of seaweed where he
-had been sitting and put a little wet hand into Hal’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you want money?” he said. “Win an’ me want money, too.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked down at the fantastical little figure before he answered:</p>
-
-<p>“Why do I want money&mdash;&mdash;?” he began, his voice rising with silly, sweet,
-half-theatrical boyish passion; then he checked himself and shrugged his
-shoulders. “Oh, nothing,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Red looked at the sea.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s too dark to scoon stones,” he remarked. “How many times can you
-make one hop? I made one go nine times once in smooth water,” he added
-modestly.</p>
-
-<p>Hal vouchsafed no answer, and Red sat down again on a bank of seaweed.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s Win,” he said softly as he fumbled in his ragged clothes and
-brought out the kitten, now quite dry but very sleepy, and hugged it up
-to his neck.</p>
-
-<p>“If we had money wouldn’t we eat a lot and be happy?” He squeezed the
-kitten a little harder and the unhappy animal squealed sleepily. Red
-laughed. “Yes,” he said, “I think so, too.”</p>
-
-<p>There was silence for a few minutes save for the gentle lapping of the
-water and the scrape of moving pebbles as the waves rolled them up and
-down on the shore.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_113" id="page_113">{113}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Money’s very useful, isn’t it?” said Red at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” Hal replied fervently.</p>
-
-<p>“Master Gilbot said that, too,” went on the child as he pitched a stone
-and waited to hear the gentle “plop” which it made as it reached the
-water.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“What did he say?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Red screwed up his face in thought.</p>
-
-<p>“I forget,” he said, “it was something about leaving the Ship to a man
-who had money.” He tossed another stone, then turned his attention to
-the kitten.</p>
-
-<p>“A man with money,” said Hal. “What man?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! any man, I suppose,” said Red vaguely, stroking the cat’s fur up
-the wrong way.</p>
-
-<p>“Any man with money,” repeated Hal to himself; then he began to laugh
-loudly, unnaturally, and very high.</p>
-
-<p>Red clapped his hands over his ears and the kitten snuggled into his
-chest.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t do that, Hal,” he said imploringly, “it’s just like Nan when she
-sees Pet Salt.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal stopped and pulled himself together.</p>
-
-<p>“Best be getting back,” he said, and started off along the lane.</p>
-
-<p>The child got up without a word and trotted after him, the kitten
-wrapped safely in the folds of his kirtle-cloak.</p>
-
-<p>Hal did not think about the boy; he strode along, his eyes on the
-ground.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_114" id="page_114">{114}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I will get money,” he whispered to himself. “I’ve never had any. I’ve
-never had aught to give her, and women be capricious and whimsical. They
-care for that foolery. Before God I swear some day I’ll own the Ship,
-and, oh, you holy Saints, let me keep her till then.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_115" id="page_115">{115}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_IX" id="CHAPTER_IX"></a>CHAPTER IX</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">A</span>BOUT nine o’clock on the following morning, when the hoar-frost was
-still on the ragged grass and leafless trees, Anny hurried down the road
-which led to the Ship. She had been to see Nan Swayle, and was returning
-from her cabin with a large skep of onions which the old woman had
-insisted on sending to Gilbot in return for the half keg of rum which he
-had given her.</p>
-
-<p>It was bitterly cold, and Anny hugged the threadbare shawl very tightly
-about her shoulders as she hastened on, her head bent before the driving
-wind.</p>
-
-<p>“Well met, mistress,” said a musical voice behind her. “Prithee, may I
-carry thy basket?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s heart sank as she turned her head.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick came forward, a smile on his face, and stretched out
-a pair of dainty white hands for the skep.</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed and withheld it from him.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, I would not dream of letting you trouble, sir,” she said. “I&mdash;I
-would rather carry it myself.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“And I would rather carry it myself,” he said. “Faith, mistress, I
-warrant me we’ll have to bear it together.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_116" id="page_116">{116}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>So saying he gaily caught hold of the handle nearest him and they walked
-on, he chatting merrily and she alternately laughing at his sallies,
-blushing, and smirking at his well-seasoned stories. They made strange
-contrast as they went, the skep swinging between them, the girl, her
-shabby green kirtle and torn black bodice, her heavy clogs sinking in
-the deep slushy mud of the road, and the Spaniard newly clothed in
-shining brocaded satin, with point-lace collar and ruffled cuffs, his
-fashionable short surcoat displaying a tucked embroidered shirt
-marvellously laundered; his cloak of the finest Amsterdam cloth a little
-open in the front showing the hilt of his famous knife as it hung in his
-gem-studded belt.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, prithee why didst thou return my gifts yestere’en?” said Dick
-at last as they neared the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Anny, who had been waiting for this, took a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p>“For what do you take me, sir?” she said, turning her big innocent eyes
-upon him.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at her curiously. Was it possible that this little country
-drudge was different from all the other women he had met? He nearly
-dropped his side of the skep in his surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I crave thy pardon, mistress,” he said dazedly, and they walked on in
-silence till they reached the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Then Dick spoke again:</p>
-
-<p>“I will come in for a stoup of mine host’s sweet<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_117" id="page_117">{117}</a></span> sack,” he said, and
-then added softly, for the door was open, “and I would speak seriously
-with thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny went into the kitchen rather self-consciously and looked round. No
-one was there and she went out to the scullery with the onions.</p>
-
-<p>When she returned the Spaniard was sitting by the fireside, his daintily
-shod feet resting on the hearthstone. He did not look up as she came in,
-so she tripped across to the shelves to get him a tankard, and then
-unearthed a flagon of sack from under the cask form.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee set it here to warm, child,” said Dick, pointing to the hob.</p>
-
-<p>Anny did as she was told. He touched her hand lightly as she passed him.</p>
-
-<p>“And now, mistress, will it please you to sit before me?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat down, and the Spaniard looked at her in admiration for a moment
-before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Hast heard much said of Dick Delfazio?” he continued, smiling at her,
-and leaning forward a little, his elbow on his knee and one hand
-supporting his chin and shielding his face from the fire.</p>
-
-<p>Anny dropped her eyes, not quite certain what to say.</p>
-
-<p>But as he waited for an answer, she stammered, “Ay, a great deal an it
-please you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Aught to my discredit?” The Spaniard spoke sharply and frowned.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, nay, sir, nay.” Anny spoke hastily as she noted his displeasure.
-“Rather the other way.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_118" id="page_118">{118}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>A smile spread over the man’s face for a moment, and he looked at her.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet, mistress, you refused my gifts,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>An expression of pain passed over the girl’s face but she said steadily:
-“Ay, sir. And I would not have any one think I would take them. Methinks
-you mistake me, sir,” she added proudly.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard did not speak; he sat looking at her steadfastly without
-moving his position, his glittering deep black eyes fixed on her face,
-and an inscrutable expression on his lips.</p>
-
-<p>Anny did not look up, and at last the Spaniard leaned back in his seat,
-new interest in his face and a twinkle of pleasure in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, you mistake me,” he said gently. “Believe me I never thought
-you aught but a maiden as fair in reputation as in face. What villain
-can have read anything else but pure admiration in my small offerings to
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up quickly, her face glowing with confusion. She thought
-angrily of Hal’s outburst and opened her mouth to speak, but at that
-moment her eye caught the Spaniard’s white hand playing with the hilt of
-his knife, and she looked at him again, as he sat smiling at her, his
-full red lips curled back a little, showing the white teeth within.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it myself,” she said almost defiantly, as she rose to go
-about her work.</p>
-
-<p>Dick put out a hand to restrain her.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_119" id="page_119">{119}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Prithee sit down, fair one, I would speak with thee,” he said firmly,
-his eyes commanding her with their momentary fierceness, and continued
-as she reseated herself: “Hast ever been off this Island, mistress?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, sir,” Anny shook her head. “Not even to the West,” she added.</p>
-
-<p>Dick threw up his hands in mock surprise, and the girl could not help
-thinking how beautiful they looked, rising so waxen-like from out the
-delicate lace ruffles which surrounded his wrists.</p>
-
-<p>“The pity of it, mistress, O, the pity of it, that you should be wasted
-here on this desolate mud flat,” Dick was saying, “which is only visited
-by a gentleman once in two or three months, and then only for a
-sennight. No, the jewel of your beauty is little suited to so drab a
-setting as the mud-beslimed shores of Mersea Marsh Island.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him, uncertain whether he was laughing at her or not, but
-she could get no hint of his mood from his face, which was nearly
-expressionless save for the eyes which regarded her almost mournfully.</p>
-
-<p>“What would I find fairer than the marshes in another country?” she said
-at last.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“The marshes?” he said. “Oh! Mistress, what have you known of beauty
-that you look on gray and purple marshes and call them fair?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny frowned.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_120" id="page_120">{120}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Marry!” she said, tossing her head. “They’re good enough for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, fair one, there you mistake, it’s because they are not good enough
-for thee that I would quarrel with thee loving them.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard leaned a little forward as he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed uneasily and rose to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, well!” she said, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis of no account what I think fair or ugly, see
-how late it is; I must be about my business.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick got up also.</p>
-
-<p>“Look ye, mistress,” he said, “I had almost forgot what I came to see
-thee for. I sail again for France on Wednesday even.” He paused and
-looked at the girl for any hint of surprise or disappointment which she
-might show, but Anny did not look up and betrayed no other interest
-beyond polite attention.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard smiled and his eyes began to sparkle again.</p>
-
-<p>“And, little one,” he went on, “when I sail it will not be on the
-<i>Coldlight</i>, but the <i>Anny</i> if you will permit me to rename the ship
-after thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny gasped. She knew a little about the importance which sailors in
-general, and smugglers in particular, attached to the names of their
-vessels, and was fully sensible of the honour which the Spaniard was
-conferring upon her. She began to feel flattered.</p>
-
-<p>“You honour me too much, sir,” she said, bobbing and smiling.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard made a stately bow.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_121" id="page_121">{121}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, I thank you for deigning to accept so small a tribute,” he
-said in his grand manner. “And may I beg of you two more favours,
-namely, that you will honour my ship with your presence, and will
-yourself bless the brig and proclaim thyself its guardian and patron?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny blushed and laughed happily.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” she said, “and gladly if you can trust my blessings.”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard bowed again.</p>
-
-<p>“What blessings might I trust in if not in yours?” he said gallantly. “I
-will come myself to bring thee there. Au revoir, fair one.” He picked up
-his big-brimmed hat and, taking the little brown hand in his soft white
-one, respectfully raised it to his lips.</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled shyly as she drew it slowly away and put it behind her back.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked into her little face, so very little lower than his own.</p>
-
-<p>“Might I dare to salute your lips, Anny of the Island?” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s smile vanished and she drew back stiffly.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks you mistake me for some other wench, sir,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon, I prithee, fairest of prudes.” Dick’s tone was really penitent.
-“For but one moment I dreamed&mdash;shall I tell thee my dream?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him in astonishment and in spite of her vexation drew a
-little nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Whatever&mdash;&mdash;” she began.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_122" id="page_122">{122}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Dick interrupted her.</p>
-
-<p>“All in one moment I dreamt I was dead and in hell, and, as I trod on
-the burning stones, a sudden ease fell upon me and I looked up and
-beheld the fairest face in all the world before me, the lips put up to
-meet mine&mdash;and I&mdash;well, mistress, then you woke me.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him in amazement, wondering if the Spanish gentleman had
-suddenly become bewitched. Then she conjured up in her childish mind a
-picture which his words suggested to her of the fastidious little man
-hopping and dancing over hot paving bricks, and she began to laugh so
-heartily that she had to support herself by leaning against the
-door-post. Although this was hardly the way in which he wished his
-excuse to be taken, the Spaniard was pleased to have the girl so
-completely mollified and began to laugh himself with her.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go along with ye,” said Anny at last, as she wiped away the tears
-of laughter with the back of her hand and held open the door for him.</p>
-
-<p>Dick bowed again and Anny smiled as she watched him out of the yard.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” she said to herself, “he’s a mighty pleasing gentleman, very fine
-to look upon, very bravely spoken, and I’ll bless his ship for him
-gladly, but you can’t love two lads at once.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick went off down the road toward the sea, deep in thought. He had not
-gone very far before he was overtaken by Blueneck, who was just back
-from Tip<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_123" id="page_123">{123}</a></span>tree. They fell into that easy kind of conversation which often
-takes place between master and his confidential inferior.</p>
-
-<p>“We’re renaming the brig to <i>Anny</i> on the evening of Wednesday,”
-remarked Dick, as they went along.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked at his captain and opened his mouth to protest, but
-thought better of it and held his peace.</p>
-
-<p>“What think you, Blueneck, the wench will have naught to do with me!”
-went on Delfazio.</p>
-
-<p>The other man looked at him disbelievingly and laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, ’tis so,” Dick said, laughing. “Faith, she sends back my presents
-and scorns my kisses.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked down at his master in surprise, then he shrugged his
-shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“You will not trouble with the lass further, sir, surely?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Dick smiled again.</p>
-
-<p>“Hast ever known me denied aught I desired?” he said, his voice pleasant
-and smooth.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said, “but, Lord, what’s a silly wench, sir? She can have no
-interest for thee.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, thou hast hit it, dog, ’tis that exactly which the lass has for
-me&mdash;interest&mdash;interest greater than I ever felt for any other woman.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck laughed and turned the laugh into a cough.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at him, smiling shyly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_124" id="page_124">{124}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah! you may laugh, friend of the unshaven neck,” he said, “but as I
-told you this is so. Never have I been denied so much by any woman, and
-at last I find a game that makes the prize worth having. The end of a
-certainty will be the same but the wooing is half the pleasure, eh,
-dog?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck grinned as he fingered the ribbon, which he had brought from
-Tiptree, and they went on together down to the brig where Dick gave
-orders for the ceremony for renaming the <i>Coldlight</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, up at the Ship everything was bustle. French had returned and
-was entertaining the company with the story of the night’s adventures,
-and Anny and Sue were kept busy serving rums and preparing the midday
-meal.</p>
-
-<p>It was then that Big French remembered the flannel he had bought and
-handed it to Sue with another little bundle which he had bought from a
-gypsy.</p>
-
-<p>Sue hastened away to open it, and it being dinnertime the company slowly
-dwindled off until there was only the usual household and the young
-giant left to partake of the meal together. This was speedily served by
-Anny and Hal, who were now on the best of terms.</p>
-
-<p>Sue came downstairs a few seconds later, blushing and smiling, with a
-string of blue beads round her neck, and French shuffled, reddened, and
-choked over his broth when he saw her so that everyone looked at him and
-then at her and smiled at one another knowingly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_125" id="page_125">{125}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot began to sing “Mary Loo,” but soon gave it up and took to his
-rumkin.</p>
-
-<p>After dinner, the delf being cleared away, Anny went up to her room,
-which was also Sue’s, and sat down on her bed. She thought of
-Black’erchief Dick and his brig and began to picture to herself the
-scene on board the <i>Coldlight</i> when she would change its name to her
-own. Then she sighed. She looked down at her shabby kirtle and passed
-her hand over its holes and stains. Downstairs she could hear Big
-French’s deep voice raised as though pleadingly and could catch Sue’s
-high, sweet, giggling replies. She turned over on the bed and lay face
-downward for a few seconds, then she sat up and began hastily to
-re-arrange her hair. On Sue’s bed she saw the flannel spread out, and
-she went over softly to have a look at it. It seemed very coarse and
-ugly when she mentally compared it to the honey-coloured silk or the
-wide green frieze which she had sent back to Dick in the sail-cloth
-bundle. And she found herself wishing that Hal had money like French and
-Dick, but she checked herself and blushed at her own greediness, as she
-termed it. She sat down on her bed again, sighing as she did so, and
-Sue, coming up some while later, finding her still there, took pity on
-her shabbiness and gave her the purple gown that Anny had wished for so
-long, and was then amazed to see the usually so grateful, peaceable
-little girl cast the old garment from her and, throwing herself on the
-bare boards, sob till the elder girl feared for her health.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_126" id="page_126">{126}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_X" id="CHAPTER_X"></a>CHAPTER X</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">A</span>FTER his conversation with Black’erchief Dick, Blueneck found leisure
-to attend to his own amours. He first retired to the brig where, with
-the help of Habakkuk Coot, he arrayed himself in his best clothes, tied
-the knee-latchets of his breeches with bright-coloured tapes, and
-borrowed a brilliant red-and-green kerchief from out poor Mat Turnby’s
-bundle, and then, after carefully tying the length of cherry ribbon,
-which had cost him much time and trouble to procure, in a piece of
-muslin, he stowed the packet in one of his big side pockets and started
-out for Joe Pullen’s house.</p>
-
-<p>He had some little way to go, as the Pullens’ cottage was situated
-slightly to the north of the church, and that was about a mile and a
-half from the point where the brig was moored. He walked along
-cheerfully, whistling a chanty, and mentally rehearsing the speech which
-he intended to make to Mistress Amy when presenting the ribbon.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the time of year, the late afternoon sun shone brightly on
-the wet grass and there was a touch of spring in the air.</p>
-
-<p>On nearing the cottage he stopped to see if he still had the little
-muslin packet, and, feeling it still<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_127" id="page_127">{127}</a></span> there, strolled nonchalantly up to
-the door and knocked loudly.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Pullen opened it herself, and seeing him, put her finger to her
-lips.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stood still looking at her, very disappointed and a little
-foolish. Inside the cottage he could hear deep rafter-shaking snores and
-soon understood that the lady’s husband was within. He opened his mouth
-to speak but Amy shook her head violently and he shut it again with a
-snap; however, he did not move, and Mistress Pullen had to push him off
-the door-step and whisper, “This evening,” before he fully realized that
-he was not wanted. Fumbling in his pocket, he hastily found the ribbon,
-and snatching it out crammed it into her hand, then tiptoed off down the
-path feeling that he had been cheated.</p>
-
-<p>Amy took the parcel without looking up and quickly slipped back,
-shutting the door carefully behind her.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck returned along the way he had come, in a much less cheerful
-frame of mind than when he started out. He no longer whistled but
-lurched along, his head bent and his hands thrust deep in his pockets.</p>
-
-<p>On passing the Ship sounds of cheerfulness came out to him through the
-open door and, yielding to the impulse of the moment, he went in.</p>
-
-<p>As usual the scene in the Ship kitchen was cheering even to look at. The
-roaring fire in the open<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_128" id="page_128">{128}</a></span> grate, the glinting lights on the pewter, and
-the shadowy, dusky corners in which faint outlines of casks and strings
-of drying onions could just be distinguished, all gave it a cosy,
-comforting appearance. At least Blueneck thought so as he joined the
-circle round the fire and called for hot rum to be served to him.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot was in a lively mood; he sat in his corner, his blue eyes
-twinkling from out huge creases of fat, singing, laughing, and drinking
-with the best will in the world, and keeping the company in a continual
-roar of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>Big French sat on the other side of the fireplace, playing with little
-Red Farran and his kitten. The little boy was a favourite of the big man
-and they chatted together with an equal share of enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p>Sue leaned over the back of the seat, and from time to time joined in
-their conversation. At these times French smiled contentedly and almost
-as easily as he did on the days before the little dark-eyed white-handed
-Spaniard landed east instead of west of Mersea Marsh Island.</p>
-
-<p>Anny and Hal were talking together in the background as they polished up
-the tankards. She was telling him about the Spaniard’s desire to rename
-the brig, and clearing away with her gentle cajolery all his little
-jealous fears and doubts.</p>
-
-<p>Several other men were sitting round the fire. They were Habakkuk Coot,
-sniffing as usual and drinking spiced ale; Old Master Granger,
-guffawing<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_129" id="page_129">{129}</a></span> at Gilbot, and sipping his neat rum with obvious relish; Cip
-de Musset, chewing a chunk of coarse black tobacco, a habit much
-disapproved of by the Islanders who thought the weed a dangerous,
-new-fangled drug, and of no use save to sell to other people; and one or
-two others. All very merry and cheerful and good company to each other.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck drank his rum and, beginning to feel more cheerful, he leaned
-forward a little to join in the talk.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! a wonderful funny thing that be,” Granger was saying, as he shook
-his head sagely. “You’re right, a wonderful funny thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! and what’s more, it ain’t the first time it’s happened,” put in
-another man casually.</p>
-
-<p>“What?”</p>
-
-<p>In an instant the company’s attention was fixed on the new speaker and
-he looked round as though he were going to say something very secret.</p>
-
-<p>“Six months ago on Ray Island,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, everyone knows that, Tom Fish. Go home with your old stories!”</p>
-
-<p>There was a note of disappointment in their voices and they all laughed.
-The man muttered something about there being old and old, and subsided.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck came a little nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Might I ask what you are talking about?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Cip de Musset rolled his quid into his cheek and spat before he replied.</p>
-
-<p>“A rowboat load o’ rum and two men lost going from here to Bradwell,” he
-said laconically.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_130" id="page_130">{130}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” said Granger, “wonderful strange.”</p>
-
-<p>“What, ain’t the boat been washed up?” said Blueneck, glad to enter into
-the conversation.</p>
-
-<p>“No, nothing found at all,” said Granger eagerly, as he shifted his
-position slightly. “Nothing at all. But, ah, well,” he added, “I don’t
-know what’s come to them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would the Preventative men have catched them, think you?” remarked Cip,
-chewing.</p>
-
-<p>“Now that are likely,” said Granger sarcastically. “Ain’t ’it? There not
-being a sign of a Preventative man these nine months! Oh, yes, Master de
-Musset, it are likely they’d be spry enough to catch two chaps in a
-rowboat in the middle of the Blackwater without a soul on the Island or
-the mainland knowing aught. Lord, you ought to ha’ been an excise man
-yourself, you ought.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe, Granger, maybe,” said Cip de Musset placidly and without ceasing
-to chew.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe they drank the liquor and then pulled out the bung and sunk her
-theirselves,” suggested Habakkuk, sniffing violently.</p>
-
-<p>Granger turned slowly in his seat and let his gaze fall upon the nervous
-little man for a second or two before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! Master Rheum-in-the-head, maybe they did,” he said, “and maybe the
-devil come along and carried them off in a thunder-cloud, or maybe a
-sea-serpent swallowed them. Eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk looked into the others’ unsmiling faces<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_131" id="page_131">{131}</a></span> and sniffed, while a
-weak, ineffectual little smile spread over his bilious, pimply face, and
-then, as Granger betrayed no amusement, it struck him that he must have
-said something sensible, so he answered, “Ay, most likely,” wagging his
-head sagely.</p>
-
-<p>The company burst into a roar of laughter, and Habakkuk, feeling that
-this time he had been witty, joined with them happily.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, no, but it is unnatural,” continued Granger thoughtfully after the
-laughter had subsided. “And ye know it ain’t the first time a rowboat o’
-rum and two chaps have been lost,” he went on. “Just in the same way,
-too, started off after dawn and never seen no more. Ah, unnatural,
-that’s what it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“The currents be plaguey strong out i’ the channel,” said French,
-looking up for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>Granger was up in arms at once.</p>
-
-<p>“Currents!” he ejaculated. “Now tell me, just tell me, Master French, do
-you think either Clarry Kidley or Gustave Norton would be likely to run
-into anything like that, an’ if they did, to stay in it? Just tell me!”</p>
-
-<p>French shrugged his shoulders and continued to explain to Red the
-kitten’s natural objection to being stroked from tail to the ears.</p>
-
-<p>Granger looked round triumphantly. “Ah, I don’t know, I don’t know,” he
-said at last.</p>
-
-<p>“More do we,” said Habakkuk with a sniff, and the talk drifted to other
-channels.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck was feeling that perhaps the world was<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_132" id="page_132">{132}</a></span> not so dreary a place
-as he had imagined, when the door burst open, and young Tant Pullen
-rushed in without a hat and very breathless. He looked round the room
-for a moment as though searching for someone. At last his quick bright
-eyes fell upon Blueneck and he darted over to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Look out you, get out of here and hide quick,” he gasped as well as he
-could for lack of breath.</p>
-
-<p>The Spanish sailor looked at him in surprise, and the rest of the
-company, seeing that something was afoot, turned to listen.</p>
-
-<p>Tant took the sailor by the collar when he saw that the man did not
-move.</p>
-
-<p>“Quick, hurry, or he’ll get you,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck opened his mouth in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Why&mdash;what?” he ejaculated.</p>
-
-<p>Tant took a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p>“My mother’s bin beatin’ my father, because he said that she’d took
-presents from strangers,” he volunteered. The company began to laugh and
-Blueneck still looked bewildered.</p>
-
-<p>Tant gave one anxious look at the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother says I was to come and tell you,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Again the circle rocked and the mystified Blueneck looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Tant sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“You best come,” he said, “my father’s wonderfully riled after he’s been
-beat by my mother, an’ he’s coming up here to beat you now.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_133" id="page_133">{133}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” The company went off into another paroxysm of laughter, and
-Blueneck began to see a little more light in the matter. “Let him come,”
-he said, shrugging his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stepped forward from the dresser where he had been arranging
-tankards.</p>
-
-<p>“You better go, Master Blueneck,” he said. “Joe’s wonderfully strong,
-and after he’s bin beat by his wife there’s no holding him.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck hesitated. Then he shrugged his shoulders. Whatever he was,
-Dick Delfazio’s mate was no coward and he stood his ground.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not feared,” he said; “let him come.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked at Gilbot who had been watching the scene attentively.</p>
-
-<p>“Ohsh he’sh all right,” said the old man. “Let him come, Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal shrugged his shoulders, and sent Anny upstairs to look to the
-guest’s room. Then he quietly and unobtrusively moved everything movable
-to the sides of the room, so leaving a clear space in the centre.</p>
-
-<p>The company also shrugged their shoulders and edged a little away from
-Blueneck so that the sailor found himself sitting alone on a bench. He
-looked round him uneasily, but did not move.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Tant, who had been looking out of the window, remarked in a
-stage whisper, “Here he come,” and then dived under a pile of sacking in
-a far corner.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_134" id="page_134">{134}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Nobody spoke and the silence was almost uncomfortable. Little Red
-noticed it, and after looking about put his arms round French’s neck and
-climbed on to his knee.</p>
-
-<p>“Put Win into your pocket,” he whispered, “she got hurt last time Nan
-and Pet fought.”</p>
-
-<p>French obeyed and, moving a little farther into the chimney corner, he
-looked up shyly at Sue, who smiled and came round the high seat to sit
-beside him.</p>
-
-<p>French made room for her on the inside of the bench, and she took Red
-from him and held the child herself.</p>
-
-<p>By this time heavy footsteps could be heard coming across the yard, and
-the Ship waited in a silence only broken by Habakkuk’s sniffs and the
-plaintive mews of Red’s little kitten who was shut in the darkness of
-French’s big pocket.</p>
-
-<p>Then the door was kicked open with such a clatter that Habakkuk nearly
-fell off his seat with nervousness, and Joe stalked into the room. All
-his usual good humour was gone and he seemed to Blueneck, at least, to
-have got quite six inches taller. He stood for a moment looking round,
-his face flushed and his eyes dark with fury; a long, livid weal ran
-from his left eye to the corner of his mouth, and he trembled with anger
-as he stood there breathing heavily. Then, as he caught sight of
-Blueneck, he gave one whoop of exultation and leapt across the room,
-landing on the top of the unfortunate man, whom he proceeded to punch
-with all his might.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_135" id="page_135">{135}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Blueneck was no indifferent fighter himself, and as Joe’s first blow
-landed in his ribs a dull light of anger kindled in his eyes and he
-forced his way to his feet, and then the greatest fight that the old
-Ship Tavern had ever witnessed began. They closed in, and Blueneck tried
-to take advantage of his superior strength by grasping his opponent
-round the body and swinging him over his head, but Joe was too wiry for
-that. Seizing his opportunity he dropped low, and throwing his arms
-round the sailor’s knees he suddenly crouched so that the man fell over
-and stretched his body full length on the floor. Before he could again
-regain his feet Joe was upon him and they rolled over and over together
-kicking, the Spaniard swearing softly. Joe said nothing but grit his
-teeth and fought steadily and swiftly, always making for the man’s
-throat. At last he got there; the Spaniard lay on his back and Joe,
-making a desperate dive between his clawing hands, grasped at the hairy
-throat and held on tightly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck’s mouth opened and his eyes bulged; slowly his movements grew
-less effectual and more convulsive. Joe held on grimly and without a
-word; finally he stood up.</p>
-
-<p>“Give him a rum,” he said. “I’ve not done with him yet by a long way.”</p>
-
-<p>Nobody spoke, but Hal stepped forward with the rum. He had drawn it in
-readiness, and between them he and Joe raised the half-strangled man to
-his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_136" id="page_136">{136}</a></span> feet and forced the spirit down his throat. Then, as he grew
-stronger, Joe took him firmly by the collar and dragged him out of the
-Inn, without a word or a glance behind him.</p>
-
-<p>Sue was on her feet in an instant.</p>
-
-<p>“Will he kill him?” she cried.</p>
-
-<p>Hal shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said, “I don’t reckon so&mdash;and if he does, what’s a Spaniard,
-anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yesh,” said Gilbot, holding out his rumkin to be refilled. “What’s a
-Spaniard, anyway? Let’sh have a shong.”</p>
-
-<p>And as Joe, his wrath hardly one whit abated, dragged the
-half-suffocated Blueneck down the road to the sea, he heard the jovial
-strains of “Pretty Poll” roared out in lively chorus from the Ship’s
-kitchen:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Pretty Poll she loved a sailor</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i2"><i>And well she loved he,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>But he sailed to the mouth</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Of a stream in the South,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i2"><i>And was lost in the rolling sea,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i2"><i>Lost in the rolling sea!</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Ah, ha,” said Joe between his teeth as he shook his unfortunate captive
-by the collar. “And that’s what you’re goin’ to be, my lad, ‘lost in the
-rolling sea’.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck opened his mouth to expostulate, but Joe swung him round like a
-meal sack and tightened<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_137" id="page_137">{137}</a></span> his neckerchief, so that it was all he could do
-to breathe, and they hurried on.</p>
-
-<p>Joe strode over the ground at a tremendous pace, dragging the Spaniard
-after him. And not one other word did he speak till they came to the
-waterside, where Joe’s little rowboat, the <i>Amy</i>, flopped and see-sawed
-on the rising tide.</p>
-
-<p>Still keeping one hand on Blueneck’s collar, Joe stopped, caught at the
-riding-line, and pulled it in.</p>
-
-<p>“Get in,” he commanded.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck obeyed as meekly as a lamb, and Joe stepped in after him, and
-pushed off. He rowed steadily for some seconds and, as the water was
-very calm, made good progress. About twenty-five yards from the shore he
-pulled in the oars and sat looking at the other man a full minute. Then
-he spoke sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“Change places and row a bit,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shrugged his shoulders and did not move.</p>
-
-<p>Joe’s eyes began to sparkle and a dull flash suffused his neck and face.</p>
-
-<p>“Do as I say,” he said quietly.</p>
-
-<p>The fresh air and the rum had revived Blueneck and he began to feel
-angry again. Still he did not move. Joe seized an oar, holding it in
-both hands; he wielded it above his head; it was a clumsy weapon,
-however, and the boat rocked dangerously. Instinctively Blueneck drew
-back, and before he knew what he was doing raised himself to a sitting
-position on the gunwale; this was Joe’s opportunity, and he<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_138" id="page_138">{138}</a></span> grasped it.
-Lowering the oar as swiftly as possible he hove it sharply into the
-Spaniard’s stomach, who immediately doubled up and fell backward into
-the water.</p>
-
-<p>Joe crawled along the boat and looked over the side. Blueneck came up a
-little to the left and seized hold of the side; Joe pushed him off, and
-he sank again and tried to strike out for the shore, but his wind was
-gone and he floundered, gasping.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at him critically.</p>
-
-<p>“You won’t come near my wife no more,” he observed, as he threw the
-helpless man a line. “Oh, no, you can’t come in my boat dripping as ye
-are,” he said cheerily as the other, wild-eyed and half-drowned, clawed
-at the boat. “You hang on that there line and I’ll tow ye in,” Joe
-continued, and suiting the action to the word picked up both oars and
-struck out.</p>
-
-<p>When at last the keel grated on the soft shingle, Joe got out and after
-first dropping his anchor looked round for Blueneck. The man lay still
-in the water, both hands tightly grasping the line, the ripple of the
-waves tossing him to and fro.</p>
-
-<p>Joe dragged him in, threw him down on a bank of dry seaweed, and stood
-looking at him for a minute or two.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I wonder if he be dead now,” he said to himself, and he bent down
-to lift the sailor’s eyelids. He tore open the wet remains of Blueneck’s
-best surcoat and put his hand in the left side.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_139" id="page_139">{139}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then he stood up and shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, well!” he said, addressing the unconscious body, “seeing that you
-ain’t dead, you may as well live, but you don’t come round my house in a
-hurry again, or there won’t be any not quite dead about it&mdash;see?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck opened his eyes for a second and then fell back again into
-unconsciousness.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked round him, heaved a sigh of relief and, as he strolled off up
-to the Ship, his face assumed once more its wonted good humour, his
-heavy sandy lashes fell half over his eyes as usual, and, thrusting his
-thumbs in his belt, he whistled as clearly, happily, and tunefully as a
-linnet in May.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_140" id="page_140">{140}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XI" id="CHAPTER_XI"></a>CHAPTER XI</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">E</span>VERYTHING on the shore was very dark and very silent when Blueneck
-regained consciousness and sat up. His head ached and his body was stiff
-and cold while his clothes, still wet and sticky with brine, clung to
-him uncomfortably.</p>
-
-<p>He peered round in the darkness, striving to remember where he was and
-what had happened to him. There was no moon, or at least if there was it
-was so hidden behind the clouds as to be of no use to any one, and he
-could only faintly distinguish a kind of haze some quarter of a mile in
-front of him which he supposed was the sea. Behind him he could see
-nothing at all, only blackness. He put out a cold, trembling hand and
-felt cautiously about; the first thing he touched was the dry, crumbly
-seaweed. Not sure what it was he grasped a handful of it and pulled it
-up. Immediately the sickening stench of stale salt water arose and he
-spat and swore aloud. Then he reached out his other hand and touched
-still more seaweed. He groaned with stiffness and pain and threw himself
-back on the heap. As he did so his shoulders encountered something hard
-and he almost screamed aloud, so much did it jar him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_141" id="page_141">{141}</a></span> Changing to a
-sitting posture again, he felt for the obstacle and found that whatever
-it was it lay beneath the seaweed. Wearily he pushed the stuff aside and
-thrust his hand into the clammy depths beneath. The hard thing was lower
-down still and he burrowed feverishly in a tired, thoughtless way,
-hardly knowing what he did or why he did it.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he paused, and felt more gingerly, yes&mdash;surely he could not be
-mistaken, he was running his hand over the hard round belly of a rum
-keg. He twisted round quickly and winced as his stiffened muscles
-twinged at the movement. Beside the first keg he felt another; and yet
-another at the side of that. He lay back exhausted by the effort and
-wondered at his find. He had no doubt it was some smuggler’s private
-store, but was surprised that on such a lawless coast such secrecy
-should be resorted to. He knew that in Mersea everyone was more or less
-his own master and thought that it was therefore a rather unnecessary
-precaution.</p>
-
-<p>When he had arrived thus far in his thoughts, however, he felt a return
-of the giddiness which he had before experienced and lay back, his eyes
-open, staring in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>He had not lain so many minutes before he caught the glimmer of a light
-in the distance and he stared at it in surprise. It was not coming from
-the sea and was therefore not the riding light of a boat, neither was it
-coming from the direction of the brig or the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_142" id="page_142">{142}</a></span> Ship Inn, but from the
-west, from the lonely strip of coast between the little villages of East
-Mersea and West Mersea.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer it came, till he could see how it jogged and danced
-along the beach, swaying from side to side, pausing a minute here, and
-then darting off again, sometimes vanishing completely only to reappear
-considerably nearer.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck watched it, fascinated, a strange, uncanny fear creeping over
-him; everywhere was so dark and lonely, and he strained his eyes peering
-at the light, fancying that he saw sometimes a man behind it, sometimes
-a beast, or a fiend. This fear grew upon him every moment, and he tried
-to struggle to his feet, but his legs were too benumbed to bear him and
-he sank back again.</p>
-
-<p>The light came nearer and nearer, dancing and swaying more than ever. In
-a flash the story of the lost rowboat ran through his mind and his flesh
-began to creep.</p>
-
-<p>Like most sailors, and Spaniards especially, Blueneck was very
-superstitious; he shuddered and his teeth chattered as he imagined the
-thing that was holding the lantern to be first a blue swollen corpse
-with dead sightless eyes, then a rampaging devil with swinging tail and
-ram’s horns, and then a mermaid whose white teeth were adder’s fangs and
-whose lips were the nightshade’s berries.</p>
-
-<p>His hand crept up to his neck where a little silver crucifix usually
-hung, but it was gone; he must have<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_143" id="page_143">{143}</a></span> lost it in the fight with Joe. He
-trembled and mouthed a prayer.</p>
-
-<p>The light seemed to be making straight for him, and as it came nearer,
-wild, unearthly crooning noises came from it.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck gulped, and his eyes started from his head and the blood
-tingled and danced in his veins.</p>
-
-<p>The noise&mdash;it was certainly not a song nor yet the cry of an animal, but
-a sort of long-drawn-out sighing on a high quavering note&mdash;came nearer
-and grew louder. Now the light was within fifteen paces of him and he
-held his breath. Nearer it came.</p>
-
-<p>“Doña Maria, let it pass,” he prayed. Now it was within five yards of
-him, and came nearer still. Straining his eyes, he could make out a
-fearful bundle-like figure behind the lantern. The noise grew louder;
-nearer it came till the light stopped three feet away from him, and fell
-on the most evil and half-human face the terrified sailor had ever seen.</p>
-
-<p>This was the last straw, and Blueneck screamed. The sound rang out high
-and short as he dropped back on the weed, half insensible. However much
-the thing with the lantern had frightened him, he certainly frightened
-it with his yell, for it sprang back and emitted a howl which started
-the echoes and woke the sea-birds who screamed also as they flapped
-sleepily away.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shut his eyes and waited during three seconds of horrible
-suspense. Then he felt the light<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_144" id="page_144">{144}</a></span> beating on his eyelids, and heard a
-cracked human voice very near him say:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! ye would be spying on me, would ye, ye hell-traitor?”</p>
-
-<p>The words reassured Blueneck more than perhaps anything else would have
-done and he opened his eyes. The terrible old face was very near his
-own, and hot spirit-tainted breath blew into his nostrils, but what
-fixed his attention was the glitter of steel above the figure’s head.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck rose to the situation now that he was assured of the old
-woman’s mortality (he decided that it must be an old woman). He was not
-the man to be frightened of a knife other than his captain’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Pity a poor sailor; so stiff with the cold that his legs will not bear
-him,” he moaned, in a pitiful pleading whine.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman laughed horribly.</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t catch birds like Pet Salt with chaff, hell-rat,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt!” Blueneck began to understand. “Mistress,” he said, “what are
-you about?”</p>
-
-<p>“Killing a spying knave,” was the reply, and the blade descended until
-its point pricked his throat.</p>
-
-<p>Things were turning out more seriously than Blueneck had expected, and
-he spoke quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it rum you want, lady?” he said as steadily as he could, the blade
-pricking deeper as the words moved the muscle of his throat.</p>
-
-<p>“It is, hell-rat, it is.” Pet Salt bent nearer.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_145" id="page_145">{145}</a></span> “And no spying dog
-shall stop me from getting it. Ye waited out here till you were too
-stiff to move, did you? Ah, you blue-livered pike, the devil looks after
-his own.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I’m the man to get it for thee. I’m the mate of the <i>Coldlight</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck had just time to get out the words or she would have killed
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“How do I know you be not?” she said shrewdly, though visibly shaken at
-his words, as she withdrew the knife.</p>
-
-<p>“I swear,” began the sailor.</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt stopped him.</p>
-
-<p>“Swear!” she screamed. “What’s a seaman’s oath to me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Look at my garments,” said the anxious Blueneck. “Are they those of a
-common man or one befitting my station?”</p>
-
-<p>Pet, like many other women before and since, was moved at the sight of
-the bright colours and good stuffs.</p>
-
-<p>“They be ruined with salt water,” she remarked. “What happened to you,
-hell-rat?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck paused before he spoke. His pride forbade him to tell the
-truth, and his prudence warned him against a lie. Finally he made a
-compromise between the two and told a fairly plausible story of two men
-setting upon him, of a fearful fight, and finished up with a faithful
-account of the ducking which he had received.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_146" id="page_146">{146}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Pet seemed satisfied. How much she believed is another matter but, as
-she often told Ben Farran, she understood sea-folk and all their tricks.</p>
-
-<p>She put up the knife somewhere in her rags and set down the lantern.</p>
-
-<p>“Try and stand,” she commanded.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck obeyed as one in a dream; slowly and painfully he staggered to
-his feet, only to drop again almost immediately.</p>
-
-<p>Pet waddled after him.</p>
-
-<p>“Rub your legs,” she said, “and hurry. You’ve got to work for me before
-the cocks crow.”</p>
-
-<p>Wearily Blueneck did as he was bid, and the old woman hobbled to the
-bank of seaweed where she set to work unearthing the kegs. With a grunt
-of satisfaction she set the last one beside the others and turned to the
-sailor.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck staggered to his feet; he was still very unsteady, but the
-rubbing had partially restored his circulation and he was just able to
-stumble along.</p>
-
-<p>Pet pointed to the three kegs.</p>
-
-<p>“Carry two,” she said shortly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked around him hopelessly. It was still dark and lonely and
-some of the horror he had felt when he first saw Pet Salt returned to
-him. He shuddered; the bent old figure in front of him clad in dirty,
-evil-smelling rags seemed again to take on some of the fear-inspiring
-qualities of a fiend or marsh-goblin. He struggled on to where the kegs
-were<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_147" id="page_147">{147}</a></span> lying and with great difficulty hoisted one onto his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Pet lifted up another.</p>
-
-<p>“Put this under your other arm,” she said, “and mind your stepping; it’s
-heavy.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck took it without a word.</p>
-
-<p>Pet picked up the last keg and turned to him, her ugly bulbous face
-showing red with exertion in the lantern’s flickering light.</p>
-
-<p>“Now follow after me,” she said, and hobbled off.</p>
-
-<p>Long afterward Blueneck described this journey from the bank of seaweed
-to Ben Farran’s boat as a walk through hell itself.</p>
-
-<p>Time after time the keg under his arm slipped and fell in the soft
-powdery shingle, and he had to bend his stiffened and aching body to
-pick it up again, while the terrible cracked voice of Pet Salt, railing
-in the most fearful language, rang in his ears.</p>
-
-<p>But he went on. Once he fell and cut his head on a breakwater stone, and
-the old woman kicked him with her wood-shod foot and bade him rise in a
-tone that had fear in it as well as command.</p>
-
-<p>Once they saw a lantern in the far distance and Pet made him crouch and
-wait silent till it passed on. Again and again he felt that he must
-break away and regain his lost courage, but always the fear of the dark
-desolateness and the awful old woman prevented him, and he went on
-meekly.</p>
-
-<p>How at last he managed to climb up the rope<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_148" id="page_148">{148}</a></span> ladder and scramble on to
-the deck of the <i>Pet</i> and then down the hatchway to the stifling cabin
-and bunk-room below he did not know. However, he did it and fell through
-the doorway into Ben Farran’s presence in a fainting condition.</p>
-
-<p>When he recovered himself the air was full of a strange sickening odour
-mixed with the fumes of steaming rum.</p>
-
-<p>He looked round him curiously. The room was very small even for a boat
-and marvellously dirty and untidy.</p>
-
-<p>A few rags were bundled together in a corner, forming a rude sort of
-bed, and an old iron stove smoked and spat in another. On the top of
-this stood an iron bowl, and it was from this Blueneck decided that the
-strange smell came.</p>
-
-<p>In a corner by the stove lay Ben Farran, snoring loudly with his mouth
-open.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked at him curiously. He had been a fine big man, he judged,
-and had had some strength and comeliness, but much rum had changed him
-and he sprawled there a most ungainly, loathsome figure. His shoulders
-were bent till he lost any pretension to height, his jaw was weak and
-drooping, and great blue pouches of flesh hung under his eyes. This,
-combined with an enormous stomach and bent podgy legs, gave him a great
-resemblance to a fat toad.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked away and turned his attentions to himself. He found that
-his outer garments had been removed and that his arms and legs were
-cov<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_149" id="page_149">{149}</a></span>ered with a black-greenish paste. He looked at them in surprise and
-disgust and began to rub off the caked mixture as fast as he could. But
-he noticed that his stiffness had left him and that he felt as well and
-strong as he had done the night before he had his fight with Joe Pullen.</p>
-
-<p>Pet came in presently and he saw that she was growing fast like Ben,
-rum-sodden and old. She smiled when she saw him and he thought how
-horribly pale her toothless gums showed across the flaming purple
-redness of her face.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, master, mate of the <i>Coldlight</i>, I bargain with thee,” she began
-as she handed him his clothes newly dried and motioned him to dress.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck said nothing but took his garments and began to put them on.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks your captain, the Spanish Dick, has set eyes on a pretty
-wench,” she said slowly.</p>
-
-<p>The sailor did not look up; he was mournfully regarding his best doublet
-coat stained and faded with salt water.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, there be many pretty wenches who have had his eyes upon them,” he
-said carelessly.</p>
-
-<p>Pet swore roundly and with such vehemence that he glanced at her.</p>
-
-<p>“But one particular wench?” she went on, relapsing again into quietness.
-“I have long ears.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck, who was slow of comprehension, looked at her in surprise; her
-remark struck him as being strangely irrelevant.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_150" id="page_150">{150}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I hear what is said on the Island,” the old woman continued. “I know
-your captain hath a great liking for Ann Farran, Ben’s gran’daughter.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked even more puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, and if it be so, what then?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Pet smiled again.</p>
-
-<p>“Your captain carries much rum,” she observed.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck nodded and pulled on his boots.</p>
-
-<p>“This Ann Farran hath but one kinsman in the world save her bastard
-half-brother,” Pet went on crooningly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stood up and began to see what she was leading up to.</p>
-
-<p>“There would be none to look for the wench, or hark to the wench if one
-were quieted,” she went on suggestively.</p>
-
-<p>“And that one loves rum!” observed Blueneck.</p>
-
-<p>Pet smiled again.</p>
-
-<p>“And that one loves rum!” she repeated.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck stood thinking for a moment or two, his hands in his pockets.</p>
-
-<p>“For this news, mistress, I will say naught of what has passed this
-evening, nor of the three rum kegs,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Pet nodded; the man seemed intelligent.</p>
-
-<p>“Nor will I say aught of a lost boat,” continued the sailor, darting his
-bright black eyes upon her.</p>
-
-<p>Pet blinked. This man was too intelligent, she told herself.</p>
-
-<p>“I will tell the Captain of your bargain,” Blueneck<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_151" id="page_151">{151}</a></span> went on. “It may be
-he will hear. Meanwhile”&mdash;he looked at the array of little kegs on the
-floor&mdash;“you will not die of thirst, mistress.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet shrugged her shoulders and looked across at the slovenly figure by
-the stove.</p>
-
-<p>“We both drink well,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked from one to the other.</p>
-
-<p>“Of that I have no doubt,” he sneered, and walked out up the hatchway.
-“I will tell the Captain,” he called back, as he climbed down the rope
-ladder and on to the now sunlit wall.</p>
-
-<p>He walked along, talking to himself in a whisper. Now and again he
-paused and made as though to go back. Then he recovered himself and went
-on, still muttering. Finally he shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it won’t be the first time rum has bought a fair lass, anyway,”
-he said aloud, “and it ain’t a right thing in a man to go against old
-habits.”</p>
-
-<p>And lifting his head he began to whistle blithely.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_152" id="page_152">{152}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XII" id="CHAPTER_XII"></a>CHAPTER XII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">I</span>T WAS seven o’clock on the following Wednesday evening and there was an
-air of expectation in the Ship’s kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Coldlight</i> was due to sail under a new name at the late tide.</p>
-
-<p>Anny was upstairs preparing herself for Dick’s coming, while in the room
-below the talk ran high and many conjectures as to the Captain’s
-intentions were put forward and withdrawn as the company drank round the
-fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Osh, where’s the man as can withstand a pretty lass?” said Gilbot,
-smiling and hiccoughing over his sack.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, maybe, maybe, but ’tis a wonderful risky thing, this changing names
-o’ crafts,” put in Granger, wagging his head. “I don’t hold with it
-myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I reckon the Captain knows what he’s about; there ain’t many like
-him to a mile,” remarked another man.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right there,” said old Cip de Musset, who had been sitting
-silently in a corner for some time. “He ain’t no crab, but I’d not let a
-lass o’ mine have much to do with him.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?” said Hal, firing up and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_153" id="page_153">{153}</a></span> coming over from the
-doorway where he had been standing.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot began to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Hark to th’ lad,” he gurgled. “One would think he loved her hisself.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal turned away from the light before he spoke, and no one saw the deep
-flush which crept up over his features even to the roots of his hair,
-making his scalp tingle uncomfortably.</p>
-
-<p>“We look after our wenches at the Ship, Master Gilbot,” he said hastily.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot nodded happily.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, “wesh do, wesh do!” And the talk continued.</p>
-
-<p>Just as the clock by the chimney-piece struck the quarter steps were
-heard coming across the yard, and Black’erchief Dick, flanked by
-Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot, and backed by some nine or ten hardy
-ruffians, marched in at the door.</p>
-
-<p>In an instant the little Spaniard was the centre of an enthusiastic
-group, for, since his first coming to the Ship, Dick had done much to
-make himself popular, and now his deep musical voice was raised
-good-naturedly above the din calling for rum all round and sack for
-those who wished for it.</p>
-
-<p>Hal and Sue darted about in obedience to his order and soon the company
-stood, silent, mugs in hand, waiting for the toast. At this moment the
-inner door opened and Anny, dressed in the purple gown that Sue had
-given her, stepped into the kitchen.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_154" id="page_154">{154}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Dick was at her side in a moment, and respectfully taking her hand led
-her into the centre of the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Ann of the Island, her health and beauty for ever!” he shouted, his
-tankard high above his head. The toast was given boisterously, and Anny
-blushed and smiled shyly.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot was enjoying himself thoroughly and took advantage of a lull
-in the conversation to exclaim:</p>
-
-<p>“Let’sh have a shong,” and then without any more ado began to quaver
-“Pretty Poll” at the top of his voice.</p>
-
-<p>The company took up the burden and the final “Lost in the rolling sea”
-was bellowed till the rafters shook.</p>
-
-<p>“More rum,” called Dick, and then as though obeying an impulse of the
-moment he sprang upon one of the forms and resting one foot on the
-tresselled table, exclaimed,</p>
-
-<p>“Hark ye, dogs, here is a new song, mine own song, a song of Dick
-Delfazio’s own composing.”</p>
-
-<p>And then throwing back his head he began to sing in a remarkably true
-tenor voice, swaying his body in tune to his own music:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Fair as a seagull and proud as the sea,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>As naught in the world is fair Anny to me,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>So gentle, so tender, so wise without guile,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Oh! Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_155" id="page_155">{155}</a></span></div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>By this time the rumkins were all replenished and the chorus of the song
-was taken up and repeated to the accompaniment of jingling pewter.</p>
-
-<p>Dick still kept his position and took up the song again, his dark eyes
-flashing and smiling at the girl who watched him, fascinated.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Avaunt ye fine ladies of France and of Spain,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>So wayward, so wanton, so proud, and so vain.</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>No sweet pleading look, no trick, or no wile,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Shall ever more tempt me from Ann of the Isle.</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>And then he added before any one could speak, “To the brig, dogs,” and
-skipping lightly off the table he offered his hand to Anny and led the
-way out into the yard, the whole company following, roaring as they
-went,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Ann! oh! Ann of the Island,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Anny looked up shyly at the Spaniard, her heart beating quickly with
-excitement. He was strolling jauntily along, her hand lightly held in
-his own; the starlight touched the jewelled hilt of his knife, and his
-big mournful black eyes winked and smiled happily.</p>
-
-<p>He loved display, pageant, parade; she could see that by the way his men
-marched around him in regu<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_156" id="page_156">{156}</a></span>lated order, and by his gorgeous clothes, and
-she herself became a little intoxicated by the air of excitement and the
-singing of the laughing, jostling crowd.</p>
-
-<p>Glancing at him under her lashes, she slipped her hand through his arm
-and laughed a little self-consciously.</p>
-
-<p>A curious, self-satisfied, but half-regretful smile passed over his face
-and he bent toward her.</p>
-
-<p>“Give me a kiss, little one,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>A wave of cold water seemed to dash over Anny’s pleasure and she drew
-her arm away stiffly, saying, “Prithee, sir, I would return to the
-Ship.”</p>
-
-<p>Again the curious smile spread over Dick’s lips but this time there was
-no regret.</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon, mistress, methinks thy beauty and mine own singing hath made my
-brain whirl. Prithee, prithee, fair one, give me thy hand again.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him and held out her hand without a word. He seemed so
-debonair, so gracious, such a fine gentleman, and his soft eyes sought
-hers almost beseechingly, she thought.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Ann! oh! Ann of the Island</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="nind">sang the company as the little procession neared the waterside.</p>
-
-<p>Sue, who walked between French and Cip de Musset, looked at the two
-small figures and sighed involuntarily. She also thought the Spaniard
-was a fine gentleman and she also had seen his dark eyes<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_157" id="page_157">{157}</a></span> fixed
-mournfully on the other girl’s face, and she began to laugh and talk
-noisily to hide her vexation.</p>
-
-<p>Gallantly Black’erchief Dick led the little serving-wench down over the
-planked way to the rowboat, helped her in, and then stepped lightly
-after her. Several of the company crowded in behind them and they pushed
-off. The rest of the band seized other boats that were anchored near the
-shore and followed as best they could.</p>
-
-<p>Once on board the brig, Anny looked about her with delight; the shrouded
-sails and spiderweb-like rigging pleased her immensely; the swinging
-lanterns overhead showed the clean boards and newly painted sides, and
-she laughed with satisfaction as she noted first one thing and then
-another.</p>
-
-<p>Dick was no less pleased; he loved his boat and derived more pleasure
-from showing it off than from anything else in the world. He took her
-from end to end, telling her tales of hairbreadth escapes and secret
-cargoes of papers and documents. Indeed, carried away by his own
-enthusiasm he even hinted that good King Charles owed more to Dick
-Delfazio’s courage than His Majesty was aware of.</p>
-
-<p>Anny listened to him open-mouthed, as he talked on, embroidering his
-tales with a network of fine and polished phrases, and interrupting them
-here and there to shout an order or swear at an unhandy sailor as the
-man hurried to obey him.</p>
-
-<p>When at last the greater part of the company which had followed Dick
-from the Ship stood on the deck of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_158" id="page_158">{158}</a></span> the <i>Coldlight</i>, he opened the
-proceedings after the custom of the Island by calling for rum all round.</p>
-
-<p>After the toast, the whole crowd, which was by this time very
-boisterous, congregated in the forepart of the ship to inspect the
-figurehead which was at the moment covered with a piece of sail-cloth.</p>
-
-<p>Dick with his inborn love of dramatic effect had seen to this, and now
-stepping forward he whipped it off with a flourish and stepped back,
-observing with delight the impression it was making.</p>
-
-<p>Old Ned Hutton, the ship’s carpenter, was certainly not an artist, but
-he had done his best, and all that paint and a chunk of rough-hewn wood
-could do had been done. The figure was undoubtedly meant to represent
-Anny and that was enough for Mersea folk. Everybody cheered loudly, and
-Dick called for more rum. Then he and the girl went forward to examine
-the figurehead more closely.</p>
-
-<p>The ugly awkward thing was profusely decorated with gold paint; so much
-Anny could see by the light of the lantern which Dick gallantly held for
-her, and her name, “ANNY,” was painted on the bright blue band that went
-round the figure’s black head.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis lovely,” she whispered half to herself as she ran her fingers over
-the great arms and breasts on which the paint was hardly dry.</p>
-
-<p>Dick smiled and made her the obvious compliment, and they went down to
-the bows and leaned over the gunwale so as to see the four great white
-letters, “ANNY,” painted on the smooth brown sides.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_159" id="page_159">{159}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The girl was delighted, and her infectious gurgling laugh rang out
-clearly several times on the cold air as she listened to Dick’s
-sparkling conversation.</p>
-
-<p>“Tide’s full and wind fair,” sang out a voice suddenly from the
-watch-tower.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly there was confusion: Dick shouted orders here and there but
-did not take his hand from Anny’s arm. Everyone made for the boats
-shouting farewells to the crew which responded cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>Dick bent nearer to the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I will come again,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled and nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“We are ever pleased to see company at the Ship,” she said demurely,
-slipping her arm out of his grasp and moving over to the side where
-French, Sue, and Hal waited for her.</p>
-
-<p>Dick followed her.</p>
-
-<p>“Give us your blessing, mistress,” he said loudly. There was silence at
-once: the sailors attached much importance to a blessing and they stood
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked round desperately; she had never had a blessing in her life,
-much less given one, and for a moment she was entirely at a loss. No one
-spoke, however, so at last she crossed herself devoutly and said as
-clearly as her nervousness would permit, “I pray God bless this ship,
-Amen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Amen,” repeated the crew solemnly, and then dashed off on their
-business and the bustle recommenced.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_160" id="page_160">{160}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Sue climbed over the side of the boat, French followed her, and then
-Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Farewell, Ann of the Island,” said the Spaniard softly. “I will return
-to thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him and he seemed to her very comely. She held out her
-hand and he raised it to his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Farewell, sir,” she said, and then followed her lover into the little
-boat.</p>
-
-<p>“Farewell!” came the deep and almost beautiful voice again; there was
-the clink of chains and the anchor was weighed, and then the brig, her
-sails all set, glided out into the channel.</p>
-
-<p>Hal bent his back to the oar he was plying and spoke to the other three
-in the little rowboat without looking up.</p>
-
-<p>“There goes a damned nuisance off the Isle for a bit,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>French grunted and pulled hard. Sue sighed and looked out to sea, while
-Anny laughed a little ruefully, and patted Hal’s broad shoulders with
-her little brown hand.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_161" id="page_161">{161}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIII" id="CHAPTER_XIII"></a>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“A</span>NNY, are you gone to sleep yet?” Sue sat up in her bed and peered
-through the darkness to where the other girl lay in a far corner. Her
-hair was unbound and fell over her coarse night garment like a soft
-black shawl as she leant forward, speaking almost in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p>It was nearly a month since Dick had sailed away from the Island, and
-the quiet country life had flowed peacefully on at the Ship without
-interruption. But Sue had not forgotten the little Spaniard. It was a
-continual source of amazement to her that she could have entertained a
-liking for him or even a thought when big handsome Ezekiel French was
-by, but she was not sure about Anny.</p>
-
-<p>Sue had an observant eye, and she noticed that Hal and the girl were not
-so often together as they had used to be, and she drew her own
-conclusions. She had a kind heart, and she felt herself Anny’s guardian
-in a sense.</p>
-
-<p>Poor, quaint, foolish little Anny, she thought, so fond of admiration,
-so willing to love and be loved, so pretty and so gentle; and then she
-thought of the Spaniard, with his bright, devil-may-care eyes, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_162" id="page_162">{162}</a></span> full
-red lips, and she nodded her head into the darkness and leaned forward
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny,” she said distinctly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay.” Anny’s voice came clearly out of the dark corner.</p>
-
-<p>“Have you been asleep yet?” whispered Sue.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay.” Anny turned over on her side.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you not hear me speak before?” the other girl persisted.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed and turned back again.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, I have lain long a-thinking,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue drew her knees up to her chin and clasped them with her arms before
-she spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you ever think of the Spaniard?” she said at last, and then added as
-Anny vouchsafed no answer: “Black’erchief Dick?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny moved in her bed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, him!” she said with a note of contempt in her pretty childlike
-voice. “Oh, nay!”</p>
-
-<p>Sue sighed again, and when she spoke her tone had a certain tenderness
-in it.</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you lie to me, Anny Farran?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed softly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Mistress Sue,” she said, “what would you have me tell you? How many
-times he begged a kiss of me, or held my hand, or bore my onions with
-his fair white hands?”</p>
-
-<p>Sue flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure he never carried onions for thee!” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry! did he not?” said Anny quickly. “Ay,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_163" id="page_163">{163}</a></span> with his thin white
-fingers cracking under their weight, and the muddied side o’ the skep
-rubbing on his silken hose, did he carry onions for me, and I stumbling
-along at his side for all the world like a Hythe oyster wench. Oh! Lord,
-the tales he did tell,” and she broke off into a little chuckle, and Sue
-frowned.</p>
-
-<p>“I would speak seriously with you, Anny,” she began.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed and tossed like a naughty child and then resigned herself to
-the lecture she felt was coming.</p>
-
-<p>“I am listening,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue spoke earnestly and sincerely.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks you care too much for the Spaniard, lass,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny gasped audibly but said nothing, and Sue, mistaking the sound for a
-sigh of confession, went on:</p>
-
-<p>“He is a dangerous man for a young wench to think on,” she said. “I
-would not trust a man who looked so boldly at every smirking lass who
-chanced to stand in his way as he walked from the yard to the brig. Ah!
-you may laugh, but I know; I served in this inn long before you came,
-and I’ve seen men and wenches, time and again. Remember what befell
-Maria Turnby when her husband left for the Indies. There’s a thing for
-him to hear when he comes back again, poor fellow&mdash;his own children left
-to starve that sweetbreads may be served for another man’s brats. Oh,
-Anny, lass,” Sue’s voice shook in its<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_164" id="page_164">{164}</a></span> earnestness, “have a care, have a
-care. Men be eels wi’ maids. And this Delfazio, as he is pleased to call
-himself, is a deal more eel-like than many other menfish. What with his
-soft laughter, and hands like white and polished bone, together with
-black wanton eyes! Oh! have a care, I know tales of him; they say no one
-ever dares to come between him and his wishes, and that never since he
-was a squalling brat has he been stayed from getting what he wants.
-Anny, perchance he wants you, and perchance you will be bewitched into
-letting him get his way.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat up on her straw mattress, her bright eyes glittering in the ray
-of starlight which shone in through the uncurtained window, and her
-little white teeth clenched.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks you wrong me, mistress,” she said, restraining her voice with
-difficulty. “I have no love for any crawling foreigner. What if he do
-eat and talk like the quality; I tell thee there are thirty other men I
-would rather marry than a brown-skinned Spaniard.”</p>
-
-<p>“Marry?” Sue laughed and Anny flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks,” she went on, her voice becoming colder at every word, “that
-not to me so much as to thee, Mistress Sue, should such talk be
-addressed. Is your heart so free from thoughts of this same Dick that
-you can hold him up to me as dangerous? What was it made thee lose thy
-taste for Master French’s talk so suddenly? Oh! truth! you make me sick
-to see you take me for so senseless a wench that you<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_165" id="page_165">{165}</a></span> think I do not see
-your cleverness. Mistress, beware of jealousy.”</p>
-
-<p>Sue gasped. She had never considered the possibility of her words being
-taken in this way, and she could think of no adequate reply at that
-moment save a reproachful, “Anny!”</p>
-
-<p>There was silence for a moment or two and then Anny spoke again over her
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Rest assured,” she said, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis not thoughts of thy pesky little
-cheap-jack that keeps me awake o’ nights. There be many here better than
-he, and one amongst them whom I love.”</p>
-
-<p>Then she buried her head under the blankets and did not speak again, in
-spite of Sue’s protestations of dislike for Dick, and the elder girl,
-getting tired of talking to seemingly deaf ears, lay down also and
-beguiled herself to sleep with thoughts of her own lover.</p>
-
-<p>The next day broke fine and fresh after the heavy rainfall of the
-preceding three weeks, but Sue went about her work with a certain
-nervous fidgetiness which irritated Anny and sent her out over the
-fields with Hal.</p>
-
-<p>Several times when they were out Sue went up to her room and there
-peered into the cracked mirror, putting a curl back here, another
-forward there, smoothing down her eyelashes with a moistened thumb and
-forefinger, and biting her lips till the red blood suffused them
-glowingly. More often did she go to the window, however, and stand there
-for<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_166" id="page_166">{166}</a></span> minutes on end, staring out into the new begreened landscape, where
-the young leaves danced like lambkins in the cool, strong sea breeze,
-the sun on their wet surfaces lending them some of the splendour of
-jewels.</p>
-
-<p>Sue had made up her mind. Nobody came to the Ship all the morning, and
-by three o’clock she was in no pleasant humour, so old Gilbot found when
-he asked her to sing for him, for she was up and off in a moment with
-the sharp remark, “that there was more to do in the world than sing and
-get deep in liquor.”</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot was amazed; his little blue eyes stared surprisedly in front of
-him, and he absent-mindedly put his rumkin upside down on the stove and
-it was some minutes before he discovered that the kitchen was reeking
-with burnt rum dregs.</p>
-
-<p>This made Sue angrier still, and she bustled about, throwing open the
-doors, muttering the while that she was ashamed to let visitors into a
-room that smelt like Pet Salt’s boat and looked like a sty.</p>
-
-<p>Little Red Farran, however, found her in a very different mood, for when
-he came creeping into the scullery with his kitten (now wellnigh a cat)
-tucked under his cape, she caught him up in her arms and kissed him and
-then to his astonishment gave him a large slice of oatmeal cake
-high-heaped with quince jelly and sent him off on his way rejoicing.</p>
-
-<p>Her charity was well rewarded, for some two minutes later the kitchen
-door was kicked open and Red and French came in together.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_167" id="page_167">{167}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Sue began at once to bustle about with unnatural gaiety, and Gilbot
-regarded her with still greater astonishment, until he suddenly looked
-round and saw French. Then he nodded his head sagely once or twice, and,
-getting up with difficulty, tottered to get his coat which hung behind
-the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Redsh an’ Ish goin’ foa walk,” he announced.</p>
-
-<p>Red gave a whoop of delight and ran after him happily.</p>
-
-<p>French looked after them in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Whatever made him go off like that, now?” he said, as he sat down at
-the table.</p>
-
-<p>Sue blushed and clanged the pots together noisily.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I don’t know,” she said almost sharply.</p>
-
-<p>French turned to her, his handsome boyish face blank with astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, what’s the matter with you?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue shrugged her shoulders and bit her lips. Why was he so different
-to-day, she wondered?</p>
-
-<p>“Me&mdash;oh, nothing; is there aught in my face that should make you ask
-that?”</p>
-
-<p>Sue turned a fiery cheek toward the young giant, and then moved away.</p>
-
-<p>French got up.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what’s taken you all,” he said, puzzled. “When I first
-comes in, Master Gilbot flies out wi’ the young lad, and now you look at
-me as though I’d done some mortal wrong. What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! go to with ye.” Sue’s back was toward him<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_168" id="page_168">{168}</a></span> and he could not see her
-face but her voice sounded sharp. “I’m getting your rum as fast as may
-be.”</p>
-
-<p>“What need you be worrying about rum?”</p>
-
-<p>French looked round him miserably.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sorry,” he said, changing his weight from one foot to the other and
-his hands becoming noticeable and awkward.</p>
-
-<p>Sue only sighed impatiently and busied herself with the rum.</p>
-
-<p>French turned on his heel.</p>
-
-<p>“All’s well then,” he said finally. “I’ll be getting down West. I reckon
-I knows when I’m welcome or not, Mistress&mdash;Mistress Susan Gilbot,” and
-he strode to the door. “There’s other inns,” he said meaningly.</p>
-
-<p>Sue turned about in a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, wait for your rum, Master French,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>French did not move but stood straddle-legged in the doorway looking out
-into the yard.</p>
-
-<p>“Rum? Oh, that don’t matter; an inn’s got more uses than just to sell
-rum, mistress,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, to provide wenches for any man to insult, I reckon,” said Sue,
-tossing her head and dashing her hand across her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>French turned round quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, who’s been insulting you, lass?” he said sharply.</p>
-
-<p>Sue laughed and turned her head away.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that to you?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>French shrugged his shoulders.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_169" id="page_169">{169}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m going,” he remarked, and stepped down the stone stair into the
-yard.</p>
-
-<p>Sue swallowed once and then ran after him.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee wait while I hot your rum, sir,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>French turned willingly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d do aught for you when you ask me like that, Sue,” he said gently,
-as he followed her back into the kitchen and sat down while she bustled
-around with a tankard, hardly knowing what she did.</p>
-
-<p>French watched her critically.</p>
-
-<p>“Aught been upsetting you, mistress?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay.” Sue blushed again and stumbled over a form.</p>
-
-<p>The big man sighed and looked into the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Been thinking of the Spaniard?” he asked half between his teeth.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Sue so vehemently that he jumped. “I have not, nor am like
-to.”</p>
-
-<p>French smiled on her.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, that’s all right, then, ain’t it?” he said cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what you’re talking about,” she said stiffly.</p>
-
-<p>French’s smile faded.</p>
-
-<p>“No, that’s right,” he said almost mournfully, “that’s right.”</p>
-
-<p>And there was silence for a few moments. He drank his rum, and after
-opening and shutting his mouth once or twice, rose to go.</p>
-
-<p>Sue watched him to the door and then in spite of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_170" id="page_170">{170}</a></span> herself the tears
-began to trickle down the side of her nose, and she sobbed once audibly.</p>
-
-<p>French was at her side in a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“What is the matter, lassie?” he said kindly, all his shyness vanishing
-as he whipped out a large yellow handkerchief and began to wipe her eyes
-hastily. “Are you ill?”</p>
-
-<p>Sue sobbed violently.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” she said angrily, and then snatching the handkerchief out of his
-hand buried her face in it.</p>
-
-<p>French put a big hand on each of her shoulders and shook her gently.</p>
-
-<p>“If I asked you for something would you give it to me?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Sue still covered her face with her hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! why don’t you ask me?” she sobbed.</p>
-
-<p>French lifted her up in his arms to kiss her, and she stopped crying and
-began to blush as he carried her over to the chimney corner where they
-sat, laughing and whispering, till Gilbot and Red, driven in by the
-rain, which had restarted with as much violence as ever, came for their
-tea.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you watched that damned Spaniard a deal too much,
-sweetheart,” said French, as he and Sue walked to the end of the lane
-together, although the rain came down in torrents.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! go along with you. Would I not rather have a man to love than a
-live knife?” said Sue, as she stood on tiptoe to kiss him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_171" id="page_171">{171}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIV" id="CHAPTER_XIV"></a>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">M</span>ASTER FRANCIS MYDDLETON leaned back in his chair and gently stuffed a
-wad of coarse Virginia into the slightly blackened bowl of his stubby
-clay pipe, and lifted his gouty foot on to one of the bronzed firedogs
-which ornamented his spacious hearth, and then after pulling once or
-twice at the short stem, he took out a bundle of letters from one of his
-capacious pockets and began to read them. They were from his son who
-held a fairly responsible place at the Court of His Gracious Majesty
-King Charles II, and from time to time a low wheezing chuckle broke from
-the old man’s lips and he coughed and spat, the tears of laughter
-starting to his eyes as he read.</p>
-
-<p>“The sly devil,” he muttered, laughing, “bribed her serving-wench with a
-kiss, did he?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! dearie, dearie me&mdash;Good King Jamie was more particular. What a
-thing it is to be young and to have a king to serve,” and he laughed
-again, this time quite loudly.</p>
-
-<p>A female voice called shrilly from the room above:</p>
-
-<p>“What’s ailing you, Francis?”</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton put the letters hastily into his pocket.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_172" id="page_172">{172}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis naught, Eliza, my foot doth trouble me somewhat.”</p>
-
-<p>“Marry,” came the high, strident voice from the other room, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis
-strange that a gouty foot should make you laugh like a moon-struck
-lunatic.”</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton made no reply, and after a moment’s pause the voice
-went on again:</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a wonder you can laugh when we have a man coming to take the very
-bread out of our mouths. You should be praying the Lord to succour your
-wife and daughter, not laughing yourself daft by the fireside.”</p>
-
-<p>The old man sighed and shook the ashes from his pipe and began slowly to
-refill it.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s o’clock?” he called out after a minute or so’s silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Half after eight; he should be here by now if the river ain’t high over
-the bridle path at Tenpenny Heath.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” said Master Myddleton reflectively.</p>
-
-<p>There was the sound of a chair being pushed back and of heavy steps on
-the stairs, and Mistress Eliza Myddleton entered the dining room where
-her husband sat.</p>
-
-<p>She was a big fair woman who still preserved a remnant of the great
-beauty which had once been hers, but as she often told her neighbours
-when she was in a confidential mood, what with having a rapscallion
-stepson and a pretty daughter to look after, an excise man for a
-husband, and also being a staunch, God-fearing woman and a puritan at
-that, lines and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_173" id="page_173">{173}</a></span> wrinkles would come and they had&mdash;as indeed any one
-might note for himself.</p>
-
-<p>Now as she came into the room, her thin face pale with worry, Francis
-looked at her, and old villain that he was, he wondered why he had ever
-married her.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you going to say to him?” began the lady, planting herself
-before him, her bony arms akimbo.</p>
-
-<p>Master Francis shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Say?” he said. “Why, naught!”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Eliza threw her hands above her head in a gesture of despair.</p>
-
-<p>“You would,” she said. “I don’t believe you realize the state we are in.
-I don’t believe you care if your wife and child are thrown into the
-streets. I don’t believe you could say a word to save yourself hanging.
-In God’s truth, I don’t believe you have your wits about you, Master
-Myddleton.”</p>
-
-<p>Francis sat still puffing at his pipe and his wife went on:</p>
-
-<p>“Had you only done your duty, and gone out after the Mersea smugglers, I
-might be a fine lady this day, or at least&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“A widow!” put in Francis, without removing the pipe from his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Mistress Eliza gasped. “For shame, Master Myddleton, are you a
-coward?”</p>
-
-<p>“No more ’an others, but, Lord, Eliza, you wouldn’t have me trapesing
-about i’ the dusk hunting rum kegs?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_174" id="page_174">{174}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Francis took the pipe from his mouth and looked at his wife, a quizzical
-expression in his little gray eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis what you’re paid for,” said Mistress Myddleton, lifting her eyes
-to the low-raftered ceiling.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton coughed explosively, and his face grew red with anger.</p>
-
-<p>“God’s body! Isn’t that just like a woman,” he shouted, dashing his hand
-so violently on the arm of his chair that his pipe flew into shivers,
-whereupon he swore an oath which made his wife shudder. “Just like a
-woman sweet as honey till aught goes wrong,” he continued, getting more
-and more angry at every word. “Did you ever talk of hunting smugglers
-before the Mayor of Colchester must needs appoint an assistant to me?
-Lord! woman, you drink smuggled tea every day of your life so as to be
-i’ the fashion&mdash;don’t talk to me!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s very well for you to call this Thomas Playle an assistant, Master
-Myddleton,” observed his wife with asperity. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis you are to be his
-assistant, I’m thinking. That will be a nice thing for the neighbours to
-hear&mdash;now if only our Matilda and he could&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Francis Myddleton fairly roared with fury.</p>
-
-<p>“Peace with ye, designing woman,” he shouted. “Will I have my only
-daughter disposed of before my eyes? Unfeeling mother! Elizabeth, I am
-amazed at ye.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Myddleton gulped with indignation.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_175" id="page_175">{175}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Francis, I am surprised at you. I disposing of your daughter! Oh, you
-scandalous man! Why ever was I married to such a lump of lying perfidy?”</p>
-
-<p>“God knows!” said Master Myddleton bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Elizabeth’s answering outbreak was checked by the sound of
-horses’ hoofs in the cobbled yard outside.</p>
-
-<p>“There he is&mdash;God help us,” she had time to whisper, and then composing
-her features into an amiable smile went out to meet their unwelcome
-guest.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton sat looking down at the fragments of his pipe: then he
-felt in his pocket and drew out a twist of tobacco which he smelt and
-rolled lovingly round his fingers.</p>
-
-<p>He sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“Drat women and work,” he said to the roaring fire which blazed,
-crackled, and spat as though it quite agreed with him.</p>
-
-<p>Master Thomas Playle sprang out of his saddle and threw his bridle rein
-to the grinning ostler who ran out to meet him, and then marched up to
-the front door and pulled the bell sharply.</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Myddleton was before him in an instant and so overwhelmed him
-with welcome and motherly concern for his wet, muddy condition that he
-had nothing to say for himself for a minute or so.</p>
-
-<p>The candlelight in the stone-flagged hall showed the newcomer to be a
-tall, rather handsome man, some seven and twenty years of age.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_176" id="page_176">{176}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Mistress Myddleton regarded him with approval and mentally summed up her
-daughter Matilda’s attractive qualities: the result seemed to please
-her, for she smiled and conducted him to the dining room.</p>
-
-<p>“My husband hath a troubled foot,” she was at some pains to explain,
-“and prays you to pardon him for not being on the steps to meet you.”</p>
-
-<p>Playle bowed coldly and followed his voluble hostess in silence.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton looked up casually as they entered, and after returning
-the younger man’s bow without rising he bade his wife hasten the supper,
-and, after waiting until she was out of the room, motioned his guest to
-a comfortable chair on the opposite side of the hearth.</p>
-
-<p>“His worship, the Mayor and his&mdash;&mdash;” began the young man sententiously
-as he sat down and stretched out his high mud-caked boots to the
-friendly fire.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton waved his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“After we have eaten, I pray you. The morning will do,” he said. “Until
-then I would like to speak of this heinous crime of smuggling as carried
-on in this town and on the Island over the Fleet.”</p>
-
-<p>Playle felt disquieted. Here he was in this old gentleman’s house,
-drying himself at his fire and making himself generally comfortable. How
-could he boldly announce that these affairs would be his care in future,
-and that Master Myddleton need trouble himself no further? He decided to
-put it off<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_177" id="page_177">{177}</a></span> till supper was over. After all, he considered the old man
-must know something of use to him in his future work.</p>
-
-<p>Master Playle was a very conscientious young man and one who had
-ambitions. He had fought for this appointment and meant to show his
-ability. He had served for a time in one of His Majesty’s own regiments
-and still held a commission.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton began to speak.</p>
-
-<p>“We have a very difficult task before us, Master Playle,” he began in
-the deep pompous voice which he used on all official occasions. “I think
-I can truthfully say that on no other part of the coast is King Charles’
-law&mdash;God bless him&mdash;more persistently and I might almost say
-courageously violated.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused, and his little gray eyes sought a flicker of surprise on the
-young man’s face, but they were disappointed. Playle’s easy smile still
-played round his thin lips as he listened with polite attention.</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton began again.</p>
-
-<p>“With such violent, all-daring, cut-throat gang against me, I
-have&mdash;er&mdash;yes, to be plain with you, Master Playle&mdash;I have&mdash;er&mdash;felt it
-unwise&mdash;not to say foolhardy&mdash;to take more than preliminary measures
-against these unruly vagabonds until I received assistance from
-headquarters.”</p>
-
-<p>Playle’s smile deepened and Francis, looking up suddenly, saw it.
-Instantly his manner changed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I see you know something of their customs, Master Playle,” he said,
-laughing wheezily.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_178" id="page_178">{178}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Playle looked up a little disconcerted, but he laughed with the old man
-and nodded his head.</p>
-
-<p>“I can see I can be quite plain with you,” went on Francis, his eyes
-scanning the other’s face.</p>
-
-<p>Playle was a simple, straightforward soldier, and he felt rather at a
-disadvantage with this quick-witted old villain with the gouty foot.
-However, he deemed it prudent to make some remark.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, of a certainty, of a certainty!” he said as intelligently as
-possible. “I am determined to abolish this illegal trading.”</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton sighed; he began to see a little more clearly how the
-land lay.</p>
-
-<p>“Very right, an excellent spirit in youth,” he said heartily. “Go in and
-conquer&mdash;sweep all before you. That’s how I like to hear young people
-talk. It is for the old with our gouty feet and long experience to sit
-at home and think out campaigns, and for you, the young and healthful in
-body, to carry them out gloriously.”</p>
-
-<p>He slapped his knee in applause at his own words, and then, as the young
-man said nothing, but sat still smiling into the fire, he continued, his
-voice resuming the pompous note.</p>
-
-<p>“But believe me, you have a difficult task, as I said before&mdash;a
-difficult task indeed. Now let me advise you first to attack the
-smuggling here on the mainland. Had you half a troop of infantry it
-would be madness to attempt to quieten Mersea Island.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_179" id="page_179">{179}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Playle sat up and became interested.</p>
-
-<p>“The Island,” he said. “Yes, I’ve heard of the smuggling there; the
-block-house there was well-guarded in the war, I know.”</p>
-
-<p>Master Myddleton waved him silent, and continued to talk. “There are two
-principal smuggling vessels,” he said casually. “The first, <i>The Dark
-Blood</i>, belongs to a man called de Witt, and then the <i>Coldlight</i>, which
-belongs to a mysterious Spaniard.”</p>
-
-<p>Young Playle gasped. That the old man should know all this and yet take
-no measures to stop it amazed him, and his youthful imagination began to
-play round his old ambitions until he saw himself lord of the customs
-and His Majesty’s right-hand man.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not stop all vessels that enter the river?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I had thought of it&mdash;I had thought of it,” said Myddleton, wagging his
-head sagely.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m going to do it,” replied Playle quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Old Francis laughed deprecatingly and was about to answer him when
-Mistress Eliza, her daughter, a tall girl fair like her mother and
-buxomly beautiful, with their little maid, Betsey, entered with the
-supper.</p>
-
-<p>During the meal, Mistress Eliza talked almost incessantly, and her
-husband filled up the few pauses in her streams of conversation with
-lurid stories of the smugglers’ cruelty. Once after a more vivid one<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_180" id="page_180">{180}</a></span>
-than usual, Mistress Matilda looked archly at the young soldier.</p>
-
-<p>“If only it could be stopped!” she said, while her mother made some
-remark about poor little Matty’s childishness.</p>
-
-<p>Thomas Playle looked up from the lump of boiled fish he was eating.</p>
-
-<p>“It shall be stopped, mistress,” he said. “Such flagrant crime is a
-disgrace to the glorious court of His Gracious Majesty.”</p>
-
-<p>While Francis felt the bundle of letters in his pocket and grinned
-wickedly to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“You have some men in your pay and arms for them, I suppose, Master
-Myddleton?” observed Playle a little later on in the evening.</p>
-
-<p>“About five,” said Francis, and then, noting the other’s surprise, he
-added: “But some twenty more trustworthy men can be called out at a
-moment’s notice, if you find it necessary.”</p>
-
-<p>Playle could hardly repress a smile of pleasure; life seemed suddenly to
-have opened up to him. Twenty-five men at his orders, a gang of
-ferocious smugglers to attack, and a pretty girl to stand by and admire
-at the proper time. His smile broadened.</p>
-
-<p>His ambitions flew away with him and he sat staring at his plate, his
-brown eyes twinkling with pleasure, until Mistress Myddleton had to
-touch him on the shoulder and give him a candle, before he realized that
-Betsey, the little maid, waited to show him his room.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_181" id="page_181">{181}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Once in their room Mistress Eliza and her husband argued over the
-situation until both were exhausted.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s a handsome man, anyway,” said the lady at last, as she brushed her
-little wisp of gray-yellow hair before the oval mirror. “I wonder if
-Matilda&mdash;&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>Francis, who was already tucked in his side of the huge four-poster bed,
-growled through the curtains, and Mistress Eliza bit her lip.</p>
-
-<p>“He’ll make a difference to the price of tea hereabouts, I’ll warrant,”
-she said, after a minute’s silence, as she blew out the candles and
-opened the casement.</p>
-
-<p>Francis grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks he’ll be a deal of nuisance to the trade,” he said bitterly.
-“No more cheap tabac&mdash;God help us.”</p>
-
-<p>Mistress Eliza echoed his sigh, and they settled themselves to sleep.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_182" id="page_182">{182}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XV" id="CHAPTER_XV"></a>CHAPTER XV</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“T</span>HERE, look, there now, will that be the <i>Coldlight</i>&mdash;<i>Anny</i>, I mean?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny paused in her walk and stared out across the bay. Hal followed the
-direction of her hand and then shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said, “<span class="lftspc">’</span>tis too small.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed and moved on, but the boy still stared out at the
-white-sailed boat on the horizon.</p>
-
-<p>“Last time I saw a craft like that,” he began reflectively, “was when
-the Preventative folk chased Fen de Witt halfway up the Pyfleet and then
-got stuck.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny stopped quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord! It won’t be them, will it?” she said, a note of fear creeping
-into her voice.</p>
-
-<p>Hal shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Like as not,” he said carelessly.</p>
-
-<p>The girl stared, fascinated, at the white speck in the distance.</p>
-
-<p>“And the captain coming back this very day!” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Hal reddened at her words, and wheeled round fiercely, but she was not
-looking at him and he turned away again.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_183" id="page_183">{183}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Hal, what if the Preventative folk got any one?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“They’d die, that’s all,” he replied laconically.</p>
-
-<p>The girl looked round at the early summer landscape and shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“Look again, are you sure about the boat?” she commanded anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>Hal threw a casual glance over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure? Sure of what?” he asked gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>“That it’s the Preventative folk!” Anny shook his sleeve as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>Hal wrenched his arm out of her grasp, and replied irritably:</p>
-
-<p>“No, of course I’m not sure; don’t be stupid, girl; I only said ’twas
-like one.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter?” she laughed; they had come to a part where the wall
-melts into the high-lying fields and the path is very wide, and Hal
-stepped back a pace or two and turned a red and angry face toward the
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Anny,” he said, his voice shaking with anger. “I’m tired of
-this hankering and whining after that dirty little Spaniard. You know
-we’re going to be married as soon as I can get some money; then I’ll be
-able to give you things&mdash;better things than him&mdash;aren’t you going to
-wait for me? See here, I won’t have this carrying on with the
-foreigner.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s blood was up and she turned to her lover as fierce as a
-tiger-cat.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_184" id="page_184">{184}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, and will you not, Master Hal Grame?” she said bitingly. “I’ll
-have you know that you have no authority over me you&mdash;you tapster!”</p>
-
-<p>Hal blinked; he had never seen Anny like this before and he stood
-staring at her in amazement, his mouth half open.</p>
-
-<p>“I have not hankered after the Spaniard, as you call it.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s eyes were bright with tears at his injustice, but she spoke
-firmly, and with great intensity.</p>
-
-<p>“And as for you being tired, master Lord of the Island, so is Anny
-Farran, your servant&mdash;very, very tired of this fooling. Lord! you
-child&mdash;is it me that hankers,” the word seemed to have stuck in her
-mind, for she repeated it, “hankers for the Captain? Is it me? Oh, Hal
-Grame&mdash;I&mdash;I hate you.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal stepped back another pace or two and looked round him vaguely. This
-was a new departure of Anny’s. He had never seen her so indignant, and
-he thrust his hands in his pockets and turned on his heel.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope that is the Preventative folk then,” he remarked, jerking his
-thumb over his shoulder, “then they’ll catch the little dog.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny reddened.</p>
-
-<p>“Hal Grame, you’re a jealous coward,” she said clearly, and then her
-tears began to fall and she sat down on the grass, looking out over the
-cloud-shadowed water.</p>
-
-<p>Hal did not speak but stood idly kicking the dust with his foot.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_185" id="page_185">{185}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You’re not saying that you don’t love me?” he said confidently.</p>
-
-<p>Anny bit her lip.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve told you I hate you,” she said clearly; she was still very angry
-for the boy’s mistrust had hurt her.</p>
-
-<p>He turned round slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be silly, Anny,” he said not unkindly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny furtively wiped her eyes; his confident attitude annoyed her, and
-she spoke clearly.</p>
-
-<p>“Go away, Hal Grame; I won’t ever marry you.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal gasped.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, you’re bewitched,” he exclaimed. He couldn’t have chosen a more
-unfortunate remark, for Anny was more irritated than ever.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, not now, but I was, ever to think at all on the likes of you,” she
-snapped. “Oh, go away.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal wavered; his little sweetheart sat on the grass, her face turned
-away from him, but he felt that she was crying, so came a little nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Give me a kiss,” he said, laughing. “You’re a smart little wench,” and
-kneeling down behind her he bent to kiss her cheek.</p>
-
-<p>Before he realized what had happened he felt a smart blow across the
-mouth, and Anny sprang to her feet and walked off quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Hal sat back on his heels and passed his hand across his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“You little vixen,” he gasped.</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed, a bitter, angry little laugh, and went on.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_186" id="page_186">{186}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hal looked after her anxiously for a moment or two, and then as she did
-not turn back he scrambled to his feet and followed her.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny, you’re not angry,” he said, as soon as he was near enough to
-speak softly. The words came shamefacedly from his mouth and he slurred
-them one into another.</p>
-
-<p>Anny gulped; she was very angry, and Hal’s attitude annoyed her.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed I am,” she said, “and turning a slobbering calf won’t make me
-any better. Oh! go home, Hal Grame.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal was amazed.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny!” he ejaculated.</p>
-
-<p>Anny repressed a howl of disappointment and contented herself with
-saying wearily:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go home&mdash;go home!”</p>
-
-<p>The boy looked at her for a moment or two.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny,” he said at last, “are you trying to leave me for the Spaniard?”</p>
-
-<p>This was more than she could stand, and turning to him she broke out
-into a stream of angry, incoherent abuse and denial.</p>
-
-<p>“Why are you for ever plaguing me about the Spaniard? Why does everyone
-talk of him? I’m sick of hearing his name&mdash;if you’re jealous of him go
-to him, not to me.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal shrugged his shoulders and said with irritating calmness:</p>
-
-<p>“Then there is that for me to go to him about, eh?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_187" id="page_187">{187}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Anny raised her little clenched fists above her head and cried aloud:</p>
-
-<p>“You make me mad, Hal Grame. Of course there isn’t,” and then, as she
-saw that he didn’t believe her, she went on, “Of course not, of course!
-Oh, Hal! if you were a man you’d do other things than worry a poor lass
-dead with your foolishness.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, that’s like a wench!” he said. “What if I haven’t a golden jacobus
-to my name! I shouldn’t think you’d throw that at me if you loved me.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny did not speak and he went on, “If I were a man&mdash;yes, that’s it, if
-I were a dirty, sneaking, knife-throwing Spaniard, with a fleet of
-rat-ridden cockle-boats and a crew of mangy dogs behind me, you’d be
-content&mdash;then I could do other things&mdash;bring you gauds and laced
-petticoats. Faugh! I’m glad I’ve seen you thus; I wouldn’t wed a
-cormorant and a shrew.”</p>
-
-<p>His anger had carried him away with it, for like most Norsemen he had a
-strain of bitterness under his usually sunny, peaceful disposition.</p>
-
-<p>Anny winced at his words.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not that&mdash;you know it’s not that, Hal,” she said piteously. “But
-why worry me? If you’re jealous of him, fight him.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked at her in astonishment; he was no coward, but neither was he
-a hot-head, and he knew something of Dick’s reputation as a swordsman
-and a knife-fighter.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_188" id="page_188">{188}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Fight him,” she repeated mechanically.</p>
-
-<p>A sneer played round the boy’s mouth when he next spoke, and his eyes
-had grown cold.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry, Anny Farran, I did not think you capable of it,” he said. “You
-would have me die on the Spaniard’s knife and so rid of for ever.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to cry hopelessly. She felt there was no use in saying
-anything to him while he was in this mood, but she was very fond of him
-and he hurt her much more than he knew.</p>
-
-<p>Hal turned on his heel, and, as he strode off, began to realize how much
-he loved the wayward beauty. A great wave of self-pity swept over him.
-He was very young, barely nineteen, and once or twice he bit his lip
-convulsively, as he imagined the future loneliness, the constraint at
-the Ship, old Gilbot’s sallies, and then, as he stayed to look out over
-the glancing, shimmering water, he noticed that the little white-sailed
-ship was still hovering about the mouth of the Mersea River, and he
-laughed wildly.</p>
-
-<p>“May you sink the Spanish weasel,” he exclaimed aloud, and then went on,
-and every step he took he became more miserable and angry with himself
-and the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I’ll go and see Joe,” he thought, as he turned into the lane. “It’s
-a fine thing to have a mate, so it is, when your lass leaves you for a
-yellow heathen.” And he turned down toward Pullen’s cottage.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_189" id="page_189">{189}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny sat on the bank where he had left her. She was very sorry for
-herself, too, and she looked round her through tearful eyes.</p>
-
-<p>No one was in sight. Behind her the bright sun lit up the countryside
-with beautiful green and yellow light, while in front, the sea, clear
-and smooth as glass, sparkled and glittered peacefully. She got up
-slowly, and started back for the Ship, and for the first time a sense of
-insecurity came upon her, and she realized rather fearfully that she was
-very much alone. Hitherto, she had always relied on Hal to take care of
-her, but now he was angry, very angry, she could see that; perhaps he
-would never forgive her. She shivered involuntarily. Old Ben was her
-only relative, and the thought of him and Pet Salt frightened her. Sue
-and Gilbot were very kind, but would they trouble themselves to protect
-a little serving-wench from a wealthy customer?</p>
-
-<p>All these questions ran through her head, and the image of the dark,
-wanton-eyed, debonair little captain rose up in her mind like a spectre.
-She knew now that she did not like him, and she began to be afraid. She
-remembered the times he had tried to kiss her; and how each time at the
-thought of Hal she had repulsed him successfully. Now Hal would be
-indifferent. A sob stuck in her throat, and she swallowed painfully.</p>
-
-<p>Then an idea struck her. There was always Nan Swayle&mdash;poor, disappointed
-Mother Swayle had always a soft spot in her hard-crusted heart for
-little<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_190" id="page_190">{190}</a></span> Anny Farran, her old lover’s grandchild. She would go to
-Nan&mdash;but then the picture of the lonely old woman living with her cats
-in a tumble-down shed on one of the many small dyke-surrounded islands
-in the marshes presented itself to her, and she began to cry afresh as
-she walked wearily up to the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, out in the river’s mouth, alone between sea and sky, the
-little white-sailed craft patrolled steadily to and fro, as Master
-Thomas Playle, a telescope to his eye, swept the horizon anxiously and
-impatiently.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_191" id="page_191">{191}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVI" id="CHAPTER_XVI"></a>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">T</span>HE sun was just about to set over the Island in a blaze of glorious
-colour when the <i>Anny</i>, sailing peacefully under half canvas, came in
-sight of Bradwell Point.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck and Habakkuk Coot were below deck in a little bunk-hole which
-they had fitted up as a sort of wash-house. It was one of Black’erchief
-Dick’s fads to have his linen always spotless and marvellously
-laundered, and, as this was a luxury hardly dreamed of on the Island,
-during his visits to England the valiant Captain had to have his washing
-done aboard. The job of laundryman had almost naturally fallen to
-Habakkuk, who had accepted the office joyfully, and he now stood, clad
-in nothing but his breeches, in front of an emptied Canary tub immersed
-up to the elbows in soapy water.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck leaned against the doorway watching him.</p>
-
-<p>“Santa Maria! what an occupation,” he remarked contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk sniffed.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s very nice when you’re used to it,” he said without looking up from
-the garment he was pounding and squeezing with a kind of vicious
-delight.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_192" id="page_192">{192}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe,” he said, “anyway, I’m going on deck; this here rat-hole’s too
-stinking for me.”</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk sniffed again but took no other notice of his friend, who
-presently lumbered off up the hatchway.</p>
-
-<p>The water was very green and the waves rolled lazily after one another
-as though it were hot even for them, while the <i>Anny</i> dipped and rolled
-gently among them at about one third her usual speed.</p>
-
-<p>They were early, and, careless though he was, Dick did not like landing
-until it was at least dusk.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck strode across the deck and stood staring toward the Island, now
-just a streak on the flaming horizon.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he started, and, speaking sharply, ordered one of the sailors
-who was sprawling on the deck to bring him a telescope.</p>
-
-<p>The man went off at once and returned in a second, bringing a long brass
-spy-glass with him.</p>
-
-<p>As the mate of the <i>Anny</i> clapped it to his eye an exclamation of
-surprise escaped him.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother of Heaven, what will that be?” he murmured, and putting the
-glass under his arm went down the deck in search of the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>As usual the little Spaniard was standing against the main mast, his
-arms folded across his chest, and his heavy-lidded eyes half closed.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck approached him deferentially and reported&mdash;“Ship ahead,
-Capt’n.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_193" id="page_193">{193}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The deeply sunken eyes opened at once and Dick put out one delicately
-scented hand for the glass.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s sighted us, dogs,” he remarked calmly a second or so later.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck gasped.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go and head her round, Capt’n,” he said at once.</p>
-
-<p>Dick lowered the telescope and looked over it in quiet surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“That you will not, son of a snipe,” he said, his soft voice playing
-musically with the words.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck began to expostulate.</p>
-
-<p>“The Preventative folk?” he said fearfully.</p>
-
-<p>Dick swore.</p>
-
-<p>“And since when have you been feared of the Preventative folk, dog?” he
-asked, and his fingers played round the hilt of his knife.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not feared,” he said stoutly, “but ’tis madness to go on.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed happily, putting the glass up again. Suddenly his whole
-manner changed. His bright black eyes lost their sleepy indifference and
-became alight with interest and excitement, his slender white hand
-ceased to play with his knife, and his voice, no longer caressing,
-adopted a note of command as he wheeled round and strode off down the
-deck shouting orders here and there.</p>
-
-<p>“Put on full canvas and keep her straight,” Blueneck heard him say, and
-he groaned inwardly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_194" id="page_194">{194}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Under the extra load of canvas the <i>Anny</i> plunged and righted herself,
-speeding through the water at her full speed.</p>
-
-<p>The other brig was well in sight now, and she hailed the smugglers
-several times.</p>
-
-<p>Dick took the wheel himself and shouted an order for the cannon to be
-looked to.</p>
-
-<p>The other brig had turned her head straight for the <i>Anny</i> as soon as
-she saw that her salute was ignored, and now a ball from one of her
-several brass cannon fell some two yards short of the smuggler’s bows.</p>
-
-<p>“Fire!” shouted Dick, and Noah Goody, the <i>Anny’s</i> old gunner, lit the
-match; the shot cleared the pursuing brig and Noah loaded again.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer came the brig until Blueneck could read the name on
-her bows, the <i>Royal Charles</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Faster and faster went the <i>Anny</i>, but the <i>Charles</i> gained on her every
-second. They were well inside the bay by this time, but escape seemed
-impossible, for the tide was barely past the turn and between them and
-the Island lay a great gray field of soft slushing mud. Any moment they
-might strike a bank of it and be compelled to stay there, an easy prey
-to the Preventative men.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked behind; the <i>Charles</i> was very near. For a moment he
-hesitated. He knew the Western creeks like the back of his hand, but in
-order to reach that side of the Island he would have to cross in front
-of the enemy, and although he was a daring<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_195" id="page_195">{195}</a></span> little man Black’erchief
-Dick was no fool. The only course left open to him, then, was to make
-for the East. He knew there were two creeks that were deep enough to
-take the brig, but they were no more than thirty feet in their widest
-part and that was dangerous going. Besides, he was not nearly so
-familiar with these as with those on the Western side.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment a ball from the <i>Charles</i> dropped through the little
-deck-house and then rolled off the deck harmlessly.</p>
-
-<p>Dick made up his mind.</p>
-
-<p>“Send Habakkuk Coot hither,” he shouted, for he remembered that the man
-had spent his boyhood in the East of the Island.</p>
-
-<p>Everyone had forgotten Habakkuk in the excitement of the moment and now
-he was nowhere to be found.</p>
-
-<p>Dick cursed him for a skulking rat and in other terms.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck went down the hatchway to look for him; the smell of steaming
-soap and water still came from the dirty little hole where he had left
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked in; Habakkuk was there, his arms still in the soapy
-water. He was singing in a high nasal voice and sniffing at frequent
-intervals.</p>
-
-<p>He listened to Blueneck’s incoherent account of the chase in profound
-astonishment, but nevertheless went steadily on with his washing, and
-refused to leave it until Blueneck in desperation took him by the scruff
-of the neck and the seat of the breeches and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_196" id="page_196">{196}</a></span> carried him before the
-Captain, his arms still wet and soapy, and a dripping shirt clutched in
-his hand.</p>
-
-<p>But the situation was too serious for Dick, or, indeed, any one else, to
-notice any little irregularities of this sort.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Royal Charles</i> was within a musket shot of the <i>Anny’s</i> bows and
-every second the mud flat in front grew nearer.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk, however, had a very good memory, and under his guidance the
-<i>Anny</i> shot down a wide, river-like stream of water, the mud forming
-banks on either side.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at it in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I did not know that there were any creeks as wide as this on the East,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” said Habakkuk wisely, “this ain’t no more ’an twenty foot
-wide&mdash;it’s very deceiving. Look over the side, Captain, there’s about
-six inches of water on the starboard&mdash;an’&mdash;they don’t know that, do
-they?” he chuckled, jerking his thumb over his shoulder to where the
-<i>Royal Charles</i> had just turned after them. “It’s only about twenty wide
-a bit farther along,” he announced cheerfully a little later. “I hopes I
-ain’t forgot where.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick stood watching the <i>Charles</i> as she followed them down the
-treacherous creek. She must have a pilot who knows the place, he
-thought, for she still gained on them.</p>
-
-<p>At last, when they were within five hundred yards of the shore, Habakkuk
-gave a short exclamation.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_197" id="page_197">{197}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We’re stuck,” he cried.</p>
-
-<p>“What?” Dick sprang round on his heel.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk grinned foolishly.</p>
-
-<p>“Little tiny channel’s silted up, I reckon,” he said. “We’re aground.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick struck him off his feet with an oath.</p>
-
-<p>“Out with your knives,” he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>It was beginning to get dusk and the <i>Charles</i> bore down upon the <i>Anny</i>
-like a great gray tower; nearer she came and nearer until they could
-plainly hear the voices of the men on her deck.</p>
-
-<p>And then it happened. In his excitement the man at her tiller let it
-swerve a little, a very little, but enough; there was a soft swishing
-sound, and the <i>Charles’s</i> nose cut deep into the soft cheesy mud&mdash;she
-also was aground.</p>
-
-<p>Exciseman Thomas Playle swore with disappointment as he ran forward and
-saw the very little distance between the two brigs, but he loosened the
-broad-bladed cutlass at his hip and, shouting to his men to follow,
-swung himself into one of the boats.</p>
-
-<p>“Maria! they’re trying to board us,” shouted Blueneck, whipping out his
-knife and running to the side.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly there was confusion, the greater portion of the crew running
-after their mate to the still floating side of the brig.</p>
-
-<p>This sudden change of weight saved the situation. With a lurch, a roll,
-and a quiver, the <i>Anny</i> jerked off the mud, Habakkuk seized the tiller
-just in time, and the brig slid on down the creek.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_198" id="page_198">{198}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>A yell of disappointment rang out from the first boatload of
-Preventative men and echoed over the fast-darkening mud-flats. The tide
-was coming in like a mill-stream, and any moment the <i>Charles</i> might
-also swing clear, but Playle would not wait; springing into a second
-boat, he urged his men to row the faster in a vain attempt to catch the
-<i>Anny</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Old Noah Goody did his best with the cannon, but the progress of the
-little rowboats was so irregular that he could never get the exact
-range.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Anny</i> shot away from the boats at first, but as she came nearer
-into the shore the channel grew narrower and narrower and she was forced
-to take in most of her canvas.</p>
-
-<p>Dick stood on the bows looking at the fast-gaining boats, and thinking.
-If on reaching the shore he abandoned the brig and he and his men ran to
-hide on the Island, the Preventative men would scuttle the <i>Anny</i> and
-confiscate her cargo, which was an extra valuable one of Jamaica rum and
-fine Brussels lace. His only alternative was to fight.</p>
-
-<p>By this time the brig was within twenty yards of the beach, and in
-another moment her keel grated on the muddy shingle.</p>
-
-<p>The excise men were not far behind.</p>
-
-<p>Dick seemed suddenly to come to life; leaping out into the centre deck,
-he shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“To the shore, lads, and fight the liverish dogs on land!” Then, agile
-as a monkey, he slid down the hawser and pulled in a boat&mdash;the crew
-followed,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_199" id="page_199">{199}</a></span> some wading through the shallow water and others in the
-boats.</p>
-
-<p>Once on shore they ranged themselves in a double line along the beach,
-waiting, with drawn knives, for the boats. It had grown almost dark by
-now, and one by one the stars had come out in the fast-deepening sky,
-but there was a big moon and the line of rugged, rum-stamped faces on
-the shore showed clearly in the yellow light. Their brutal expressions
-and the flicker of steel about their belts might have frightened many a
-man older and more tried than Master Playle, but the little boats came
-on undaunted, and just as the first keel touched the shingle a musket
-shot rang out and the man next to Blueneck dropped silently.</p>
-
-<p>Dick swore in Spanish and, raising his pistol&mdash;the one he had taken from
-Mat Turnby&mdash;fired at the man nearest him, a fat elderly servant of
-Master Francis Myddleton’s. The man was almost out of range, but the
-shot wounded him, for he screamed and dropped into the water. For half a
-second there was no sound, and then with a yell the crew of the
-<i>Charles</i> charged over the soft, slithering mud at the solid line of
-grim, taut figures who awaited them.</p>
-
-<p>“Pick out your men!” Dick rapped out the order, and as he spoke the
-handle of his knife slipped into the hollow of his soft white palm as if
-it had suddenly grown there, and the slender hand and delicate weapon
-quivered as one living thing.</p>
-
-<p>There were fully ten more excise men than smug<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_200" id="page_200">{200}</a></span>glers and they came on
-with such a rush that the crew of the <i>Anny</i> was forced to give way a
-little, but they rallied immediately, and although the Preventative folk
-had the advantage of numbers Dick’s people had the priceless knowledge
-of the ground they were fighting on. The wiry grass which covered the
-unlevel saltings that lay the other side of the narrow beach was very
-slippery, and in the pale light the ridges and dykes were almost
-invisible.</p>
-
-<p>Dick soon realized that if the fight was to be fought to a finish the
-sooner they got to level ground the better, as his own people found the
-light deceptive. So he worked his way round to Blueneck, slashing right
-and left as he went.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck was apparently enjoying himself for, although the moonlight
-showed a gash across his temples about six inches long, from which the
-blood poured freely, it also showed a smile on his ragged mouth and a
-dripping cutlass in his sinewy hand.</p>
-
-<p>Dick spoke to him quickly, just a few muttered words, and almost
-immediately the smugglers began to give way. Back, back, they went until
-they were flying across the saltings over the meadows and straight for
-the Ship, with the Preventative men in full pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>Once the mocking voice of Playle called out to the <i>Anny’s</i> crew to
-surrender, and the flying smugglers paused and half-turned with many
-oaths, but Dick’s voice dragged them on again with, “On, dogs, on, for
-your damned lives,” and the chase continued.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_201" id="page_201">{201}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Suddenly, as they reached the Ship yard, Dick vanished: Blueneck,
-looking round for further orders, could not see him, and his heart sank.
-Was it possible that a knife-thrust from behind had killed the Captain?
-He dismissed that idea almost as soon as it came to him. The Spaniard
-was too wary to be the victim of such a mishap. The only other
-alternative was that he had deserted his crew.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck feared Dick, but he had no love for him, and this last seemed
-to be the only possible explanation. He spat on the ground
-contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p>But by this time the Preventative folk were well upon them and Blueneck
-realized that it was a case of each man for himself, so calling a halt
-he turned on the oncoming force.</p>
-
-<p>The smugglers were only too glad to obey, and with a redoubled force
-they turned on their enemy and hewed their way into them.</p>
-
-<p>The Preventative men were not sorry to fight, however, and young Playle
-threw himself into the thick of the scrap with something very like
-pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>The smugglers fought like wild beasts, preferring to close in and kill,
-but the others liked to thrust and parry, pricking and wounding, giving
-way here and pressing there, and as they had longer weapons than the
-smugglers they found their method an excellent one.</p>
-
-<p>Back went the smugglers down the Ship yard, Blueneck slashing wildly,
-Noah Goody defending himself only, and little Habakkuk, his bare chest
-and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_202" id="page_202">{202}</a></span> shoulders a perfect network of cuts, darting here and there like a
-robin.</p>
-
-<p>Onward pressed young Playle until he had the smugglers with their backs
-against the kitchen door, which opened suddenly from the inside.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck put himself on the step in the way of the excise men and
-shouted to his mates to get into the kitchen and form a guard. When the
-last man was in he retired also, but the excise men pressed on; first
-one of their men fell, on attempting to enter the kitchen, then a
-second, and a third, but before the fourth was struck down in response
-to a great crush behind him he broke through the smugglers’ guard and
-the Preventative men swarmed in.</p>
-
-<p>Hal Grame suddenly darted forward out of the darkness. He carried an old
-sword which had hung over the kitchen shelf for years, and he now laid
-about him with great strokes, but a certain recklessness distinguished
-his fighting, and his red shirt was soon dyed a still deeper shade.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of his help, however, the excise men drove on.</p>
-
-<p>“God! if the Captain was only here!” groaned Blueneck aloud. The man
-next him caught his words and looked round, so did his neighbour, and in
-a moment all that was left of the <i>Anny’s</i> crew realized that their
-captain had deserted them, and a certain hopelessness crept into the
-fighting from that time on, and in a minute or two the smugglers
-retreated in a body, knocking over the barrels and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_203" id="page_203">{203}</a></span> benches as they
-went. They scuttled into the inner room and then slammed the heavy oak
-door behind them.</p>
-
-<p>Habakkuk alone was left behind and he, finding the door shut upon him,
-turned to fly through the other door into the yard, but a Preventative
-man’s sword ran him through just as he reached the threshold, and with
-one last sniff the brave little laundryman fell prone in a pool of his
-own blood.</p>
-
-<p>The kitchen was very dark, there being no fire, as it was summer-time,
-and the only light was the moonlight which showed in through the windows
-and fell on the floor in two bright patches.</p>
-
-<p>So when the door slammed on them, Thomas Playle took the opportunity of
-counting his forces. He found to his deep disappointment that he had
-lost a great many more men than he had dreamed, and those around him in
-the kitchen numbered at the most no more than six or seven.</p>
-
-<p>“We must get them yet,” he said, speaking to his few remaining followers
-in a low tone. “An you two stay here and I and Jacques go round to the
-other door we&mdash;&mdash;” Suddenly he caught his breath, his voice trailed away
-into silence, and he started back, his drawn sword put up to shield his
-body.</p>
-
-<p>The man to whom he had been principally speaking had quietly dropped
-without a cry, and as he touched the ground his head and shoulders
-rolled into the patch of moonlight, and his horrified comrades saw a
-thin spurt of blood shooting out from a<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_204" id="page_204">{204}</a></span> clean small wound in his neck
-just over the collar-bone.</p>
-
-<p>Before they could collect their wits after this shock there was a faint
-patter of feet behind them and another man staggered, tried to speak,
-reeled, and fell.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly there was confusion; men slashed about in the darkness
-striking anything and any one, shouting, and screaming. A terrible fear
-of something unknown and horrible possessed them and each man made for
-the yard, but one by one as they approached the doorway the unseen
-terror caught them and they fell. At last there were but three left,
-young Playle himself, his mate, Jacques, and the <i>Charles’s</i> gunner, a
-tall, powerful man called Rilp.</p>
-
-<p>These three stood back to back in the centre of the kitchen, making a
-triangle, their swords drawn before them, so that it was practically
-impossible for anything to harm them from behind.</p>
-
-<p>They stood there for some moments holding their breath; everything was
-silent. Then there was a light patter of feet again and a small bent
-shape darted through the patch of moonlight. It seemed to Playle’s
-terrified eyes to be an evil spirit not three feet high from the ground
-and to have its head almost level with its waist while its back was bent
-into a monstrous hump. Instinctively he put up his sword to shield his
-head and at that moment something brushed passed him; he slashed at it
-and fancied<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_205" id="page_205">{205}</a></span> that he had wounded it, but the next moment he felt Jacques
-grunt and stumble. He was just going to spring away when he felt the man
-right himself and once again a man’s back was firm against his own.</p>
-
-<p>Then there was silence again for a second.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Rilp staggered, shivered, and dropped.</p>
-
-<p>Playle immediately darted forward, when to his amazement and horror the
-man whom he thought was Jacques darted after him; something sprang on
-his shoulders from behind, a streak of silver light darted before his
-eyes and plunged down into his neck; he felt the blood well up in his
-throat, his breath failed him, a dark cloud passed over his eyes, and he
-died, crashing face downward into the little patch of moonlight.</p>
-
-<p>In the scullery Blueneck, his shoulders against the door, turned to his
-comrades and urged them to pull themselves together; put forward every
-excuse for Black’erchief Dick’s extraordinary behaviour and besought
-them to get ready to fight again.</p>
-
-<p>Inside the kitchen they could hear the Preventative men talking
-together, and by their low tones came to the conclusion that they were
-planning the next attack.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Blueneck started.</p>
-
-<p>“Marry! they’re fighting among themselves,” he whispered. “Hark!”</p>
-
-<p>From inside the kitchen came the sounds of clashing steel, and angry
-oaths and ejaculations, followed by screams and groans. Then there was
-silence for<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_206" id="page_206">{206}</a></span> a while immediately followed by footsteps, mutterings, and
-one terrible yell.</p>
-
-<p>Then all was silent again.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we go in?” whispered Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, ’tis a trap,” said another man, whose hand and cutlass were one
-red mass.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, I’ll go,” said Hal stubbornly.</p>
-
-<p>“I shouldn’t, lad,” said Blueneck, staunching the bleeding wound on his
-forehead as best he could.</p>
-
-<p>Hal put his hand to a dark patch at his side and brought it away wet and
-sticky.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what does it matter?” he said; taking a candle from the table he
-opened the door, holding the light above his head. Then he gasped and
-threw the door wide.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother o’ God!” he exclaimed weakly. “Look!”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck and the others crowded behind him and they, too, gasped and
-fell back in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>In the centre of the room the flickering light showed a terrible bent
-little figure; it was a man, but the crouching attitude in which he
-stood suggested rather a beast of prey. He was literally surrounded with
-bodies, and he looked down at them with an almost ghoulish delight which
-was terrible to see. But only for a second; as soon as he became
-conscious of the little group in the doorway he straightened himself and
-stood smiling at them.</p>
-
-<p>He was clothed only in his breeches and immaculate white shirt; his
-black kerchief was half off,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_207" id="page_207">{207}</a></span> showing the black curls beneath, while his
-white hands were clean and undyed.</p>
-
-<p>Dick Delfazio smiled again and then began to clean his knife on a dainty
-lace-edged handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p>Then his crew entered, and he looked up casually as they filed in and
-turning to the least wounded man he pointed to a chair over the back of
-which his black silk coat was hung.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee, friend, help me into my surcoat,” he said, his voice caressing
-and honey-like as ever. “For see,” he added, turning round, “I am much
-hampered.”</p>
-
-<p>The crew started.</p>
-
-<p>The sleeve of the white shirt was split from the shoulder to the elbow,
-displaying a terrible ragged wound which at one place had laid bare the
-bone, and from the bend in the elbow the warm blood trickled on to the
-floor.</p>
-
-<p>This was the last act of Thomas Playle’s hand and he had done his best.</p>
-
-<p>Dick slipped into his coat and then surveyed the crew.</p>
-
-<p>“Wash yourselves, friends,” he admonished, “the wenches will come down
-now and may be feared at the sight of blood.” He staggered a little and
-his face grew ashy pale, but he rallied himself and with some of his
-usual jauntiness said loudly, “Bring me some wine.” Already the black
-silk sleeve of his coat was sodden and sticky, and the arm inside it
-hung limply from its socket; once again he staggered,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_208" id="page_208">{208}</a></span> tried to recover
-himself and failed, and then, very faint from loss of blood,
-Black’erchief Dick rolled over on his side, unconscious.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck picked him up like a child and stripping off the coat called
-loudly for Anny.</p>
-
-<p>“Surely the girl knows somewhat of physicking. The Captain may bleed to
-death,” he said sharply in answer to Hal’s suggestion that they didn’t
-want wenches about the place.</p>
-
-<p>Hal put his hand over his own wound and, shrugging his shoulders, a
-gesture which cost him a great deal of blood, went off to find Anny and
-beseech her to attend to his rival’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Late the same evening a tumbril borrowed from a neighbouring farmer
-carried a gruesome burden from the Ship door down to the beach, and
-along the road it stopped from time to time to collect additions to its
-load.</p>
-
-<p>A little later a party of men in three rowing-boats loaded a terrible
-cargo into a lonely ship which rode at anchor not far from the shore
-where a brig lay aground, and then that same lonely ship sailed off out
-of the bay, and later, after three boats had left her side, broke into
-flames.</p>
-
-<p>And later still widows and children in Brightlingsea wept to see charred
-spars and planks cast up on the beach outside their homes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_209" id="page_209">{209}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVII" id="CHAPTER_XVII"></a>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“T</span>HERE, there, Master Dick, don’t fluster yourself so; ’twill only smart
-your arm the more.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny spoke timidly and shrank behind one of the high-backed seats in the
-old Ship’s kitchen as Black’erchief Dick, his eyes dark with anger,
-raved up and down the room. It was some three weeks after the affair
-with the Preventative folk and the Island had once more regained its
-usual serenity.</p>
-
-<p>“You are bewitched, girl; what are you to refuse the love of a man like
-me?” Dick said angrily, and then as she did not answer, he continued
-more softly, “Why not come with me, beautiful Ann of the Island? We will
-leave this God-forsaken mud heap and sail away to Spain, cross the great
-river to the beautiful country beyond, where all the grass is green and
-all the plants have bright flowers. What is there about this rum-sodden
-drinking hut that you will not leave it for Utopia?”</p>
-
-<p>“I never heard of Utopia and Mersea is good enough for me,” said Anny
-stolidly. “Besides, if you want to marry me, why not tell everybody and
-have a proper wedding by the parson from the West, but even then I
-wouldn’t marry you; I don’t love you, sir!<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_210" id="page_210">{210}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard paused suddenly in his walk up and down and looked at her.</p>
-
-<p>“Never has a woman said so much to me before,” he said slowly, his voice
-soft and smooth as ever.</p>
-
-<p>Anny shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis time then one should,” she laughed. “Rest your arm, sir, and leave
-worrying a poor girl that has work and enough to do, now that Mistress
-Sue be for ever out along the beach with Big French.” She turned away.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard was beside her in a second and his slim white fingers
-fastened round her wrist.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you silly little wench,” he said with a laugh in his voice, “do you
-think you can turn off Dick Delfazio easily like that? Mistress, I am of
-some account on the Island. Is a man who kills six Preventative folk
-single-handed to be stayed in his heart’s desire by a little
-serving-maid, think you?”</p>
-
-<p>“What would you do?” Anny, her big green eyes wide with apprehension,
-and her back against the wall, jerked out the question fearfully.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick looked at her in admiration, and, swinging her toward
-him, he put his arm round her waist, and Hal, passing the window at that
-moment, suddenly changed his mind about entering the kitchen and marched
-off down the garden coughing and swearing to himself.</p>
-
-<p>Anny freed herself in a moment and stood with her arms akimbo.</p>
-
-<p>“An you were not wounded and a customer, I<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_211" id="page_211">{211}</a></span> should smack you across the
-mouth,” she said, her eyes filling with tears.</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, we should not quarrel, sweetheart,” he said. “When you are aboard
-the <i>Anny</i>&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I pray God I shall be dead before,” the girl interrupted angrily, her
-tears overflowing and rolling down her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>Dick caught her hand again and looked at her fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“I have played enough, lass,” he said. “You must come off secretly with
-me or&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Anny laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Must?” she said. “Must, indeed! And whyfore? I tell you, sir, I hate
-you, and if you pursue me more I’ll have the landlord at you.”</p>
-
-<p>“The landlord!” Dick sneered.</p>
-
-<p>Anny was desperate.</p>
-
-<p>“Or Hal Grame,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Dick threw back his head and laughed aloud.</p>
-
-<p>“A tapster! Oh, pretty, pretty little wench, you are very amusing!”</p>
-
-<p>The girl wrenched her hand away.</p>
-
-<p>“Master Black’erchief Dick,” she said slowly, her little face very white
-and grave, “will you understand please that I do not love you, I do not
-even like you, and I will never go anywhere with you of my own will?”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard stepped back a pace or two. He seemed to have realized at
-last that she was speaking<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_212" id="page_212">{212}</a></span> the truth, for he looked at the earnest
-little face in front of him with a mixture of amazement and anger.</p>
-
-<p>“You do not like me?” he said, his voice losing all its music and
-becoming almost childish in its extreme surprise.</p>
-
-<p>Anny nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I don’t like you. Will you please go away and leave me to my work,
-sir?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick’s anger rose up and boiled over in a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you, you shall come, you pretty little fool,” he swore. “Or&mdash;&mdash;”
-he paused suddenly. “Is there some other man you love? Tell me, tell
-me!”</p>
-
-<p>Anny cowered before his angry, distorted face.</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir, of course not, no, sir!” she lied vehemently. “Let go my
-wrist, sir. Marry, how you hurt me!”</p>
-
-<p>“This great hulking French, now, have you set your heart on him? Speak
-out, girl!”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir, of course not!” Anny’s amazement was too genuine to be
-mistaken.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet you will not marry me?” Dick spoke sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;no&mdash;no, sir! Go away!”</p>
-
-<p>Dick turned on his heel and went to the door.</p>
-
-<p>“By this knife,” he said, turning on the threshold, “you shall come with
-me. I wish it, and never yet have I been prevented from my desires.”</p>
-
-<p>“Lord! you’re mad!” Anny flung after him.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, mad for you, mistress.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick’s voice had grown soft again and he laughed unpleasantly as he
-strolled off down the yard.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_213" id="page_213">{213}</a></span> Anny watched him go and then turned back to
-her work.</p>
-
-<p>“Now I wonder will I ever be married at all?” she said to herself, as
-she picked up a broom from the chimney-corner and began to sweep away
-the dirty sand which lay all over the floor.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck was sitting on the sea-wall, thinking regretfully of Habakkuk
-Coot, when Black’erchief Dick strode up and without speaking dropped
-down beside him.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked at his captain slily and without turning his head.</p>
-
-<p>Dick was smiling sardonically and his knife slid in and out the slim
-white fingers of his right hand.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck considered it prudent to sit still and say nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Dick did not speak for some time, and Blueneck began to get uneasy.
-Finally he rose to his feet as nonchalantly as he was able and started
-to stroll off down the beach.</p>
-
-<p>Dick raised his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit where you are, dog!” he said sharply.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck slid back to his place without a murmur.</p>
-
-<p>The silence continued. At last, however, Dick put the knife back in his
-belt and turned his sharp eyes on his mate.</p>
-
-<p>“The lass refuses me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“These country wenches be mighty particular<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_214" id="page_214">{214}</a></span> about marrying their
-husbands and so forth,” he observed.</p>
-
-<p>Dick raised his eyebrows.</p>
-
-<p>“I have said I will wed her,” he said stiffly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck’s jaw dropped.</p>
-
-<p>“Wed her?” he ejaculated. “Why, Cap’n, you must&mdash;&mdash;” He broke off
-lamely.</p>
-
-<p>Dick snapped out the question, “Must what?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck did not vouchsafe an answer, and they sat in silence for a
-minute or two.</p>
-
-<p>Dick began to speak, slowly and carefully, as though he was thinking out
-each word separately.</p>
-
-<p>“There is a thing on this earth, my friend, called love. And a very vile
-and evil thing it is. It descends upon a man unawares like a shower of
-rain, and soaks through to his very marrow. It takes away his energy,
-his pride in his work and person,” he looked down at the lace ruffles at
-his cuff and stroked them lovingly, and then added, “and I have reason
-to think that great men feel it more sharply than others.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck glanced quickly at the dapper little figure by his side, and
-shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>The Captain was showing signs of strain, he thought.</p>
-
-<p>“Must the wench be willing?” he asked. “Why not carry her off?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“I would rather she were willing,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked at him, exasperated.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_215" id="page_215">{215}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, if you can’t persuade her I don’t know who can,” he muttered, but
-Dick did not hear him. He was smiling, his eyes half shut.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck spat.</p>
-
-<p>“Bewitched!” he commented silently to himself. Then an idea struck him
-and he turned to the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s Pet Salt,” he said. “She might do much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt?” Dick turned to him quickly. “Who’s she?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck told the story of his night on Ben Farran’s boat with as much
-credit to himself as was possible.</p>
-
-<p>Dick listened in silence until he had finished; then he rose to his
-feet.</p>
-
-<p>“I will go to see this crone,” he said grandiloquently. “Lead me, dog!”</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt sat on the deck of her boat mending a net. She was mumbling to
-herself, and her old knotted finger-joints cracked as she fumbled about
-with the rough twine she was using. Beneath the hatches she could hear
-old Ben swearing loudly as he hunted among the empty rum kegs for one
-that still contained a little of the precious stuff. To judge from his
-language he had been so far unsuccessful and the woman shifted uneasily
-as she sat thinking of the beating he would give her if he found
-nothing.</p>
-
-<p>It was then that she heard a voice calling her from the beach.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_216" id="page_216">{216}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt! Pet Salt!”</p>
-
-<p>Noisily she scrambled to her feet and hobbled over to the side of the
-hull, and looked down.</p>
-
-<p>Dick and his mate stood together staring up at her.</p>
-
-<p>“Good morning, mistress,” Dick began in his best manner.</p>
-
-<p>Pet stared at him open-mouthed, her yellow teeth looking like fangs. She
-had never seen such finery.</p>
-
-<p>Dick, although himself rather taken aback at Pet’s appearance, could not
-but feel flattered at her evident approval of his own.</p>
-
-<p>Pet’s bleared eyes now fell on Blueneck and a shade of recognition
-passed over her wrinkled, spirit-sodden face.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s you again, ronyon, hey?” she cried in her cracked crooning
-voice into which an eager note had crept. “You have no rum kegs slung
-about you, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck waved his hand impatiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Throw down the ladder, that we may come up and talk with thee, hag,” he
-ordered peremptorily.</p>
-
-<p>Pet hobbled off to obey him without a word, and Dick turned to his mate
-in something like admiration.</p>
-
-<p>“You have been well schooled, friend,” he said approvingly. “Yours is an
-excellent way of dealing with crones.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have a care!” called Pet from above as she<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_217" id="page_217">{217}</a></span> threw the rope ladder over
-the side. The end passed within an inch of Blueneck’s shoulders and he
-looked up angrily.</p>
-
-<p>Pet was leering at him from the deck.</p>
-
-<p>“Come up, ronyon,” she said coaxingly.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck scaled the ladder in a minute and clambered on to the rolling
-deck beside her.</p>
-
-<p>Dick followed, more dignified but not a whit less agile.</p>
-
-<p>Once on deck he looked about him in disgust. The worm-eaten boards, the
-empty kegs and other lumber, and the general filthiness of the place
-disgusted the little Spaniard. His own brig was always kept neat and
-fastidiously clean.</p>
-
-<p>He shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“A very vile place in truth,” he observed, and then, turning to Pet, he
-raised his hat as gallantly as if she had been a duenna.</p>
-
-<p>“I would descend and talk with thee on the shore, if you please,
-mistress,” he said. “This ship distresses me.”</p>
-
-<p>He went again to the ladder, picking his way daintily across the dirty
-deck; slowly he climbed down again. Pet and Blueneck followed him
-without a word on to the sand again.</p>
-
-<p>“Prithee, mistress, be seated,” said Dick, indicating a bank of seaweed
-and seating himself on a breakwater some four feet away.</p>
-
-<p>Pet sat down heavily and looked from Dick to Blueneck in a half-witted,
-puzzled way, her big<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_218" id="page_218">{218}</a></span> loose mouth sagging open, on one side showing the
-large yellow teeth, which so irritated Blueneck.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she stretched out a bony hand toward Black’erchief Dick and
-began in a droning whine:</p>
-
-<p>“May the Lord bless ye, fine gentleman; could ye spare a drop o’ rum for
-a poor woman to take to her man who is dying of cold? Old Pet Salt knows
-you, pretty sir. Old Pet don’t forget a generous face when she sees one.
-Pet remembers when she came to the Ship and you gave her a keg. Could
-you spare a little, fine gentleman?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick stared at her; he remembered her now, and instinctively drew a
-little farther away.</p>
-
-<p>“Hold thy peace, hag, and hark to me,” he said sharply, “and much rum
-may come of it&mdash;nay,” he continued as the old woman struggled to get to
-her feet and come toward him, “keep thy distance and let thy dull wit
-take in as much of this as it can. You have a granddaughter?”</p>
-
-<p>A cunning light crept into the old bleared eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” she said, putting on a pathetic whine. “I have, God bless her pure
-heart and body. One my man loves dearly! What would you have with her,
-fine gentleman?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick waved his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Woman,” he said softly, his voice taking on that musical quality which
-his enemies knew so well. “It would be well if thou and I knew each
-other’s mind a little more clearly&mdash;rum is a precious thing to you,
-eh?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_219" id="page_219">{219}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Pet’s eyes glistened and her lips moved without sound.</p>
-
-<p>“I have much rum,” Dick went on, looking at the old woman steadily, “and
-I would wed your granddaughter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wed?” The exclamation escaped her before she could stop it.</p>
-
-<p>Dick went on as though he had not heard her.</p>
-
-<p>“At your boat and by a priest that I shall bring with me, I would wed
-her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Pet said, and smiled knowingly.</p>
-
-<p>“But so far the lass will have none of me,” Dick continued, noting Pet’s
-amazement, “and so, mistress, I would wish you to persuade her to wed me
-here secretly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, and if I do?” Pet broke in.</p>
-
-<p>“If you do, you earn enough rum to keep you and your husband in liquor
-for the rest of your life.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick put his hands on his belt and looked at the old wretch quizzically.</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to laugh. It was a terrible sound, half a wheeze and half a
-choke.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll persuade her,” she muttered.</p>
-
-<p>Dick quickly put up one white beringed hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, mistress, you must use no violence on her,” he said, “neither must
-you harm her with spirit charms or other bedevilments; I would not have
-her hurt.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt looked at him out of the corner of her eye.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_220" id="page_220">{220}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll not hurt your love, master,” she laughed. “She shall marry
-thee&mdash;and by a priest you bring&mdash;ha&mdash;ha!”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck had never seen his captain blush before and he now regarded the
-little Spaniard with great interest. The usually sallow skin was stained
-with a vermilion as he turned on the woman in anger.</p>
-
-<p>“Keep to your promise then and be silent,” he said softly, “or by Heaven
-I’ll blow your pig-sty of a rat-ridden hulk off the Island.”</p>
-
-<p>The woman looked at him, frightened for a moment, but soon she began to
-laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“She shall wed thee, my pretty, fine gentleman, she shall wed thee&mdash;I’ll
-see to that,” she said, scrambling to her feet&mdash;“and the rum shall be
-paid, you promise, master?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“I swear it,” he said. Then he got up and beckoned to Blueneck to follow
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morrow, mistress,” he said, taking off his hat.</p>
-
-<p>Pet stood looking after them.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll coax her,” the woman called. “I’ll coax her,” and all the way as
-they went down the beach they could hear her cracked, horrible
-laughter.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_221" id="page_221">{221}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XVIII" id="CHAPTER_XVIII"></a>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“R</span>UM! rum! ru-u-m-m!”</p>
-
-<p>Nan Swayle sat in her miserable little cabin with her knees drawn up to
-her chin; her cat was perched on a rum keg beside her and there was no
-light save for the cold gleam of stars coming in from the open door. She
-sat there, a tall, gaunt figure steadily rocking herself to and fro as
-though keeping time to some monotonous rhyme. She was talking to herself
-in a deep, weary voice, and the words she uttered were always the same,
-“Rum&mdash;rum&mdash;ru-u-m-m!”</p>
-
-<p>Outside on the marshes everything was very quiet, and she rocked on,
-undisturbed for a while. Then from the direction of the Stroud she heard
-the squeak of a frightened gull as it flew up, disturbed from its rest,
-and then another a little nearer, and again nearer still.</p>
-
-<p>The woman did not cease her rocking; she knew someone was coming over
-the dykes to see her, but what mattered that?</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she stopped, however, leaned her head forward to listen, and
-then sprang from her chair with surprising agility and hurried to the
-door.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_222" id="page_222">{222}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nan&mdash;Nan, where are you?” called a girlish voice out of the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>“Stay where ye are, Anny lass, till I get ye a light.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s stentorian tones boomed over the flat bogs. Hurriedly she crossed
-to the darkest corner of the little hut where she fumbled for a minute
-or two. There was the sound of soft scraping of flint on steel then the
-tinder caught fire and Nan lit a tallow dip and carried it to the door,
-holding it high above her head.</p>
-
-<p>There was no breath of wind in the cloudless night and the flame burned
-steadily.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Nan, I’m so glad ye’re here,” came the same voice out of the
-darkness, this time a good deal nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, lass, wherever else would I be? What’s ailing ye, my girl?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny scrambled over the last dyke and staggered breathless into the
-circle of light thrown by the little flame of the dip.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me come in and talk with ye, Mother,” she said, clutching hold of
-the elder woman’s ragged kirtle.</p>
-
-<p>Nan put a strong bony arm round the girl’s shoulders, and when she spoke
-her deep voice had a softer quality in it than before.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down, lass, sit down, and get your breath, and then I’ll listen to
-ye as long as my eyes will keep open,” she said kindly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_223" id="page_223">{223}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny sat down on the upturned rum keg, after first displacing the cat,
-who spat at her viciously.</p>
-
-<p>Nan snatched a leather thong from the wall and lashed at the cat
-savagely, whereupon it slunk into a corner and lay down on a heap of
-onions, keeping one baleful eye fixed on his mistress’s visitor.</p>
-
-<p>Nan sat down on a three-legged stool, the only other article in the room
-save for a huge iron bowl which hung on chains over the now empty grate,
-and several bunches of dried herbs hanging from the roof, and looked at
-the girl critically.</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s face was very white and drawn, and she looked about her with a
-hunted expression in her wild green eyes. She had evidently been crying
-as she came along, for there were tear-marks on her white cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>Nan said nothing, but sat looking at her, her strong, rugged face
-absolutely expressionless.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve got to marry Black’erchief Dick, Nan,” Anny said at last. “What
-will I do?”</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s eyes flickered.</p>
-
-<p>“Got to? Who says Anny Farran’s got to do aught she don’t want to?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt said&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“What!” Nan’s face blazed with fury. “That blue-livered, mange-struck
-ronyon! Truth, lass, you’re mad to think on her! The louse-ridden,
-thieving, man-stealing, spirit-sodden devil,” she muttered to herself.</p>
-
-<p>Anny shook her head.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_224" id="page_224">{224}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“She says I’ll be took to the Castle if I don’t do as she bids,” she
-said hurriedly.</p>
-
-<p>Nan lashed the earthen floor with her strip of leather.</p>
-
-<p>“The woman’s a lying fiend,” she said quickly and intensely.</p>
-
-<p>The girl laid her hand on the other woman’s trembling arm.</p>
-
-<p>“I know she is, Mother, I know she is, but what will I do?” she said
-softly.</p>
-
-<p>Nan looked up impatiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Do? Why, do naught, the old hell-kite, the sithering&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, but listen, Mother! Listen!” The girl’s voice was so insistent that
-the older woman allowed her voice to die away to a muttering.</p>
-
-<p>Anny went on.</p>
-
-<p>“If I don’t wed Master Dick, Nan, Pet Salt&mdash;” Nan began to mumble again,
-but Anny took no notice&mdash;“saith that he will carry me off without him
-marrying me&mdash;and, Mother, I would be wed.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan paused in her muttered imprecations to look at the girl. This was a
-new side of the affair, and she realized the importance to the girl’s
-mind. She began to consider it carefully, while Anny watched her face
-with almost painful eagerness.</p>
-
-<p>But Nan’s hatred for Pet Salt was too great to allow her to think
-clearly on any subject connected with her old enemy for more than two
-minutes at a time, and she soon broke forth into low, tense reviling.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_225" id="page_225">{225}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Look!” she said, suddenly springing up and standing between Anny and
-the open doorway, a tall black figure against a background of stars.
-“Look at me, child&mdash;do you know how old I am?&mdash;forty-three! You’re
-surprised? Of course, I look sixty, don’t I?&mdash;tell me&mdash;tell me.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at the rugged face that had evidently once been so
-beautiful; the light from the dip flickered over it and accentuated each
-wrinkle and hollow. She nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” Nan lifted her clenched fist above her head. “That is her work,
-the woman of hell. Once my cabin was the sweetest, cleanest, and neatest
-on the Island, my lips were the reddest, my hair the blackest, my smile
-the most prized&mdash;&mdash; Oh, that crawling filcher, would I might feel these
-hands about her scabby neck!”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sighed. She knew it was no use to attempt to stop Mistress Swayle
-in this mood, so she crouched back in her corner, while the cat, which
-had at first objected to her, now came to hide in the folds of her
-kirtle. He also knew his mistress’s vagaries.</p>
-
-<p>Nan went on, her voice rising higher and higher, and her words coming
-faster and faster until she seemed to be repeating some frenzied chant.</p>
-
-<p>“She took my man&mdash;your grandsire&mdash;she stole him from me with promises of
-rum to rot his soul with&mdash;God curse her. I, a sweet milk lass working
-all day in my dairy with a flowered kirtle to my back and shoes to my
-feet&mdash;and she a dirty, mange-eaten<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_226" id="page_226">{226}</a></span> quean. Oh! may the red-plague fall
-on her and her rat-eaten boat. And he a simple, kind-hearted lad with a
-liking for the spirit! Oh! that kite shall go through torments in her
-time! But he loved me&mdash;not her, devil baste her.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny rose to her feet and the cat ran away squealing.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother Swayle,” she said pleadingly, “what will I say to her?”</p>
-
-<p>Nan seemed to come to herself again, for she patted the girl kindly on
-the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“You run back to the Ship, lass. I’ll see the ronyon,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny took her hand.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re good to me, Mother,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Nan pulled her hand away sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“Go off with you, child,” she ordered harshly, and as Anny sped over the
-marshes, she heard the deep voice behind her getting fainter and fainter
-calling&mdash;“Rum&mdash;rum&mdash;rum!”</p>
-
-<p>Early on the next morning Mistress Swayle set out for Pet Salt’s boat.
-The sun, rising red out of the sea, tinged her black gown and flying
-elf-locks with a certain rustiness as she bent her head before the salt
-morning wind and strode down the ill-made road. She walked along with
-sweeping strides, a five-foot bramble stick in her hand. On either side
-of her stretched the gray-green, dyke-patterned saltings, while ahead
-gleamed fields of ripening wheat and blue vetches.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_227" id="page_227">{227}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She was murmuring to herself as she went along and often paused to shake
-her stick at some unseen adversary.</p>
-
-<p>Her cat followed her at a respectful distance, always keeping one eye on
-the bramble stick.</p>
-
-<p>As it was some way to Pet Salt’s boat, Nan was tired by the time she
-reached the Ship and would have gone in and rested there had she not
-been beset by a pack of young urchins, Tant Pullen and little Red among
-them, who danced round her in a ring calling “Witch!” and “Devil’s
-Aunt!” and so forth.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman&mdash;for she looked old&mdash;laid about her vigorously with her
-stick and as she was very strong soon prevented them from barring her
-way, but they followed her for a long distance along the wall.</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt lifted a tousled head above the hatchway, sniffed the cool
-clean salt air, and shivered. Then hastily wrapping a piece of old
-sail-cloth round her mouth and nose she scrambled on to the dirty deck
-and hurried across to a heap of kegs piled up high. Under these she at
-last unearthed a partially full one and hugging it to her bosom ran back
-to the hatchway, her bare feet sounding oddly on the rotten boards.</p>
-
-<p>It was at this moment that Nan tapped on the side of the boat with her
-stick and shouted in tones loud enough to awaken the seven sleepers.</p>
-
-<p>“Ho, there, you dirty ronyon, come out, come out, Pet Salt, Heaven blast
-ye!<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_228" id="page_228">{228}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>At the sound of her voice Pet dropped the keg she was carrying and
-tearing the sail-cloth from her face hobbled over to the side and looked
-down.</p>
-
-<p>“What! you round here, you hell-cat, sneaking a look at your love, I
-suppose, you old&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>A stream of unprintable language broke from her ragged lips.</p>
-
-<p>Nan, leaning heavily on her long stick, gazed upward and when Pet paused
-for breath she began to talk in her big booming voice.</p>
-
-<p>“What have ye been doing with my god-daughter, you stealer of loves?”
-she shouted.</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Your god-daughter!” she shrieked. “And who is she, you mother of
-witches? You’re not talking of my granddaughter, are you&mdash;you tike?”</p>
-
-<p>Nan shook her stick at her fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“Your granddaughter! You mange-struck man-stealer!” she ejaculated.</p>
-
-<p>“Man-stealer!” Pet shrieked in her fury. “You jade, you miserable,
-jealous jade&mdash;still whining about your lover as you call him, you old
-she-goat. My Ben never loved you&mdash;your lover! You’re as old as the
-Island. What do you want with lovers?”</p>
-
-<p>Nan stood there, a tall, imposing figure, her black rags gently stirring
-in the wind.</p>
-
-<p>“You lie, Pet Salt! In your rotting throat you lie,” she said calmly. “I
-am not so old as you say, not so old as Ben&mdash;and he loved me well&mdash;and
-would have wed me had not you stolen him<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_229" id="page_229">{229}</a></span>&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I stole? Marry, hell-kite, I stole in truth! I stole when he came
-begging to my door and beseeching me to save him from you? I stole, you
-vile devil!”</p>
-
-<p>“He did not!” Nan spoke hotly.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, did he not, ronyon?” Pet was foaming at the mouth in her anger.
-“Ay, he did, he crawled to my boat and said on his knees: ‘Oh, save me,
-my own Pet o’ the saltings, save me from yon scabby wanton who waits for
-me!’<span class="lftspc">”</span></p>
-
-<p>“May the green grass turn to ashes in your way for that lie, Pet Salt,”
-said Nan slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Pet put up her hands.</p>
-
-<p>“Ye’re not to curse me, Nan Swayle,” she shrieked, “ye witch of
-darkness, ye’re not to curse me, or by Heaven I’ll call Ben up to ye.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan laughed a hard, crackling laugh in her throat.</p>
-
-<p>“You daren’t, you slut,” she said. “Ben may not have forgotten his old
-love!”</p>
-
-<p>Pet grew purple with rage.</p>
-
-<p>“I dare not let him see you!” she screamed. “What! you ronyon&mdash;I dare
-not let him&mdash;&mdash; Oh! you’re mad!”</p>
-
-<p>Nan laughed again.</p>
-
-<p>“Still I say you dare not,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Pet choked with anger; then a crafty look came into her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I see your mind, Mistress Nancy Swayle,” she said with a scornful
-laugh. “I did not think you would be so cunning&mdash;do you then long so
-much for<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_230" id="page_230">{230}</a></span> a sight of your old love that you walk five miles in the early
-dawning to beg for a look?”</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s rugged features twitched convulsively, but in a moment she was
-laughing again.</p>
-
-<p>“Still I say you dare not, slut,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Without another word Pet turned away from the side and called down the
-hatchway.</p>
-
-<p>Nan waited on the beach below, quite still and leaning on her stick, a
-proud smile playing round her wide, humorous mouth.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three minutes later Pet reappeared supporting Ben, who in spite
-of the early hour was very unsteady on his feet.</p>
-
-<p>He lurched forward and sprawled over the side of the hull looking down
-at Nan. She was evidently much surprised at the change in him, for she
-started back a little.</p>
-
-<p>Pet laughed derisively.</p>
-
-<p>“Ain’t he a pretty one?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Nan gulped and came forward.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail to ye, Benny,” she said softly.</p>
-
-<p>Ben looked at her vaguely.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail!” he said, and then after a moment added abruptly, “Whosh you?”</p>
-
-<p>Pet shrieked with laughter, and settled herself down beside him.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you, old one?” she screamed.</p>
-
-<p>Nan went nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you not remember Nan Swayle, Ben?” she said pleadingly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_231" id="page_231">{231}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah, yesh! I remembers Nan Swayle,” said Ben cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s her, ducky,” said Pet, her face red with laughter.</p>
-
-<p>Ben leant farther over the side to look at Nan, then he drew himself up
-and turned to Pet.</p>
-
-<p>“Slut, you lie,” he said, as clearly as he could. “That’s”&mdash;he pointed
-to Nan&mdash;“an old hag&mdash;but Nan Swayle&mdash;no, Nan Swayle was a shweet lash&mdash;a
-shweet milk lash&mdash;an’,” he went on very seriously, “a very pretty lash.”</p>
-
-<p>He leaned over the side and had one more look at Nan, who stood beneath
-him, her arms outstretched and her bright eyes brighter than usual.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said. “No, no, nosh&mdash;that ish not a bit like Nan Swayle. Nan
-Swayle is a pretty lash, a shweet, pretty lash.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet rocked herself to and fro in a paroxysm of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>Ben stood looking at Nan.</p>
-
-<p>“Go away, hag,” he said, “find Nan Swayle and send her to me and I’ll go
-with her, but yoush not Nan Swayle, or, anywaysh,” he went on, “not Nan
-Swayle I knowsh, you ugly old hagsh.”</p>
-
-<p>And he began to laugh. “That’s not Nan Shwayle,” he giggled, poking
-Pet’s fat side with his fingers.</p>
-
-<p>Pet rolled over on the gunwale in a fit of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“No, ducky,” she roared, “that’s not Nan Swayle. That’s a witch telling
-us she’s her.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_232" id="page_232">{232}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! she couldn’t cheat me!” Ben chuckled. “I knowsh Nan Shwayle, a
-pretty lash.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pet Salt, the time will come when you shall pay!”</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s voice drowned their laughter for a moment. She stood there on the
-shingle, the waves lapping up to her feet and the newly risen sun
-lighting her wrinkled face where two tears sparkled on her yellow
-cheeks, but her eyes were bright and hard.</p>
-
-<p>Then she turned away and strode off, holding her head high, and as she
-went the wind carried after her the sound of their derisive laughter.</p>
-
-<p>And it was not until she reached her cabin that she remembered she had
-said no word to Pet of the business on which she had set out, Anny’s
-marriage.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_233" id="page_233">{233}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XIX" id="CHAPTER_XIX"></a>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“P</span>ET SALT, are you sure all this is so? I wouldn’t wed with him if I
-could help it.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny spoke anxiously, her little face white with apprehension.</p>
-
-<p>She and Pet Salt were alone together on the deck of Ben’s old boat. The
-tide was well up and the waves leaped against the stern with a gurgling
-sound.</p>
-
-<p>It was late in the evening, the wind was rising, and the sun was setting
-over the Island in a blaze of red and green light.</p>
-
-<p>On board the <i>Pet</i> there was the customary muddle: empty kegs, rotting
-sail-cloth, torn fishing nets, and derelict baskets lay strewn about the
-decaying deck in endless confusion.</p>
-
-<p>Pet was leaning against the stump of the main-mast, her red arms akimbo
-and her tousled gray head cocked on one side, while Anny stood looking
-on to the darkening water with her back to the old woman.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure? Why, girl, certain I’m sure. As sure as this boat’s a vile hell,
-Master Black’erchief Dick will have you one way or another&mdash;wed or
-unwed. Which way lies with you?”</p>
-
-<p>Pet’s harsh voice broke the warm quietness of the summer evening
-unpleasantly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_234" id="page_234">{234}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny caught her breath, and shrugging her shoulders turned toward the
-old woman. Then she laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord! you must be mad, Pet Salt, how could Master Dick carry me off
-from the Ship, the whole village there to stay him?” she said,
-brightening.</p>
-
-<p>Pet laughed unpleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>“You think too much of yourself, lass,” she said. “To stay him? And why
-should any one stay him?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s eyes grew big with surprise and fear.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?” she said as slowly as she could. “Why, Gilbot&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“You, lass, have less wit than most girls, if you think any one would
-turn away a moneyed captain because of a little serving slut,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked round her helplessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you see Mother Nan yesterday?” she asked suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to swear.</p>
-
-<p>“I did,” she said viciously. “The old ronyon! Come prowling around here
-for a look at your grandsire, like an old hen clucking for its chick.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did&mdash;did she not speak with you of me?” Anny’s voice trembled.</p>
-
-<p>Pet laughed again.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord, girl! the whole Island don’t spend its time thinking and talking
-o’ you,” she said. “I heard naught of you from her&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked round her hopelessly, the tears well<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_235" id="page_235">{235}</a></span>ing into her eyes. The
-sun had sunk out of sight behind the belt of oaks on the Island and
-everything around had grown gray and cool.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she turned and threw herself before the old woman.</p>
-
-<p>“Grandam, what will I do? What will I do?” she sobbed.</p>
-
-<p>Pet kicked her away hastily and spat on the deck.</p>
-
-<p>“Get up and behave yerself, Anny Farran,” she said sharply. “What should
-ye do but marry the handsome Spaniard and sail off with him? Such a
-chance don’t come to every dirty serving-maid.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sprang to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll not wed him,” she said, her voice clear and loud. “I’ll not if he
-kills me.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet Salt’s smile vanished and a crafty, anxious light crept into her
-watery eyes. She crossed over to the girl with a peculiar smooth
-movement and stood very close to her, her villainous face very near to
-the young girl’s frightened one.</p>
-
-<p>“Anny Farran,” she said, her harsh, high voice growing more and more
-uncanny, “there be some as say Pet Salt is a witch.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny started involuntarily. The light was fading, and faint shadows were
-creeping fast all round the boat.</p>
-
-<p>Away over the fields a corn-crake called plaintively once or twice and
-then, quite near, an owl screamed loudly.</p>
-
-<p>Pet’s face grew distorted in the shade.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_236" id="page_236">{236}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny shuddered; she shared in all the superstitions of the day, and
-witches and the evil eye were well known to her.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, they do!” she faltered, “but what say you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I say&mdash;naught!”</p>
-
-<p>Pet came a little nearer and her voice sank to a whisper.</p>
-
-<p>Anny shrieked and started back.</p>
-
-<p>“Holy Mother of God, defend me!” she muttered.</p>
-
-<p>Pet laughed weirdly.</p>
-
-<p>“Prayers don’t frighten Pet Salt,” she whispered, coming still nearer to
-the terrified Anny, who clung to the gunwale.</p>
-
-<p>“What will you do?” The girl’s voice was so low that Pet could hardly
-hear it.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay! What will you do, ronyon? Shall the handsome captain lie by you or
-no?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny clenched her little brown hands so that the nails cut into her
-palms. The vision of Hal’s hurt and angry face kept rising up before
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“And if I do not wed him what will you do?” she said at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Bewitch you, girl, so that even your young slave, Hal, may loathe you,”
-Pet began in a slow sing-song voice. “So that your beautiful black hair
-may fall off on the sand like seaweed, leaving you old and hairless&mdash;so
-that your eyes may burn up and grow dim and the sight of the sea never
-more be seen in them&mdash;so that your teeth may grow black and ache with
-the pain of ten thousand devils tearing at their<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_237" id="page_237">{237}</a></span> roots&mdash;so that your
-nails may drop off and lie on the floor like shells, and your fingers
-wither and grow black, and their knuckles decay and the joints drop off,
-and&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Anny covered her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, peace&mdash;peace, I pray you,” she screamed. “I will do anything. Oh,
-peace&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Have a care, Anny, how you tell this,” she said, “or I will bewitch
-thee certainly.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at the woman curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet I will not wed,” she announced suddenly. “I mind me when you vowed
-that Master Pattern should have a blister grow on his skin to the size
-of an egg, and I mind me that he had no such thing at all.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to swear heartily.</p>
-
-<p>“The hell-kite went to the priest at West,” she explained.</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s eyes lighted.</p>
-
-<p>“Then so will I,” she said promptly.</p>
-
-<p>“That you shall not.” Pet laughed raucously. “Look you, Ann Farran,” she
-said, “if you do so there’s other things that Pet can do. Send Hal Grame
-and you to Colchester to the Castle to rot your lives out in the foul
-dungeons they have there.”</p>
-
-<p>This was the last. Anny, who was by this time thoroughly frightened, had
-been brought up along with the other Island children to fear Colchester
-Castle worse than death, and, indeed, the stories of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_238" id="page_238">{238}</a></span> the dungeons
-current at that time were very terrible, the civil war being only just
-over. She began to cry.</p>
-
-<p>“I will wed with him,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Secretly on this boat to-morrow night?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny gasped. Nevertheless, she shrugged her shoulders and nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good! The Captain comes to-night to hear of it; will you wait to see
-him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay.” The word broke from her lips like a sob, and she ran over to the
-rope ladder.</p>
-
-<p>“If you fail&mdash;&mdash;” Pet’s voice grew threatening.</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s voice trembled.</p>
-
-<p>“I will not fail,” she said, and then added beneath her breath, “Oh,
-Hal, what will I say to you?”</p>
-
-<p>As she ran back to the Ship across the fast-darkening saltings Anny
-began to realize the situation a little more clearly. She had bound
-herself to marry Dick on the morrow; that was terrible enough in itself,
-but after she was married, what then? The girl stopped in her stride to
-think on it.</p>
-
-<p>“After I am wed I can go back to the Ship,” she said, half aloud, “but
-why be wed first? Oh! whatever will I do?”</p>
-
-<p>Two weeks ago she would have gone to Hal naturally. Now she swallowed
-uneasily in her throat.</p>
-
-<p>Hal had hardly spoken to her of late; he had grown strangely sullen and
-taciturn, and spent all his spare time in a fishing-boat with Joe
-Pullen. She knew that they took the fish they caught up the Colne<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_239" id="page_239">{239}</a></span> and
-sold it in the little inland villages. She had tried to speak to him
-several times, but he had always looked at her so fiercely that she had
-abandoned the attempt.</p>
-
-<p>Alone on the wild, wind-swept marshes, the girl sank down on her knees
-on the damp spiky grass and covered her face with her hands. She
-remained quite still for several seconds and then sprang up with a
-little cry. Hastily she passed her hands over her shining plaits as
-though to make sure that they were still there, and examined her nails
-anxiously. Then she sighed with relief and with one fearful backward
-glance at the <i>Pet</i>, set off to the Ship, her skirts flying out behind
-her as she ran.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_240" id="page_240">{240}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XX" id="CHAPTER_XX"></a>CHAPTER XX</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">T</span>HE same evening Hal Grame and Joe Pullen walked up the Ship lane
-together in silence. They had just returned from one of their fishing
-expeditions and Joe carried the catch in a dripping basket on his
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Hal strode along beside him, his hands in his pockets and his eyes fixed
-moodily on the ground.</p>
-
-<p>No word of Anny had passed between them since the night a fortnight
-before, when Hal had stumbled into Joe’s cottage and told the story of
-his quarrel with her. Ever since, with natural delicacy, Joe had
-carefully avoided the subject, and had carried his mate off fishing as
-often as he could, thinking that this would take his mind off the girl.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Hal stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“How much had we from the sale of yesterday’s fishing?” he asked
-abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>“Four groats,” replied Joe promptly.</p>
-
-<p>“Wilt thou give me two, mate?”</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at his friend in surprise; Hal was not wont to want money,
-but he answered readily enough:</p>
-
-<p>“Certes, lad, certes,” and setting his basket down he brought out the
-two coins almost reverently from<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_241" id="page_241">{241}</a></span> his pocket and held them to Hal, who
-took them thoughtfully, weighed them in his hand, and then looked up at
-his mate questioningly.</p>
-
-<p>“How much silk can I buy with these at Tiptree?” he asked slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at him in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Silk? Why, Hal Grame, what in heaven and earth do you want with&mdash;&mdash;” He
-broke off abruptly, a wave of understanding passing over his face.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s not worth your troubling, mate,” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>A dull flush of anger spread over the younger man’s face and he broke
-out impetuously:</p>
-
-<p>“Not worth my troubling! Lord save you, Joe Pullen, if it was any other
-man who said as much, I’d&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Joe put a huge paw on the boy’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right, lad, that’s right,” he said kindly. “The lass is your
-love when all’s said an’ done&mdash;pray Heaven you may not be as fooled as I
-was, though,” he added mournfully, the thought of Mistress Amy flashing
-through his mind.</p>
-
-<p>Hal smiled in spite of himself at his friend’s lugubrious expression,
-but he soon became serious again.</p>
-
-<p>“Joe,” he said hesitatingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay!”</p>
-
-<p>“You have had a deal of truck with women?”</p>
-
-<p>Joe grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“Wi’ one woman, you mean,” he said savagely.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked at him curiously before he spoke.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_242" id="page_242">{242}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“What will I do about Anny?” he said at last.</p>
-
-<p>Joe cleared his throat; he had very strong views on this subject.</p>
-
-<p>“You make too much ado about her,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“But for these last two weeks I have said naught to her,” Hal objected.</p>
-
-<p>Joe knew this was true and he shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“I should be sharp with her, lad,” he said at last. “Tell her there be
-other lasses you could love, and she’ll come round in no time.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“I had thought as much myself,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Depend on it, I’m right,” said Joe, shaking his head sagely, and
-reshouldering the basket, and they continued thoughtfully up the dusty
-road.</p>
-
-<p>On turning into the Ship yard they saw the usual company seated on
-benches before the kitchen door, drinking beer and rum, each man to his
-fancy.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot’s chair had been moved out into the porch, and he sat in it
-drunk and happy, singing to his heart’s content.</p>
-
-<p>The two mates were greeted cheerily; Joe sat down and called for rum,
-but Hal, seeing Blueneck and one or two others of the <i>Anny’s</i> crew
-among the company, walked into the kitchen, put his cap and coat by, and
-looked about for Anny.</p>
-
-<p>She was not in the kitchen or the scullery, so presently he wandered out
-into the garden where the evening shadows lay deep over the plants and
-shrubs.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_243" id="page_243">{243}</a></span> He sat down on an upturned barrel, his elbows resting on his
-knees and his chin on his hands.</p>
-
-<p>Hardly had he been there a moment when there was a rustling in the
-shrubbery at the end of the garden and Anny, her plaits flying out
-behind her, sped up the path toward him. She did not notice him, and
-would have passed had not he put out an arm to stay her.</p>
-
-<p>At his touch the girl gave a little terrified scream and started back
-like a frightened animal. When she saw who it was, however, she gave a
-little sigh of relief and a smile crept into her face, while her heart
-beat faster.</p>
-
-<p>Hal was going to make friends with her at last, she thought, and as she
-smiled up at him she felt that here was the solution of her
-difficulties.</p>
-
-<p>Hal on his side felt a glow of pleasure at her obvious friendliness and
-a warm impulse to take her in his arms. However, he remembered Joe’s
-advice and the smile died on his lips as he said sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“Where have you been, Ann Farran? And why come you in so quickly by the
-back way?”</p>
-
-<p>The eager, happy light died out of the girl’s eyes in a moment, and a
-flush of anger spread over her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“And what will that matter to you, Master Hal Grame?” she said, pertly
-tossing her head.</p>
-
-<p>Hal’s young face grew hard and he laid a hand on her arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, it has a great deal to do with me, Ann Farran. What duty am I
-paying to Master Gilbot if<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_244" id="page_244">{244}</a></span> I let his serving wenches go flying about
-the Island at all hours of the day, and besides, Anny, don’t forget that
-you&mdash;you&mdash;&mdash;” His voice had grown much softer and even trembled a
-little, but Anny was too angry to notice it.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, I think you take too much on your shoulders, master&mdash;master
-tapster,” she burst out.</p>
-
-<p>Hal gasped, and then as his anger rose, his grip on her arm tightened
-and he shook her violently.</p>
-
-<p>“Take care, Anny, take care,” he said between his teeth, “don’t forget
-that you were to wed me!”</p>
-
-<p>Anny tried to wrench her hand away.</p>
-
-<p>“Were? Ay, you’re right, Hal Grame,” she said proudly. “Marry! I would
-not wed you now if you and I were the last to be on earth.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal blinked and let go his grip on her wrist; then a smile broke over
-his boyish features, and he said half laughing:</p>
-
-<p>“Lord, you’re daft, Anny, you know you love me. Come, say I lie, you
-can’t!”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s black brows came down on her white forehead until they made one
-straight line across her brow and her big green eyes blazed.</p>
-
-<p>“I say you lie, Hal Grame,” she said very quietly and distinctly. “I say
-you lie and that you are an over-weening puppy and think yourself too
-fine.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal was stung into replying sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“Lord preserve you, silly wench, who do you think would marry you, a
-little serving slut, without a portion, or even a father, for that
-matter?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_245" id="page_245">{245}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Anny tossed her head and looked at him disdainfully.</p>
-
-<p>“I could be wed to-morrow to a finer man than you,” she said, forgetting
-prudence in her irritation.</p>
-
-<p>Hal laughed savagely.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you fool, you fool, Anny,” he said bitterly. “Do you think your
-little sea-rat will wed you?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him with child-like surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not think at all,” she said, and added under her breath: “I know.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked at her hopelessly. He felt that Joe’s advice had not been
-altogether helpful, and as she stood there, a wild, free-looking little
-creature in the dim light, he could not help feeling that if he had
-coaxed her instead of attempting to drive her into his arms things might
-have gone better with him, and Anny as she stood looking at him felt a
-pang in her heart when she thought of the old Hal, the Hal whom she had
-loved, who had been so different from this new Hal who seemed to be
-deliberately trying to make her hate him.</p>
-
-<p>For two seconds they stood looking at one another, each hoping against
-hope that all would yet come right; yet neither of them spoke. At last
-Anny turned away and went slowly into the house, her mind made up about
-her marriage and her thoughts on Black’erchief Dick.</p>
-
-<p>Hal watched her go and then sat down again, his head on his hands.
-Presently he put his hand into his pocket and brought out the two
-groats, and looked<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_246" id="page_246">{246}</a></span> at them as they lay shining in his palm, and then
-made a gesture as though to fling them from him away into the bushes,
-but thought better of it and repocketed them.</p>
-
-<p>“The lass may love me still,” he muttered to himself. “I’ll get the
-present for her. Lasses are slippery catches. I would I knew the way of
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>Then, thrusting his hands deep into his pockets, he got up heavily and
-strolled slowly up the path, kicking savagely at the loose gravel as he
-went.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_247" id="page_247">{247}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXI" id="CHAPTER_XXI"></a>CHAPTER XXI</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“H</span>O, THERE, you mange-struck dogs, broach a keg and drink to your
-captain’s lady!”</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick, his eyes flashing and his face showing bright and
-triumphant in the flickering lantern light, shouted the words over the
-side of Ben’s boat to a little knot of picked men of the <i>Anny’s</i> crew,
-who were ranged on the sand below.</p>
-
-<p>They were present to witness their captain’s marriage to Anny Farran,
-and incidentally to carry the rum which was the price of his bride.</p>
-
-<p>The worn deck of the <i>Pet</i> had been cleaned and partially cleared for
-the occasion. Dick had insisted on this, and, in spite of the
-protestations of the two old people, Ben and Pet, the work had been done
-and the place presented a fairly tidy aspect.</p>
-
-<p>The empty kegs were ranged in neat rows round the gunwale, the
-clothes-line had been removed and the rest of the litter swept down the
-hatchway.</p>
-
-<p>It was almost dark, and the cloudless sky was a pale blue shading off to
-rose and green in the west where the first two or three stars shone
-faintly.</p>
-
-<p>On deck a big ship’s lantern stood on the stump of the main-mast while
-two smaller ones hung on<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_248" id="page_248">{248}</a></span> each side of it; they showed sick and yellow
-in the half-light.</p>
-
-<p>Standing before this improvised altar was a man dressed as a priest. He
-held a book in his hand and was mumbling to himself nervously in a
-foreign tongue. On either side of him were Blueneck and Noah Goody;
-their knives were drawn and their faces set like wooden masks.</p>
-
-<p>Before them, in a gorgeous ill-fitting gown of yellow Lyons silk which
-Dick had brought and insisted on her wearing, stood Anny. Her cheeks
-were flushed and her eyes dancing with excitement. Round her neck hung a
-great silver pendant studded with garnets, and every now and then her
-hand would stray up to this and her fingers caress it lovingly, half
-wonderingly. On the little brown hand shone a ring; it was an
-extraordinary jewel, consisting of a little gold hoop supporting a large
-flower, each petal of which was a different kind of stone: diamond,
-ruby, emerald, onyx, pearl, and sapphire, with a little piece of amber
-for the centre.</p>
-
-<p>Dick had told her that it was very old when he had put it on her finger,
-and she looked at it with something very like awe.</p>
-
-<p>Behind her stood Ben and Pet; the old man swayed to and fro drunkenly,
-taking little or no interest in the proceedings, but the old woman
-watched eagerly, half enviously, her bleared eyes following Anny’s every
-movement and each gleam of the jewels, her quick ears catching each word
-that was spoken.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_249" id="page_249">{249}</a></span> Nothing escaped her, and she noticed that the priest’s
-garments were made for a much larger man, and that his book was upside
-down, but she said nothing and merely smiled wickedly to herself as the
-ceremony went on.</p>
-
-<p>The men on the beach below were not long in obeying their captain’s
-order, and in a minute the toast was given.</p>
-
-<p>“Health and good fortune to the Captain’s lady!”</p>
-
-<p>Everybody drank heartily, the priest more than any one, and Dick, his
-brocaded coat and soft lace ruffles shining in the dim light, and his
-black curls showing a little more than usual from under his black
-kerchief, raised his glass above his head and taking Anny by the hand
-threw back his head and laughed joyously. He had once again got his own
-way in spite of difficulties. He drained off his liquor, and throwing
-the empty glass over his head began to sing:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Fair as the Island, and proud as the sea,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>As naught in the world is sweet Anny to me.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The rich musical voice echoed round the old boat and floated out over
-the marshes.</p>
-
-<p>Anny caught her breath and her grip on the Spaniard’s pulsing white hand
-tightened. She was carried out of herself by the excitement of the
-moment, the wonderful frock, the jewels, and above all the singing.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_250" id="page_250">{250}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Dick felt her emotion, and his arm slid round her waist much like a
-snake slips round a tree stem, and, as her pretty head fell back on his
-shoulder, the song grew louder, sweeter, and a triumphant note crept
-into it.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>So gentle, so tender, so wise without guile,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Oh, where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Anny sighed deliriously and she shivered with pure excitement; the
-Spaniard’s full red lips brushed her hair before the wonderful voice
-rang out again in the chorus:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Ann, Oh! Ann of the Island,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Where is another like Ann of the Isle?</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The crew took up the strain, and Dick and Anny stood together in a
-circle of singing men, each with his rumkin held high above his head and
-his foot keeping time to the rhythm.</p>
-
-<p>Old Pet spat on the deck and an envious light came into her evil old
-face. All her life she had longed to be the centre of a scene like this,
-the magnet of an admiring crowd of hard-drinking, hard-fighting,
-hard-loving men. All her youth had been spent in dreams of a night like
-this. Now in her age it was bitter to see it come to another woman.</p>
-
-<p>As for Anny, she was intoxicated with it all; any sense of prudence had
-left her. She was supremely happy. Now and again a faint regret that she
-could<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_251" id="page_251">{251}</a></span> not marry Hal rose in her mind, but she dismissed it promptly.</p>
-
-<p>The future had no being for her, and the past was a dream; the thing
-that counted was the present, the laughing, pulsing, living present.</p>
-
-<p>And as the <i>Anny’s</i> crew roared out their captain’s own love-song, and
-Dick, his Spanish blood on fire with love triumphant, kissed her hair,
-her eyes, and mouth, she laughed as freely and as joyously as he had
-done.</p>
-
-<p>The shadows were deepening by this time and the deep blue sky was
-studded with stars, and Anny, looking up from the Captain’s shoulder,
-said suddenly:</p>
-
-<p>“It is late, sir; I must go back to the Ship now.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked at her in astonishment for a moment, and a contemptuous
-cackling laugh broke from between Pet Salt’s thin, blackened lips.</p>
-
-<p>At the sound of it Anny shuddered involuntarily and drew a little closer
-to the Spaniard, who, noting her agitation, turned on the old woman
-angrily, his eyes suddenly losing their dreamy love-heaviness, and
-becoming hard and bright.</p>
-
-<p>“Peace, hag!” he rapped out, “get thee down thy rat-hole, and take thy
-sodden man with thee, or nothing shall you see of me or my cargoes from
-this night on.”</p>
-
-<p>Pet began to mumble and curse under her breath, but nevertheless she
-obediently hobbled across the deck toward the hatchway, half carrying,
-half<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_252" id="page_252">{252}</a></span> dragging the drunken Ben along with her. The company watched them
-in silence and Anny, as with fascinated eyes she followed them to the
-dark hole down which they disappeared, could not help being reminded of
-one big muddy crab dragging its prey after it into its noisome hole,
-there to feast.</p>
-
-<p>Dick, too, watched them and shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“So may all evil creatures drag themselves out of thy path, my Ann of
-the Island,” he said, and then as though a new idea had struck him:
-“Thou art right, dear heart, get thee back to the Ship. That will be the
-best way, and then I will come for thee. Until then say nothing of
-this.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled happily and ran to the hatchway to change her frock again,
-and as she laid by the soft silk she felt in her childish,
-happy-go-lucky way that she had laid by the whole evening’s business
-with it.</p>
-
-<p>She had been half afraid that Dick would not let her go back to the
-Ship. Now it seemed that he wanted her to. She had some sort of vague
-idea that she was to be his wife on the Island only, when she would see
-him in the ordinary way at the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>She sighed relievedly; the matter did not seem to be as important as she
-had imagined.</p>
-
-<p>When she came on the deck again dressed in her usual kirtle and bodice,
-the crew were rolling several unopened kegs onto the deck, and the
-priest was helping them, but Anny did not notice this, for Dick was
-waiting for her.</p>
-
-<p>“I will go with thee along the way,” he said gal<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_253" id="page_253">{253}</a></span>lantly, his soft eyes
-seeking hers and his slim white hand closing on her little brown one.</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled at him and he helped her down the rope ladder and on to the
-beach. Once again his silk-sleeved arm slid round her, and she laid her
-head on his shoulder. They walked on in silence.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the Spaniard stopped and his other arm encircled her, pulling
-back her head and raising her little white face to his.</p>
-
-<p>Anny could see him strangely earnest and grave in the moonlight.</p>
-
-<p>“You are my first love, Ann of the Island, though there be many others I
-have sported with,” he said in a strangely quiet, even voice, “and I am
-a strange man; take care how you use me.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him with frank, innocent eyes; he was very handsome, she
-thought.</p>
-
-<p>“I pray you kiss me, sir,” she said softly.</p>
-
-<p>They did not move for a second or so, and the wind rose over the sea and
-whistled through the long grass at the sides of the path, and rustled
-the seaweed at their feet. Suddenly they became aware that someone was
-coming toward them.</p>
-
-<p>Anny grew suddenly rigid; it was a step she knew.</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked up quickly, and they began to walk on.</p>
-
-<p>The figure came nearer and nearer. Dick strained his eyes to see who it
-was, but the man was in the shadow, and he passed without speaking.</p>
-
-<p>When they had gone on a little way, Dick paused.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_254" id="page_254">{254}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Didst see who ’twas passed us, Ann?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Anny swallowed, and then said as carelessly as she could:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! ’twas no one of any account; ’twas the tapster from the Ship.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_255" id="page_255">{255}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXII" id="CHAPTER_XXII"></a>CHAPTER XXII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“N</span>AN, are you within? I’ve come to beg a thing of ye, Mother.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny stood outside Nan Swayle’s little cabin and knocked at the door. It
-was early afternoon and the hot sun poured down on the gray purplish
-saltings, but in spite of the heat the hut was shut up.</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to be afraid that the old woman had gone away, and a sudden
-feeling of terrible loneliness seized her; she knocked again
-frantically.</p>
-
-<p>There was silence for a moment or so and then Nan’s great booming voice
-came out to the waiting girl like a welcome peal of thunder after a
-lightning flash:</p>
-
-<p>“Good swine, peace to ye, whoever you are. What do you want wi’ old
-Mother Swayle?”</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis I, Mother&mdash;Anny Farran, and in great need.” The girl spoke eagerly
-and her voice shook unsteadily.</p>
-
-<p>There was the sound of someone moving hastily across the hut; the door
-flung open and Nan’s great gaunt form appeared in the opening.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in, child, in,” she said kindly, her shrewd, keen eyes taking in
-the girl’s white, haggard face and miserable expression.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_256" id="page_256">{256}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up at her for a moment, and then her mouth twitched
-convulsively at the corners, her eyes filled with tears, and she flung
-herself in the old woman’s arms, sobbing hysterically.</p>
-
-<p>Nan led her into the little dark hut and sat on an empty keg, gently
-pulling the girl down beside her. Then she began to rock herself gently
-to and fro. She said nothing for some minutes, during which Anny’s sobs
-grew less and less violent.</p>
-
-<p>“Now what’s the matter, my daughter?” said Nan, after the girl’s grief
-had somewhat abated.</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to cry afresh.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Nan, what will I do?” she sobbed. “What will I do?”</p>
-
-<p>The older woman put her hands on the girl’s shoulders and held her firm.</p>
-
-<p>“Cry till ye can cry no more, lass, and then tell your story; ’tis the
-best way; crying eases the heart. The Lord gave women tears that their
-hearts might not break every day,” she said, her great kindly voice
-echoing round and about the little shanty.</p>
-
-<p>Anny lifted up her tear-stained face from the old woman’s knee, and,
-carefully avoiding her piercing brown eyes, began to speak in a
-half-whisper, stopping here and there to wipe her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“When I came home from the wedding wi’ Master Dick,” she began&mdash;Nan
-started at her words and carefully suppressed an exclamation of
-horrified surprise&mdash;“we passed&mdash;Hal&mdash;on the way&mdash;and, when I<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_257" id="page_257">{257}</a></span> got to the
-Ship, no one was in the kitchen, so I sat down on the long seat and
-thought on the Captain, and after a while Hal comes in, and&mdash;&mdash;” She
-paused.</p>
-
-<p>Nan said nothing but sat staring in front of her.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked up quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“You knew that we had quarrelled, Mother?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>Nan nodded.</p>
-
-<p>The girl paused, and when she spoke again her voice had sunk into a
-murmur.</p>
-
-<p>“He did not see me at first for the kitchen was dark and I in the
-corner. I watched him, Nan, I watched him come in, sit down before the
-counting-table, and take down the slate, and I saw him push it away, and
-then draw it to him again, and I saw him put his hand through his hair,
-and I heard him breathe loudly and slowly, and as though it somewhat
-hurt him, and I&mdash;oh, Mother&mdash;I heard him call me: ‘Anny, Anny, Anny,’ he
-said as though he was speaking from a long way off; then he laid his
-head on his arms there on the counting-table and I heard him breathing
-again, loud and fast.”</p>
-
-<p>Her voice died away and there was no sound in the coolness of the little
-hut; then she began to cry again.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Nan spoke, and her voice sounded sharp after Anny’s impassioned
-murmuring.</p>
-
-<p>“And you were married to the Spanish captain?” she asked.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_258" id="page_258">{258}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny sat up, her beautiful green eyes brimming with tears.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she said pitifully, “and I love him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who? Black’erchief Dick?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, oh, nay, Mother; nay, Hal, Hal Grame&mdash;my love!” A sob rose in her
-throat but she swallowed it down and continued almost eagerly, “And as
-he sat there, and I watching, I knew ’twas he I loved, for all his
-foolings, and I wondered would I creep behind and put my arms about his
-neck, and put my face to his hair, but I minded I was married to the
-Spaniard, and I knew I could not wed with Hal, and I wondered what would
-I do, and then, as I was watching him, he looked up and saw me. His face
-was very pale, and I have never seen any one but the dead so pale. I
-thought he would have cried out, for his mouth opened and his lips
-moved, but he said naught; then he stood up and came toward me, slowly,
-as though I had been a spirit, and his eyes were so dark and full of
-something, I know not what&mdash;that I put up my hands to hide my face.”</p>
-
-<p>She broke off abruptly and looked round her, and brushed the hair off
-her forehead before she spoke again&mdash;all the time Nan rocked silently to
-and fro.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I heard him speaking below his breath, and his voice hurt me, Nan;
-his voice hurt me. ‘Anny,’ he said, ‘Anny, are you come back to me, my
-love?’ and I heard him fall on his knees at my feet, and I felt his head
-in my lap and his arms about my waist&mdash;and I loved him. Oh, Nan! I loved
-him so!<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_259" id="page_259">{259}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Her hands clutched at the older woman’s gown convulsively.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother, will you tell him? Will you tell him?” she broke out suddenly.
-“I couldn’t, I couldn’t, not when he was kneeling there more like a
-young lad than a man.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan stopped rocking and faced the pleading, frantic little girl before
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“You did not tell him?” she said slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, I could not tell him&mdash;I love him so,” she said. “I got up and ran
-away to bed, leaving him there, his head on the seat I had left, and,
-oh, Nan! all night long I dreamed I could still hear him breathing
-heavily like that and calling ‘Anny, Anny, Anny.’ Oh, Nan! tell him for
-me, tell him for me! I could not stay in the Ship and he there not
-knowing. Both our hearts would break.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan looked at her curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“I will tell him,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>A sigh of relief broke from Anny’s lips and Nan went on: “I did not know
-you had wedded with the Spaniard, lass; why did you so? You must have
-been mad; what will ye do now?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at her in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“I had no choice,” she said. “Pet&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>A light of understanding swept over Nan’s expressive face and she sprang
-to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Miserable hell-cat that I am,” she exclaimed, her great voice shaking
-with fury, “to be turned aside by<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_260" id="page_260">{260}</a></span> Pet’s damned witchcraft, and sent
-home without having done aught. Oh, why did ye do it, lass, why did ye
-do it?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny shrugged her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis nothing, Mother, nothing,” she said wearily. “I shall not be known
-as his wife. There will be no difference, save that I cannot wed with
-Hal.” Once again her voice broke on the name.</p>
-
-<p>Nan stared at the girl incredulously.</p>
-
-<p>“Did he say so?” she gasped.</p>
-
-<p>Anny shrugged again. “Nay, not in words,” she said carelessly, “but he
-said, ‘Go back to the Ship and I will come,’ so you see nothing will
-change.”</p>
-
-<p>The elder woman seized the girl by the shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re mad, Anny,” she said fiercely. “Don’t you see he’ll take you
-away? When the Spaniard comes to the Ship, he comes for you.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny sprang to her feet, her eyes wide with fear and amazement. This
-view of the affair had not presented itself to her before.</p>
-
-<p>“Take me away?” she repeated wonderingly, and then, as the full meaning
-of the words came to her, a little terrified scream escaped her. “I
-won’t go,” she said quickly, “I won’t go&mdash;leave this Island? Leave the
-Ship? Leave Hal? No, I won’t go&mdash;I&mdash;&mdash;” She stopped suddenly and turned
-to the old woman, an expression of horror on her face.</p>
-
-<p>“There was none who could stay him wedding me,” she said slowly, her
-eyes growing larger and more frightened at every word. “There was none
-who<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_261" id="page_261">{261}</a></span> could stay him wedding me; there will be none to stay him taking me
-away. Oh!&mdash;--”</p>
-
-<p>She dropped down on the beaten earth floor, shuddering violently.</p>
-
-<p>Nan looked down at her for a few seconds and then out of the door over
-the flat marshes to the hilly wooded island beyond.</p>
-
-<p>“The witchcraft of Pet Salt&mdash;blast her&mdash;stayed me once, Anny,” she said,
-“but none shall stay me the second time, my daughter.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_262" id="page_262">{262}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXIII" id="CHAPTER_XXIII"></a>CHAPTER XXIII</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">A</span>S ANNY ran back to the Ship her mind was full of one thing only&mdash;fear
-of leaving the Island.</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s few words had thrown an entirely new light on the situation.
-Before hearing them she had thought of the future as simply a
-continuation of her present life. She could hardly imagine a world in
-which the Ship, the Island, and Hal had no part. They had become
-necessary to her; and the thought of losing them terrified her. She had
-been somewhat reassured by Nan’s promise to prevent her from going with
-the Spaniard, but as she thought of Dick, with his determined air and
-ready knife, her heart sank again, and she hurried on, her head full of
-troubles.</p>
-
-<p>That evening the usual company gathered together in the old kitchen of
-the Ship, and Anny was kept busy serving liquor; she had no one to help
-her. Sue was down walking on the beach with Big French, and Anny felt
-half envious when she thought of the other girl’s smooth love affair
-compared with her own. Hal, too, was away; he had gone off to a
-mysterious summons which had been brought to him some two hours ago and
-had not yet returned.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_263" id="page_263">{263}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot was very merry, and as the time drew on he called for the
-candles to be lighted and then leaning back in his chair, treated the
-company to one of his favourite songs&mdash;“Pretty Poll, she loved a
-sailor,” and soon had the rafters shaking with his music and their
-laughter.</p>
-
-<p>No one noticed Anny, and the girl went about her duties quietly, almost
-dreamily. Often she would pause to listen, and stand waiting, her eyes
-on the door for some seconds, before she went on with her work again,
-her face set and white.</p>
-
-<p>Just when the chorus of “Pretty Poll” was at its height, however, there
-was the sound of footsteps on the cobbles outside and the door opened
-suddenly. No one noticed it save Anny, and she stood silent.</p>
-
-<p>Hal came into the kitchen slowly, screwing up his eyes until they should
-have got used to the light. The girl watched him, fascinated. His face
-seemed to have suddenly grown very grave and quiet. A man’s face, she
-thought, and she looked at him wonderingly!</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he turned and saw her.</p>
-
-<p>Anny met his eyes with difficulty, and then dropped them before his
-gaze, so reproachful and yet so kind. She shivered a little.</p>
-
-<p>Nan had kept her promise.</p>
-
-<p>For the next two days Anny saw nothing of the Spaniard and her spirits
-began to revive. Like all the Island folk, she took life very casually,
-and, as the days slipped on uneventfully, the event of her<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_264" id="page_264">{264}</a></span> marriage,
-although barely a week past, grew more and more like a rather exciting
-dream.</p>
-
-<p>She was thinking like this as she sat alone in the kitchen’s open
-doorway, stitching a seam in one of Sue’s new kirtles, when she saw
-Blueneck coming across the yard toward her. Instantly all her fears
-returned and her fingers trembled as she pushed the needle to and fro
-through the coarse flannel.</p>
-
-<p>He came up and saluted her courteously, as became one addressing the
-Captain’s lady.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, I have a message for thee,” he said, looking about him
-cautiously.</p>
-
-<p>Anny glanced up quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“There is none with us,” she said, jerking her head toward the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck looked round the yard hastily, and then bent a little nearer to
-the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress, the Captain bids me tell you that we sail to-morrow night,”
-he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>Anny caught her breath and the sailor went on:</p>
-
-<p>“And, mistress, he bids me tell you to be ready to go with him when he
-comes for you.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny’s sewing slid off her lap onto the ground unheeded.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck noticed her confusion and, dropping his voice to a whisper,
-said kindly:</p>
-
-<p>“Take heart, lass, if ever the Captain kissed a woman, he loves you,”
-and then, recovering his respectful manner, he added, “and the Captain
-prays you to be secret for a while.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_265" id="page_265">{265}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Then with a smile and cheerful wave of his hand he turned and left her.</p>
-
-<p>Anny sat spellbound.</p>
-
-<p>It had come.</p>
-
-<p>Immediately her thoughts flew to Nan. She must tell Nan at once for,
-whether the old woman could help her or not, the girl realized that she
-was the only person on the Island who was willing to do so.</p>
-
-<p>She got up to get her shawl and then remembered that she dared not leave
-the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Sue and Hal were out in the fields and Gilbot had walked down to the
-sea. The Inn could not be left unattended; suddenly she remembered Red.</p>
-
-<p>The child was playing happily in the garden; he came rather unwillingly
-when she called him and stood before her, a quaint, bedraggled little
-figure biting his nails, but he was fond of his sister and listened to
-her instructions with great attention.</p>
-
-<p>“Red, will ye run along to Nan for me?” she said as calmly as she could.</p>
-
-<p>The child’s face fell but he nodded all the same.</p>
-
-<p>“And will ye tell her this? Now do keep it in your head, Reddy”&mdash;she was
-trembling in her agitation&mdash;“tell her this&mdash;he wants Anny to go
-to-morrow and none can stay him.”</p>
-
-<p>She spoke very distinctly, as though she were trying to imprint each
-word on the child’s mind.</p>
-
-<p>Red screwed up his eyes in a great mental effort.</p>
-
-<p>“He wants Anny to go to-morrow, and none can stay him,” he repeated at
-last. Then he turned to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_266" id="page_266">{266}</a></span> his sister. “Who wants you, Anny?” he asked
-curiously.</p>
-
-<p>Anny frowned.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go along, dear, go along, hurry!” she almost sobbed.</p>
-
-<p>Red looked at her in mild surprise, and then trotted off obediently,
-muttering to himself as he ran and letting the words keep tune to the
-soft pad of his feet. “He&mdash;wants&mdash;An&mdash;ny&mdash;to&mdash;go&mdash;to&mdash;morrow&mdash;and
-no&mdash;one&mdash;will&mdash;stay&mdash;him.”</p>
-
-<p>He was very hot and breathless by the time he reached Nan’s hut, and he
-stammered out the words to the old woman, who listened eagerly, a
-strange light in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“To-morrow?” she said as the boy sank down on the floor panting and
-gasping.</p>
-
-<p>Red looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he said, and added: “And no one will stay him.” He repeated the
-words as though they held no meaning for him.</p>
-
-<p>A fierce expression grew on Nan’s rugged face and she bent down to the
-little fellow and shook him half-angrily.</p>
-
-<p>“You lie, boy, you lie,” she said, her face very close to his. “Do you
-hear?&mdash;you lie&mdash;for there is one who will stay him, nay, who shall. Get
-back to your sister&mdash;tell her not to fear.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_267" id="page_267">{267}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXIV" id="CHAPTER_XXIV"></a>CHAPTER XXIV</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">“A</span>H, MASTER GILBOT, ’twill be a deal quieter than this to-morrow night,
-I reckon.”</p>
-
-<p>Master Granger leaned across from his seat in the chimney corner and
-jerked his head in the direction of the body of the room where
-everything was in commotion.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Anny</i> was due to sail on the night tide and her crew were
-celebrating its departure with rum and song.</p>
-
-<p>One of the long tables had been pulled out, and round this some ten or
-twelve men sprawled in more or less comfortable attitudes. Behind these
-were others sitting on rum kegs or leaning against the walls. They were
-all very merry, and from time to time loud shrieks of laughter shook the
-old Ship’s rafters and made them echo again and again.</p>
-
-<p>Round the flickering fire, the first of the season, but a bright one,
-sat the Islanders, Joe Pullen, French, Cip de Musset, Granger, Gilbot,
-and a few others. They did not mix with the roaring, yelling crowd of
-seamen, but sat stolidly, drinking slowly, talking slowly, and enjoying
-themselves after their own quiet fashion. Now and again, perhaps, a
-young man would leave his seat to go over and split a joke<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_268" id="page_268">{268}</a></span> and a pint
-with a sailor, but the majority kept themselves to themselves, neither
-objecting to, nor wholly approving, the noisy pleasure of the smugglers.</p>
-
-<p>Hal, especially, was very taciturn. He stood quietly in a candlelit
-corner, cleaning pewter, and spoke hardly at all. Sue, however, was in a
-very good humour; in her best kirtle, and her hair tied with a bow of
-scarlet ribbon which French had given her, she flew hither and thither
-carrying the liquor.</p>
-
-<p>Anny had not yet appeared, and Blueneck nudged Noah Goody as they sat at
-the long table, when the time crept on, and still she did not come.</p>
-
-<p>Little Red sat on French’s knee keeping very still and listening to the
-conversation with the utmost interest.</p>
-
-<p>Granger’s remark called forth a chorus of “Ay’s,” some disconsolate, but
-mostly cheerful.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot looked at the reeling crowd out of the corners of his little
-red-rimmed eyes; then he chuckled:</p>
-
-<p>“Nish,” he said thickly, a weak, happy smile playing over his big puffy
-face. “Nish, oh! very nish indeed. Letsh have a song,” and he struck up
-“Mary Loo” in a thin, quavering voice.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment the door was flung open and a wave of cold air blew round
-the stifling kitchen; several men from the table turned to swear at the
-intruder, but their mouths shut silently and they rose to their feet as
-they saw who it was.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick stepped lightly into the room,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_269" id="page_269">{269}</a></span> and, shutting the
-door behind him, stood smiling on the company, a slim, dapper little
-figure in black velvet.</p>
-
-<p>Then he removed his black beaver and called loudly for liquor all round.
-His words were received with cheers, and once again the talk broke out,
-and the singing restarted.</p>
-
-<p>Dick perched himself on the end of one of the empty tables and looked
-about for Anny. The smile faded from his face when he saw she was not
-there, and a look of disappointment took its place. He had no doubt she
-was preparing to fly with him, but he had expected to see her waiting
-for him, her big eyes and wistful little face alight with expectation,
-and, he flattered himself, love. His vanity was hurt at her neglect. So
-his astonishment and anger when he saw her come in a few minutes later,
-in her usual kirtle and serving apron, an unwonted colour in her cheeks
-and a sparkle in her eyes as she fluttered to and fro from one knot of
-seamen to another, leaving a smile here and a jest there, and a pert,
-stinging remark somewhere else, knew no bounds. He looked at her in
-amazement; she had not even glanced his way. The disappointed expression
-left his face and a smile returned, but it was not the same smile.</p>
-
-<p>In the next half hour Anny surpassed herself for gaiety. Her laugh rang
-out loud and clear almost every other second, and the whole company was
-at her feet in ten minutes.</p>
-
-<p>Even old Gilbot noticed her and, wagging his head<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_270" id="page_270">{270}</a></span> sagely, said that
-“good lashes” were “good business.”</p>
-
-<p>But for Dick she had no eyes, not once did she meet his glance, bring
-his liquor, or come within five feet of him.</p>
-
-<p>At first his surprise kept him silent and grave, so that Blueneck
-observed in a whisper to Goody that it was wont to be the lasses and not
-the Captain who were grave when sailing time came, and that times had
-changed, but after a while Dick’s smile grew more and more pronounced
-and he called for rum again and again.</p>
-
-<p>Still Anny took no notice of him. Louder and louder grew her laugh,
-quicker and quicker her retorts, brighter her smile, and more numerous
-her admirers.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up from his pewter cleaning and sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“She was never so happy when we were sweethearts,” he muttered.</p>
-
-<p>Only Sue looked at Anny strangely; she was a woman and she knew that
-there was a false note in the girl’s laughter, and that the light in her
-eyes was an almost desperate one. But she was an Islander, and therefore
-another lass’s business was none of hers, and she said nothing to her
-nor to any one else.</p>
-
-<p>At last the Spaniard could bear this lack of notice no longer, and
-raising his voice called pleasantly enough:</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress Anny!<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_271" id="page_271">{271}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The girl started, and the tray of mugs which she was carrying rattled
-nervously, but she recovered herself in a second, and smiled radiantly
-at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Will your lordship wait till I put these down?” she said gaily, with
-mock deference.</p>
-
-<p>Dick’s smile grew broader, and Blueneck, who was watching him, whistled
-softly between his teeth and nudged Goody again.</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all,” Dick was saying, his voice very soft and caressing.</p>
-
-<p>Anny put down the tray with a clatter.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! there now,” she exclaimed brightly, “if I haven’t spilt one half of
-Master French’s sack; I must fill it up. Here, Hal, will ye go to the
-Captain for me while I do this? I know he likes being served quickly.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal went over to him obediently.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard’s eyelids flickered and his smile broadened as he ordered
-more rum, planking down a jacobus in payment.</p>
-
-<p>The time went on, and Gilbot and his customers grew more and more
-lively; still Anny avoided the Spaniard, and still he sat on the table
-steadily drinking rum.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly in the middle of a song Dick looked at the clock, and then
-rising to his feet shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“Get aboard, dogs!”</p>
-
-<p>The singing died away immediately and all eyes were turned on the clock.
-The hands pointed to 8.15.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_272" id="page_272">{272}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then a murmur rose among the crew and one bolder than the rest said
-something about orders being a quarter to nine.</p>
-
-<p>Dick sprang to his feet and his hand played round the hilt of his knife.</p>
-
-<p>“A mutiny?” he asked softly.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly there was a shuffle toward the door and they filed out one by
-one, and Gilbot, his fuddled brain just realizing that the merriment had
-suddenly died down, began to pipe cheerfully:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Oh, no one remembers poor Will</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Who stuck by hish mate at the mill.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Dick laughed and took it up, and the crew, glad to find him so easily
-recovered, joined in eagerly and they filed off down the road singing in
-chorus:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>He ground up more bones</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>Than barley or stones,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And more than old Rowley could kill.</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>More bones, more bones,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>More bones, more bones,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>More bones than old Rowley could kill.</i>”<br /></span>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Ah, well!” said Joe, rising to his feet, as the last man reeled
-drunkenly out of the doorway. “I reckon I’ll be getting down to look to
-my boat.”</p>
-
-<p>The others laughed; it was well known that the smugglers would
-commandeer any rowing-boat that might come their way to take them to the
-brig, and like as not would set it adrift to be carried out to sea.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_273" id="page_273">{273}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go with ye, lad,” said Granger, and they went out together.</p>
-
-<p>Most of the others followed, leaving only French, Red, and Cip de Musset
-sitting with Gilbot round the fire.</p>
-
-<p>Anny and Sue stood by the door talking together, their backs to the
-Spaniard, while Hal went on cleaning pewter.</p>
-
-<p>Dick swaggered over to French.</p>
-
-<p>“Master French,” he said softly, his beautiful voice very even and
-clear, “hadst thou not better go down to the brig and see to thy goods?”</p>
-
-<p>French looked up, puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“Goods?” he said wonderingly, and then added as he met the Spaniard’s
-steady gaze, “Oh! ah! maybe I had, maybe I had,” and got up hastily.</p>
-
-<p>Red caught hold of his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Take me,” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>French looked down at him and laughed as he stroked his honey-coloured
-beard.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, then, young ’un,” he said kindly.</p>
-
-<p>Red whooped joyfully, and the big man and the little boy went to the
-door together.</p>
-
-<p>Sue slipped her arm into French’s as he passed her.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll come a little way with ye, Ezekiel,” she murmured.</p>
-
-<p>French put his arm about her and they went out.</p>
-
-<p>Cip de Musset then rose to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you coming, Captain?” he said, as he picked up his stick.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_274" id="page_274">{274}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Anny caught her breath as she edged round behind the empty table.</p>
-
-<p>Dick smiled sardonically.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall follow,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Cip looked about him, and then smiled knowingly, and putting on his hat,
-went over to the door and out into the dark.</p>
-
-<p>Black’erchief Dick waited until he had gone and then turned and faced
-Anny, who was watching him, fascinated. She felt that the time had come
-at last when she must shake him off for ever or else go with him.</p>
-
-<p>She had not heard from Nan since Red had taken her message, and she
-remembered the old woman’s promise as the one gleam of hope on her
-horizon, and every moment she expected to see her hobble into the
-kitchen, but it was getting late, and Nan had not come.</p>
-
-<p>Dick walked over to the table behind which she stood and seated himself
-upon it without speaking.</p>
-
-<p>The desperate light crept into the girl’s eyes again and she began to
-laugh. At least she must keep him in as good a temper as possible. She
-realized that. So, dropping a curtsey, she came a little nearer and
-leaning over the table she asked him would he drink again. To her
-surprise he answered her very pleasantly that he would, and ordered rum.</p>
-
-<p>Hal, who was still cleaning pewter, looked up from his work, and watched
-the little scene with a growing sense of despair.</p>
-
-<p>To know that his love was lost to him was bitter enough, he told
-himself, but to see her happy in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_275" id="page_275">{275}</a></span> Spaniard’s company, to see her
-hang upon the Spaniard’s words, and wait for his smile, was too much; he
-turned away quickly.</p>
-
-<p>When Anny came back with the rum, Dick caught her wrist and held her
-firm with one hand while he raised the tankard to his lips with the
-other.</p>
-
-<p>“Why are you not ready to come with me?” he whispered as he set down the
-empty rumkin.</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to laugh again.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord! how you talk, Captain!” she said, trying to pull her arm from out
-his grasp.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard’s grip tightened, and his smile grew more grim.</p>
-
-<p>“Ann, this is not the time to jest,” he said, his voice growing softer
-and more musical at every word. “The brig waits us.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny noticed that his voice was gentle, and began to giggle again.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Master Dick, let it wait,” she said, tossing her head. “It can
-wait till Doomsday before you’ll see me aboard,” and she broke into a
-little nervous laugh.</p>
-
-<p>To her surprise Dick joined in with her, and his long, low laugh echoed
-through the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up quickly and then turned away as though the sight had stung
-him, while Gilbot, thinking that it was a signal for general joyfulness,
-began to sing again:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">“<i>Pretty Poll, she loved a sailor,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i1"><i>And well she loved he&mdash;&mdash; </i>”<br /></span>
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_276" id="page_276">{276}</a></span></div></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Peace, damn you, peace,” roared Dick, suddenly gripping Anny’s arm so
-hard that she cried out.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot sat spellbound. Never had any one so spoken to him in his life
-before, and he was about to reply, but one look at the furious face of
-the little Spaniard calmed him and he subsided, muttering:</p>
-
-<p>“No offensh, no offensh.”</p>
-
-<p>This outburst had surprised Anny quite as much as Gilbot, and she looked
-at Dick with new fear. If only Nan would come, she thought, if only Nan
-would come!</p>
-
-<p>At this moment the door opened and she turned eagerly, her eyes alight
-with hope, but it was Sue who came in softly and sat down quietly by the
-fireside opposite her uncle.</p>
-
-<p>Dick turned his head without letting Anny go, and called for more rum.</p>
-
-<p>Hal brought it, without looking at either of them, and set it on the
-table.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard drained it at a gulp.</p>
-
-<p>“So you will not come with me, my beautiful one?” he said, still
-smiling, and leaning across the table toward the girl.</p>
-
-<p>Anny looked at him and her spirits rose; he was only playing with her,
-after all, she thought, as she saw his dark eyes smiling at her.</p>
-
-<p>Yet she wished that Nan would come, although she was still vague in her
-mind as to what she expected the old woman to do when she did come.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, sir,” she said, smiling, “not this time.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_277" id="page_277">{277}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard laughed again.</p>
-
-<p>“Not this time, my Ann? Not this time?” he questioned in an almost
-threatening note, which crept into his laughing tone.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, boy, more rum,” he called over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Hal brought the liquor; the Spaniard drew his knife from his belt and
-held it up by the blade so that the flickering light fell on its
-jewelled hilt.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a fair blade,” he said admiringly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, it is,” agreed Anny, as she took the rum from Hal, who nearly cried
-out as he saw her bright, eager face lifted to the foreigner’s.</p>
-
-<p>Dick took the tankard and drained it; then he began to smile again and
-to twist the knife through and about his fingers with that peculiar,
-smooth movement his crew knew so well.</p>
-
-<p>The girl watched him for a second and then looked up at the clock. Why
-had not Nan come, she wondered?</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis late, Captain, you will miss the tide an you do not hasten,” she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>Dick’s eyelids dropped a little lower over his dark eyes, but his knife
-slipped through his fingers with a faster motion than before. Yet still
-he smiled, and when he spoke Anny thought that she had never heard so
-beautiful a voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! señora, I would not leave the Island without that jewel which is
-mine by right,” he said softly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I had forgot,” said Anny, feeling in her apron pocket, “here is the
-ring, sir, I had it ready for you,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_278" id="page_278">{278}</a></span>” and she drew out a little muslin
-packet, and unfolding it disclosed the flowered ring which he had given
-her. She held it out to him.</p>
-
-<p>Sue, who had been watching them, gasped at the sight of such a jewel,
-and looked at Anny wonderingly.</p>
-
-<p>The girl was over-lucky, she thought.</p>
-
-<p>Dick took the ring and slipped it over the blade of his knife; it slid
-up to the hilt and there stuck, a band of gold and gems round the blue
-steel.</p>
-
-<p>“You give it back to me?” he said, half to himself. “You give it back to
-me? No other woman has done so much,” he added suddenly, looking at her
-with that peculiar smile playing round his lips. Then his voice dropped,
-and he said as though he had just realized something: “But to no other
-woman have I given so much,” and he laughed again, unpleasantly and yet
-so musically&mdash;while the knife fairly sped through his slim, delicate
-fingers.</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to feel fairly sure of herself. Why should she wait for Nan
-to defy him, she thought? Here he was, laughing and playing; surely
-there would be no danger in telling him the truth.</p>
-
-<p>She leaned a little nearer to him and said very softly so that none of
-the others could hear:</p>
-
-<p>“I would you would go, sir; you have your ring; what else remains?”</p>
-
-<p>The knife paused for a moment in its unending circle round the thin
-white hand, the dark lids flickered, and the thin twisted smile
-vanished, but only for a second; then the soft voice said smoothly:<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_279" id="page_279">{279}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“One thing, Ann, my Ann of the Island, one thing remains that must come
-with me; that is my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny began to laugh again nervously, but conquering herself she said
-sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“Pest on ye, sir, will ye never stop teasing a poor girl’s life out? I
-tell you, I hate you, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick laughed softly, and there was a new note in his voice which no one
-could mistake, and Anny drew back a little.</p>
-
-<p>“You said so once before, sweet Ann,” he said, “and I did not believe
-you then, as I do not now.”</p>
-
-<p>Anny felt strangely irritated by his attitude, and bending still closer
-to him, said in a sharp half-whisper:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! but, sir, you should; a man who woos unloved is a foolish sight in
-my eyes.”</p>
-
-<p>Dick slipped his arm round her waist and held her fast; he was beginning
-to realize that he had at last come up against a will which would not
-bend before his own, and a wave of uncontrollable anger surged over him;
-his smile almost vanished for a moment and the knife quivered in his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>Anny took his silence as a sign that her words were prevailing with him
-and determined to play her last card.</p>
-
-<p>“I love another one,” she said softly, drawing away from him as she
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p>A ripple of laughter burst from the Spaniard’s lips and he held her
-closer to him.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up at the sound with a fierce light in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_280" id="page_280">{280}</a></span> his eyes; he made a
-step forward, but drew back again almost immediately.</p>
-
-<p>“The lass likes it,” he thought mournfully. “The lass likes it.”</p>
-
-<p>Yet he could not keep his eyes off the two.</p>
-
-<p>Anny pointed to the knife, which was hanging before her, and looked into
-the dark smiling face so near her own.</p>
-
-<p>“Put by thy knife, sir,” she said pettishly. “It fears me.”</p>
-
-<p>Once again Dick laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, ’tis a beautiful thing,” he said, holding it in the palm of his
-hand, the point toward her. “Think you not so?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl shrank away and he bent toward her. “You said you loved
-another, mistress,” he said suddenly, fiercely. “Is it truth?”</p>
-
-<p>Anny smiled at him fearlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, sir, truth!” she said quietly.</p>
-
-<p>The Spaniard’s smile returned, and the blue knife with the gold band on
-it seemed suddenly to have become part of his hand as with a deft
-movement he laid the bright steel against the girl’s bosom.</p>
-
-<p>Hal and Sue leaned forward to see this new foolery of the Captain’s,
-each thinking that his love-making was a little too open to be decent.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! my sweet one, how fair my blade looks against thy white breast,”
-said Dick, his eyes holding Anny’s. “You gave me back my ring, but I am
-generous; see, I give it back to you.” With the last<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_281" id="page_281">{281}</a></span> words the knife
-seemed suddenly to quicken and spring from his hand, and Anny staggered
-back from the table, her hand clasped to her breast.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! how you hurt me, sir,” she said simply, the smile still on her lips
-and her cheeks still bright with the excitement of a moment before. Then
-her eyes closed and she dropped on to the floor, the little thud her
-body made on the stone flags echoing all round the kitchen like a
-thunder-clap, and the knife Black’erchief Dick held was red blood up to
-the hilt.</p>
-
-<p>He looked at it dazedly, a horrified expression on his usually
-inscrutable face.</p>
-
-<p>“Dead!” he said hoarsely, his voice sounding old and strained in the
-intense silence. “She is sure to be dead; we have never struck twice,
-but,” his voice sank to a whisper, “at last we have struck too soon.”</p>
-
-<p>He passed his hand over his forehead and gazed fixedly in front of him;
-some of the blood which had spurted off the knife on to his hand now
-smeared his forehead. Save for this, his face was ashy pale&mdash;then with
-slow, deliberate steps he walked to the door, opened it, and went out.</p>
-
-<p>For a second the kitchen was in perfect silence, and then a scream as
-high and despairing as a woman’s rang out loud and clear in the suddenly
-cold room, and Hal Grame his boyish face distorted with rage and horror,
-flung himself across the kitchen and out after the Spaniard.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_282" id="page_282">{282}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The night was an exceedingly dark one, and Nan Swayle stumbled once or
-twice over the loose stones in her path as she strode over the rough
-track which ran from her shanty to the Ship.</p>
-
-<p>Many strange thoughts came to her as she passed on through the darkness,
-her tall, gaunt figure straining against the wind and her ragged
-garments flying like streamers out behind her.</p>
-
-<p>The bitter memory of her last encounter with Pet Salt still rankled with
-her, and the thought of Anny’s enforced marriage to the Spaniard made
-her hate the other old woman more deeply than before. She had sworn to
-Anny that she would prevent her sailing with Dick, and it was to fulfil
-this promise that she was striding through the night.</p>
-
-<p>To prevent Dick from carrying off Anny!</p>
-
-<p>Nan had thought over her self-allotted task very carefully, and to her
-there seemed but one way to accomplish it. She had decided to take that
-way. And as she hastened on, her thin brown fingers gripped her long
-staff fiercely and from time to time she stopped to feel the heavy round
-stone which was bound to the top of it, making a once-harmless
-walking-stick a formidable weapon.</p>
-
-<p>On she went, her head held high, and her sharp eyes fixed ahead as if
-she were seeking to pierce the blackness which closed in all around her.</p>
-
-<p>“They do not sail till eleven,” she muttered, “and she would not go at
-once. I shall be in time to catch them as they come out of the yard.
-Ay,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_283" id="page_283">{283}</a></span> that is it, as they come out of the yard; it is dark there,” and,
-mumbling to herself, she clambered through a gap in the hedge and
-stumbled out into the Ship lane.</p>
-
-<p>She had now a very little way to go, and her grip on her staff tightened
-as she hurried on.</p>
-
-<p>A sharp bend in the road brought her in sight of the Ship. She could see
-the lights from the kitchen gleaming through the trees. She pressed on
-for a few more yards and then stopped suddenly and, holding her breath,
-stood rigid for a second, listening.</p>
-
-<p>There was silence everywhere and the old woman shifted uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“No noise?” she muttered. “No noise? What has come to the Ship on
-sailing night that all should be so still?”</p>
-
-<p>Keeping her eyes fixed on the lighted window, she hastened on to the
-yard gates. There she paused again. The Ship was silent as before, and
-then, as she stood there watching, the door opened and a slim figure
-stood silhouetted against the bright background for a second and then
-staggered out toward her.</p>
-
-<p>Without further thought Nan strode forward, her staff upraised.</p>
-
-<p>Hardly had she moved, however, when Hal’s terrible scream rang out
-through the open doorway.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman sprang forward, a faint inkling of what had happened
-flashing through her mind.</p>
-
-<p>Dick did not see her until she was almost on top<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_284" id="page_284">{284}</a></span> of him. He came across
-the yard dazed and horrified, conscious of one thing only&mdash;that in a fit
-of rage he had killed the one woman he had ever loved.</p>
-
-<p>The knife, still sticky and uncleaned, hung from his fingers, and the
-light from the window fell upon it as Nan came up to him.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw her dark form and shining eyes rising up before him out of
-the darkness, he started back, bringing his hands up before his face.</p>
-
-<p>Nan seized her opportunity and without a thought of the possible
-consequences dropped her staff and darting forward wrenched the knife
-out of his nerveless grasp and plunged at his throat.</p>
-
-<p>Nan was a strong woman, and the knife, glancing on the Spaniard’s
-collar-bone, turned and slipped down into his neck, cutting the jugular
-vein.</p>
-
-<p>A choking exclamation, “Doña Maria,” fell from his lips, a rush of blood
-stifled all other words, and he dropped on the dry stones as dead as the
-girl he had left in the Ship’s kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Nan heard them and laughed bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“Maria!” she muttered. “You may well call on her. Here, this is thine;
-take that with thee to hell, you slithering coward,” and bending down
-she slipped the twice-stained knife into the slim white fingers.</p>
-
-<p>Then she straightened her back and looking up, became aware of Hal
-Grame’s tall figure standing not two feet away, his eyes fixed upon her.</p>
-
-<p>They stood quite still for several seconds, neither<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_285" id="page_285">{285}</a></span> speaking, and then
-Gilbot hurried out of the door. The shock had sobered him for once in
-his life.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing Hal, he broke out excitedly:</p>
-
-<p>“Have you seen him, lad? Have you caught him? Where is the ruffian?”</p>
-
-<p>Still Hal did not speak, but catching the old man by the arm he pointed
-silently to the still figure at their feet; the stream of light from the
-open doorway fell across the Spaniard’s face and the white hand which
-held the knife.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot bent down for a moment, and when he looked up his face was even
-paler than the boy’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Who?&mdash;&mdash; What&mdash;what happened?” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked silently at Nan.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman faced him without flinching.</p>
-
-<p>“As I come up the road, I see him come out o’ the door waving his arms,
-and then suddenly drop like a sack; when I come up to him he was like
-this,” she said. “He killed hisself, I reckon,” she added carelessly.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot looked down at the huddled form.</p>
-
-<p>“Twas just what I feared when I come to the door,” he muttered. “Lord!
-what things men do because o’ wenches&mdash;and in my house, too! What’s to
-happen now?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_286" id="page_286">{286}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXV" id="CHAPTER_XXV"></a>CHAPTER XXV</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">T</span>EN minutes later, Joe Pullen, who stood on the beach watching the
-<i>Anny’s</i> red lantern swing to and fro in the sharp breeze, was startled
-by the sudden appearance of Hal at his elbow. The boy’s face showed
-livid in the faint light, and his eyes seemed to have turned dead and
-dull like those of a corpse. When he spoke, his voice was strangely high
-and uncontrolled.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Blueneck?” he said nervously, clutching the other man’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>Joe jerked his thumb over his shoulder to where a little group of men
-could just be distinguished in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>Hal gasped with relief and turned to go to them, still keeping his hold
-on Joe’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>The elder man suffered himself to be dragged after the boy without a
-murmur. He saw that something had happened but, until Hal volunteered
-the information, he was not the one to enquire for it.</p>
-
-<p>Hal pushed unceremoniously through the little crowd, still pulling Joe
-behind him.</p>
-
-<p>“Master Blueneck, will ye come up to the Ship at once?” he said, tapping
-the Spanish sailor on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_287" id="page_287">{287}</a></span> shoulder and speaking in a whisper. Something
-in his tone caused the man to back away from his fellows, and step aside
-with the boy, and after a few muttered words of conversation the three
-set off up the lane at a brisk run.</p>
-
-<p>A few seconds later they turned into the Ship yard; the door was still
-open, and a bright light shone from within the kitchen while all around
-was dark and very silent.</p>
-
-<p>Running all round the paved yard, which was long and very narrow, was a
-wider one of beaten earth, and, as the three men turned into the gate,
-they could just make out the form of a tall woman standing well on their
-left. She was digging.</p>
-
-<p>Old Gilbot met them in the doorway; he was very excited but quite sober.</p>
-
-<p>On seeing Blueneck, he seized him by the arm and dragged him into the
-room.</p>
-
-<p>Joe and Hal followed slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Inside the kitchen everything seemed dead and quiet; the atmosphere was
-cold and damp and smelt of stale rum; the fire had died down to a few
-smouldering embers, and the steady ticking of the clock was the only
-sound.</p>
-
-<p>Sue crouched in a corner shivering, her eyes wild with horror, and her
-teeth chattering. The two long tables had been dragged together, and on
-this rough bier Dick and Anny lay side by side, the knife between them.</p>
-
-<p>There had not been time to wash the tables even,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_288" id="page_288">{288}</a></span> had any one desired to
-do so, and the two lay among the dregs and sloppings of the night’s
-drinking.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck walked across the kitchen and stood looking down at the bodies
-without uncovering.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot followed nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you going to do?” he whispered anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>The sailor said nothing for a moment or two but continued to stare down
-at the limp, blood-stained figure whose white fingers held the thin red
-knife.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot stood trembling behind him, a picture of a wild crowd of
-captainless seamen sacking his inn rising up in his mind.</p>
-
-<p>A strange light began to break over the Spanish sailor’s face, and he
-stroked his ill-shaven chin thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Do?” he said slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot swallowed painfully, his fat, podgy knees shaking under him and
-his little reddened eyes shifting uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“He killed hisself,” he muttered.</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck bent over the table for a second and with his finger and thumb
-lifted one of the dark eyelids. He appeared satisfied, and straightening
-his back looked at the two critically.</p>
-
-<p>“I knew it wasn’t no usual affair with him,” he said almost
-complacently. Then he turned to Gilbot. “She was a pretty wench,” he
-said, nodding at the little, white, still smiling face on the table.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot did not speak, and the man went on: “I<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_289" id="page_289">{289}</a></span> never thought he’d do for
-himself, though,” he muttered, “but it’s his stroke right enough,
-see”&mdash;he dragged the lace ruffles from the small gushing wound, “right
-over the collar-bone and down to the neck&mdash;he was a wonder with that
-knife of his; there wasn’t another man in the country who could try that
-stroke on himself and hit so clean.”</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, he was a wonderful little fellow,” he said, “though I never took
-much notice of him. But what are you going to do, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck faced the three men steadily, a smile breaking out on his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Put to sea!” he said deliberately. “The men are a mangy lot, God knows,
-but if they’d sail under him they’ll sail under me, and be glad of the
-change.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused, and Gilbot heaved a sigh of relief, and Blueneck, seeing that
-his decision was approved of, added: “And if ever I come near this
-accursed, God-forsaken island again the devil scuttle my brig and carry
-off my canvas,” and so saying he turned on his heel and strode to the
-door. “Good-night, good people,” he said, turning on the threshold.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stepped forward and took the little knife from out the fingers that
-were still warm.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you take this?” he said, holding it out to the sailor. “It served
-him well and may you.”</p>
-
-<p>Blueneck drew back.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay!” he said hastily, “I’ll have none of it, and, mark my words, lad,
-you put it down; the thing<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_290" id="page_290">{290}</a></span> is evil. The man there was harmless enough
-without it, but together, by God, they were devils. Put it down. Fare
-you well, my masters,” he added, and went out.</p>
-
-<p>They heard his footsteps die away down the road before any one spoke;
-then Gilbot wiped his beaded forehead and turned to the two friends.</p>
-
-<p>“You must get them out of here; get them buried,” he said jerkily,
-pointing to the table. “Sink them in the mud,” he added, an idea coming
-to him.</p>
-
-<p>Hal sprang suddenly forward, a light in his dulled eyes and his mouth
-half open&mdash;but his words died on his lips, for at that moment Nan
-Swayle, spade in hand, appeared in the open doorway.</p>
-
-<p>“It is done,” she said, her big booming voice sounding strangely hollow
-in the silent room. “Susan, are you ready? Come help me.”</p>
-
-<p>The frightened girl crept out of her corner and went toward the table;
-the old woman followed.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot put his hand on her arm.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing, woman?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Burying my gran’daughter,” replied Nan laconically.</p>
-
-<p>“Not in my land,” said the old man quickly. “I’ll have no graves in my
-land.”</p>
-
-<p>Mother Swayle turned and looked at him steadily.</p>
-
-<p>“The lass shall be buried in good Island earth, near the only home she
-ever had,” she said determinedly, “and the grave is dug, and, thy land
-or no, Master Gilbot, there she shall lie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_291" id="page_291">{291}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The man hesitated for a moment, but little by little his wavering eyes
-dropped before Nan’s bright ones, and shrugging his shoulders he drew
-back to let her pass.</p>
-
-<p>Hal, who had stood motionless watching them, now stepped forward.</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I’ll carry her for you, Mother,” he said without looking up.</p>
-
-<p>Nan stared contemptuously at him for a moment, her bright eyes growing
-suddenly hard.</p>
-
-<p>“Had you carried her off ere now all had been well,” she said abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>The boy winced, and something like a sob escaped him, but he turned and
-faced the old woman dry-eyed.</p>
-
-<p>“May I take her?” he said again.</p>
-
-<p>Nan made a gesture of impatience.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, take her, take her, boy, take her,” she said bitterly. “None of
-your carelessness can hurt her now.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe, who had been watching the whole proceedings, now came forward and
-caught the old woman’s sleeve, and drew her away, then whispered:</p>
-
-<p>“The lad is wonderful over-wrought, witch; leave taunting him.”</p>
-
-<p>Nan looked at him fiercely, but she drew back, and the boy, stepping
-past her, picked up the light cold form of his love and, holding her in
-his arms, her blood-stained corsage pressed against his breast and her
-pretty head with its long black plaits lolling<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_292" id="page_292">{292}</a></span> heavily on his shoulder,
-carried her quickly out of the room.</p>
-
-<p>Sue began to cry softly, and Nan stood leaning on her spade and looking
-down into the fast whitening embers in the open grate.</p>
-
-<p>In two or three minutes Hal came back; he was very pale and there was
-blood upon his hands and clothes. “I have left her to you, Mother,” he
-said rather unsteadily as he stood in the doorway looking across at the
-old woman.</p>
-
-<p>Nan turned from the fire without a word, and beckoning to Sue, who
-followed her, still weeping, she went out and shut the door behind her.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot looked after her.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a wonderful strange woman she is,” he said thoughtfully, “talking
-about granddaughters and such like, and her never having had a child.”</p>
-
-<p>He shook his head and then turned to the table. “We must get him out of
-here,” he said, suddenly growing nervous again, as he looked at the dead
-Spaniard.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, Hal, Joe, take him down to the mud. It will do the old place no
-good if folk get to know he’s lying here,” and he began to drag the limp
-mass on to the floor.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked up at the clock.</p>
-
-<p>“Half-past twelve,” he said thoughtfully. “<span class="lftspc">’</span>Twill be full dawn at five.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he turned to Hal.</p>
-
-<p>“In four hours I’ll risk going out with him, lad,” he said. “Will you
-wait till then?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_293" id="page_293">{293}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>Hal nodded.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“I had forgot,” he said. “I had forgot; it is a long time since I went
-out on the mud&mdash;ah, well! Hal, bring me some rum.”</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>The sky was a pale gray in which two or three late stars still shone
-faintly, and there was a sharp twang of frost in the air, when two men,
-carrying the body of a third between them, four great weights slung over
-their shoulders, stumbled out of the old Ship’s kitchen, leaving behind
-them a girl asleep by the empty grate and an old man lying drunk
-upstairs.</p>
-
-<p>As they came out into the yard they both turned instinctively to a patch
-of newly disturbed earth on their right from the side of which rose a
-dark figure, who glided off into the grayness beyond.</p>
-
-<p>The shorter of the two men spoke gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>“The witch was fond enough of the lass,” he said. “I wonder she didn’t
-do more to save her.”</p>
-
-<p>The other answered him bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t her place, Joe. ’Twas mine. And I did naught. God knows I&mdash;I
-thought she loved him,” he added, giving the slim little figure whose
-shoulders he held a violent shake.</p>
-
-<p>Pullen shook his head, and a drop of pure sentiment crept into his
-bright blue eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Tis a wonderful pity,” he said slowly, “a wonderful pity&mdash;poor little
-lass&mdash;and him, too&mdash;he must have loved her, or he’d never have killed
-hisself.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_294" id="page_294">{294}</a></span>”</p>
-
-<p>The memory of Nan’s upstretched arm and fierce blow came clearly to Hal,
-and he opened his mouth to speak, but thought better of it, and they
-trudged on in silence.</p>
-
-<p>The mud looked very black, cold, and sinister when they at last reached
-the shore; the tide was well out, and the sea seemed a full mile the
-other side of the soft greenish belt.</p>
-
-<p>Joe dropped the Spaniard’s feet and stood staring in front of him for a
-moment; then he stooped down and lifted them again.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a bit farther up,” he said shortly, and they went on.</p>
-
-<p>Presently he stopped again.</p>
-
-<p>“Here we are,” he remarked, as he sat down on the shingle, and, taking
-off his back a pair of boards specially cut for the purpose, he
-proceeded to tie them on to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>Hal did the like, and the two set out over the black, evil-smelling
-ooze.</p>
-
-<p>The boards prevented them from sinking more than a few inches at each
-step, but it was not easy going, for the limp body of the Spaniard,
-although not heavy, was yet not light.</p>
-
-<p>The two slipped often, sometimes almost falling.</p>
-
-<p>After some fifteen minutes of this Joe paused.</p>
-
-<p>“This’ll do,” he said, nodding to a circular patch of smooth grayish mud
-which lay just in front of them.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_295" id="page_295">{295}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Hal looked at it and at the white face of the Spaniard; then he
-shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s horrible,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Joe grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“Give us them weights, lad,” he demanded, holding out his hand.</p>
-
-<p>Hal slung them over.</p>
-
-<p>Hastily, and with perfect calmness, Joe tied them to the Spaniard’s
-feet. He had to bend nearly double to do this, as to kneel with the
-boards on was impossible, and he straightened his back with some relief
-on finishing.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s enough; now in with him,” he said briskly, wiping his hands on
-his jersey. Then his eyes fell on the silver buttons on the black velvet
-coat and the rings on the white hands, and he pulled out his knife.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="lftspc">’</span>Twould be a pity to leave him these,” he said practically, bending
-down again.</p>
-
-<p>“Let be, Joe Pullen,” Hal’s voice rang out clear over the wind-swept
-flats. “We’ll have naught of his. Let the devil keep his own.” He drew
-from his belt the thin two-edged knife, now brown and clotted with dry
-blood, round which was still the flower-ring, and threw it into the
-centre of the gray circle. It sank almost immediately.</p>
-
-<p>Pullen watched him.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, maybe the knife, but not the buttons; there’s no evil in them.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal shook his head.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_296" id="page_296">{296}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nay,” he said determinedly, “evil in everything he touched, everything
-he owned&mdash;sink it deep, Joe, sink it deep.”</p>
-
-<p>Pullen sighed and shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe you’re right, lad,” he said, “maybe you’re right,” and added
-cheerfully, “and I don’t know who’d buy them, anyway. Come, then, heave
-him in.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal bent down and together they lifted the once so gallant little
-figure, still clad in all its bravery, and dropped it gently into the
-gray patch; the weights hit the mud first and sank quickly out of sight,
-dragging the silk-stockinged feet with them; the ooze clicked and
-chuckled to itself as it sucked down its prey. Farther and farther in
-sank the body of the great little captain, who twelve hours before was
-so gay, so sure of himself, so debonair.</p>
-
-<p>The dawn breeze came stealing across the sea, and a sea-gull screamed
-lazily near by, while a faint yellow light began to glow over the
-mainland the other side of the bay. Now the mud had reached the
-Spaniard’s breast; his head, still bound with his famous black kerchief,
-had fallen forward and his limp arms lay loosely on the soft slime.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at him critically.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder now has he struck the hard?” he said thoughtfully, and leaning
-forward he put his foot on the black-coated shoulder and pushed
-vigorously. The mud sucked noisily and the body vanished rapidly. Now
-only the head and one arm were<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_297" id="page_297">{297}</a></span> visible. Now the head was gone. The dark
-eyes, the terrible crooked smile, the white flashing teeth&mdash;the cold
-silent mud had them all. Now only a hand was left; it lay for a second
-on the gray background, white and shapely, and then it, too, vanished,
-leaving the gray circle as quiet and untroubled as before.</p>
-
-<p>Joe turned away.</p>
-
-<p>“Come,” he said slowly, “it’s all over now.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” he said, and his voice was heavy and toneless. “It is all
-over&mdash;Joe, all over in one night. Come.”</p>
-
-<p>And they toiled, slipped, and struggled back to their homes again.</p>
-
-<p>The yellow light over the mainland grew brighter and brighter, turned to
-gold, and then to crimson, and the sun rose once more over an Island as
-quiet and peaceful as if the Spaniard and his love had never been.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_298" id="page_298">{298}</a></span></p>
-
-<h2><a name="CHAPTER_XXVI" id="CHAPTER_XXVI"></a>CHAPTER XXVI</h2>
-
-<p class="nind"><span class="letra">O</span>NE evening two or three years later, Big French and Sue, his wife,
-their young daughter, and little Red Farran, whom they had taken to live
-with them, sat round the fire in the Ship kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Gilbot was dead. It was said in the village that he had died singing
-“Pretty Poll,” and he had left the old Inn to Hal Grame, who proved
-himself a very able landlord. He had grown very taciturn, however, since
-the affair of the Spaniard and the girl, which had by this time been
-almost forgotten by the easy-going Islanders, and he had taken to
-tobacco, with which Fen de Witt was well able to supply him at a cheap
-rate, and he sat now in a haze of smoke on the opposite side of the
-fireplace to French, his pipe in his mouth and his head thrown back as
-though in earnest contemplation of the rafters.</p>
-
-<p>Joe sat at his elbow drinking ale; they two were as friendly as ever,
-but Pullen had been known to aver that no word of Anny or the Spaniard
-had been exchanged between them since that cold September morning long
-ago when black mud had swallowed the last trace of the affair.</p>
-
-<p>It was late and all the other company had gone; the dips were beginning
-to die out one by one, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_299" id="page_299">{299}</a></span> tall shadows began to creep over the
-oak-beamed ceiling and dark, rum-fumed walls.</p>
-
-<p>Presently French rose to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, well,” he said, “I reckon we’ll go home, Sue. Good rest to you,
-Hal.”</p>
-
-<p>The landlord nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“Same to you, Master French, and you, too, mistress,” he said, without
-taking his pipe out of his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>Sue smiled and picked up her baby who was crawling on the long seat
-beside her.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-night, Hal,” she said, and then added, looking round the room
-affectionately: “It’s almost like the old days to be all here together
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>“All?” murmured Hal bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>Sue did not hear him but went on gaily.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet I would not change,” she said. “These days are happier, I with my
-man and my little one.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal winced, and French, who was watching, put an arm affectionately
-round his wife’s shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, lass, we stay too long a-talking,” he said, gently drawing her to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Sue looked up at him, a smile on her lips. She was very proud of her
-handsome husband, and they went out together, little Red following, his
-hand clutching French’s big coat skirts.</p>
-
-<p>After they had gone there was silence in the room for a second or two,
-while Pullen helped himself to more ale from a pitcher at his elbow.</p>
-
-<p>Hal stared into the blazing fire.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_300" id="page_300">{300}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Like the old days?” he said at last, half to himself. “Like the old
-days? My God!”</p>
-
-<p>Joe put down his tankard and wiped his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon I’ll be going home to Amy&mdash;damn her,” he said, getting up.</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up, frowning.</p>
-
-<p>“Must ye so, mate?” he said wistfully.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, er&mdash;no, lad, no need,” and Joe sat down again and re-filled his
-pot.</p>
-
-<p>The silence continued.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Hal rose and, standing on tiptoe, reached down one of the old
-cups on the high mantel shelf, and emptied its contents into his hand.</p>
-
-<p>Joe heard the clink of coins and looked up.</p>
-
-<p>His friend was leaning against the chimney-piece, his face half hidden,
-and in his hand which he held open before him were two little coins.</p>
-
-<p>Presently the younger man turned away from the fire and held out his
-hand to Pullen.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you remember these, mate?” he said rather abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at the money curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Groats?” he said. “Well, now, I can’t say as I do, but&mdash;&mdash;” He broke
-off suddenly. “That day we’d bin after fish?” he enquired.</p>
-
-<p>Hal nodded.</p>
-
-<p>Joe looked at him in astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, lad, you don’t go thinking o’ that now, surely?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Hal clinked the coins together and looked round<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_301" id="page_301">{301}</a></span> the kitchen ruefully.
-“I couldn’t give her aught then&mdash;but now&mdash;if only&mdash;&mdash;” His voice trailed
-off and ceased.</p>
-
-<p>Joe shifted uneasily in his seat.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t think on it, lad, don’t think on it,” he advised.</p>
-
-<p>Hal laughed bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“You know not what you say, Joe Pullen,” he said, “I must think on it.
-’Tis all I have to think on,” and he puffed at his pipe almost fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>Joe did not speak, and after a while the other went on again; he spoke
-jerkily, and his voice was very low:</p>
-
-<p>“Sometimes I think I see her come in crying and him after her. That’s
-when I try to forget, but it’s no use, I can’t; she loved him, I reckon;
-I can’t forget that.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe cleared his throat noisily.</p>
-
-<p>“Why trouble yourself, lad?” he muttered. “She’s gone and he with her,
-and you’re here&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“More’s the pity,” interrupted the other. “I have naught to make me want
-to stay.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe leaned back and crossed his legs.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I don’t know,” he said, “there’s the Ship; she’s your
-love&mdash;after&mdash;after Anny.”</p>
-
-<p>Hal looked up quickly.</p>
-
-<p>“The Ship?” he repeated slowly. “The Ship my love after Anny? Ay, maybe
-you’re right, mate, maybe you’re right; I had forgot her&mdash;ay, the Ship.”
-A slow smile spread over his face and he forgot to smoke.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_302" id="page_302">{302}</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“My love after Anny,” he kept repeating softly. “My love after Anny.”</p>
-
-<p>And after Joe had gone home he sat long, looking into the fire, the slow
-smile still on his lips, but later still, when his eyes fell again on
-the two groats, he picked them up tenderly and put them back in the
-cracked cup upon the mantel-shelf, and then after carefully bolting the
-door he took his candle and went up to bed.</p>
-
-<p>On their way home Big French and Sue had to pass Nan Swayle’s cabin,
-and, as they came toward it, Red noticed the red baleful eyes of Ben,
-the old tom-cat, peering at them from behind the shed.</p>
-
-<p>“Nan’s at home,” he said, hugging French’s hand. “And Ben’s bin whip’t.”</p>
-
-<p>The big man looked across at the lonely shanty.</p>
-
-<p>“God be wi’ ye, Nan,” he shouted; his voice resounded over the silent
-marshes and echoed round about the hut, but there was no reply.</p>
-
-<p>French went nearer and knocked at the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Are ye well, Nan?” he called.</p>
-
-<p>Nan’s big booming voice replied, and her usual greetings rang out
-through the door:</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, God be wi’ ye, good swine.”</p>
-
-<p>French laughed and they went on, and as they crossed the dark saltings
-to their home they heard her hail, expressing approval and friendliness,
-following them over the flats, loud, then soft, and finally trailing off
-into a long-drawn-out wail:</p>
-
-<p>“Rum, rum, rum&mdash;m&mdash;m.”</p>
-
-<hr class="full" />
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Black'erchief Dick, by Margery Allingham
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BLACK'ERCHIEF DICK ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62304-h.htm or 62304-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/3/0/62304/
-
-Produced by Chuck Greif, MWS and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-http://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at http://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit http://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/62304-h/images/colophon.jpg b/old/62304-h/images/colophon.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ecb9a87..0000000
--- a/old/62304-h/images/colophon.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62304-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/62304-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a0d5412..0000000
--- a/old/62304-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ